This is a modern-English version of Incidents in the Life of a Slave Girl, Written by Herself, originally written by Jacobs, Harriet A. (Harriet Ann). It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

[Transcriber’s note: The spelling irregularities of the original have been retained in this etext.]

[Transcriber’s note: The spelling irregularities of the original have been retained in this etext.]









EVENTS
IN THE
LIFE OF A SLAVE GIRL.

WRITTEN BY HERSELF.

“Northerners know nothing at all about Slavery. They think it is perpetual bondage only. They have no conception of the depth of degradation involved in that word, Slavery; if they had, they would never cease their efforts until so horrible a system was overthrown.”

“Northerners know nothing about slavery at all. They think it’s just about being stuck in bondage. They have no idea about the depths of degradation tied to that word, Forced labor; if they did, they wouldn’t stop fighting until such a horrible system was destroyed.”

A Woman of North Carolina.

A Woman from North Carolina.

“Rise up, ye women that are at ease! Hear my voice, ye careless daughters! Give ear unto my speech.”

“Rise up, you women who are comfortable! Listen to me, you indifferent daughters! Pay attention to what I have to say.”

Isaiah xxxii. 9.

Isaiah 32:9.



EDITED BY L. MARIA CHILD


BOSTON:
PUBLISHED FOR THE AUTHOR
1861.

Contents.










Preface by the Author

Reader, be assured this narrative is no fiction. I am aware that some of my adventures may seem incredible; but they are, nevertheless, strictly true. I have not exaggerated the wrongs inflicted by Slavery; on the contrary, my descriptions fall far short of the facts. I have concealed the names of places, and given persons fictitious names. I had no motive for secrecy on my own account, but I deemed it kind and considerate towards others to pursue this course.

Reader, rest assured that this story is not fiction. I know some of my experiences may seem unbelievable, but they are completely true. I haven't exaggerated the injustices of slavery; in fact, my descriptions don't even capture the full reality. I've hidden the names of places and used fake names for people. I had no reason to hide my identity, but I thought it was respectful and considerate to do this for others.

I wish I were more competent to the task I have undertaken. But I trust my readers will excuse deficiencies in consideration of circumstances. I was born and reared in Slavery; and I remained in a Slave State twenty-seven years. Since I have been at the North, it has been necessary for me to work diligently for my own support, and the education of my children. This has not left me much leisure to make up for the loss of early opportunities to improve myself; and it has compelled me to write these pages at irregular intervals, whenever I could snatch an hour from household duties.

I wish I were better at the task I’ve taken on. But I hope my readers will forgive any shortcomings considering the circumstances. I was born and raised in slavery and lived in a slave state for twenty-seven years. Since moving to the North, I’ve had to work hard to support myself and educate my children. This hasn’t left me much free time to make up for the early chances I missed to better myself, and it’s forced me to write these pages at irregular times whenever I could find an hour away from household responsibilities.

When I first arrived in Philadelphia, Bishop Paine advised me to publish a sketch of my life, but I told him I was altogether incompetent to such an undertaking. Though I have improved my mind somewhat since that time, I still remain of the same opinion; but I trust my motives will excuse what might otherwise seem presumptuous. I have not written my experiences in order to attract attention to myself; on the contrary, it would have been more pleasant to me to have been silent about my own history. Neither do I care to excite sympathy for my own sufferings. But I do earnestly desire to arouse the women of the North to a realizing sense of the condition of two millions of women at the South, still in bondage, suffering what I suffered, and most of them far worse. I want to add my testimony to that of abler pens to convince the people of the Free States what Slavery really is. Only by experience can any one realize how deep, and dark, and foul is that pit of abominations. May the blessing of God rest on this imperfect effort in behalf of my persecuted people!

When I first got to Philadelphia, Bishop Paine suggested that I share my life story, but I told him I felt completely unqualified for such a task. Although I've developed my thinking a bit since then, I still believe the same thing; however, I hope my intentions will justify what might otherwise come off as arrogant. I haven’t written about my experiences to draw attention to myself; honestly, I would rather have stayed quiet about my own past. I also don’t want to evoke sympathy for my own hardships. What I genuinely want is to awaken the women of the North to the reality faced by two million women in the South who are still enslaved, enduring what I went through, and for many, it's much worse. I aim to add my voice to those more capable than mine to help the people in the Free States truly understand what Slavery is. Only through experience can anyone grasp how deep, dark, and vile that pit of horrors really is. May God bless this imperfect effort on behalf of my oppressed people!

Linda Brent.










Introduction by the Editor

The author of the following autobiography is personally known to me, and her conversation and manners inspire me with confidence. During the last seventeen years, she has lived the greater part of the time with a distinguished family in New York, and has so deported herself as to be highly esteemed by them. This fact is sufficient, without further credentials of her character. I believe those who know her will not be disposed to doubt her veracity, though some incidents in her story are more romantic than fiction.

The author of this autobiography is someone I know personally, and her conversation and behavior give me confidence in her. For the past seventeen years, she has spent most of her time with a respected family in New York, and she has conducted herself in a way that has earned her high regard from them. This alone is enough to validate her character. I believe that anyone who knows her will have no reason to question her truthfulness, even if some of the events in her story seem more dramatic than fiction.

At her request, I have revised her manuscript; but such changes as I have made have been mainly for purposes of condensation and orderly arrangement. I have not added any thing to the incidents, or changed the import of her very pertinent remarks. With trifling exceptions, both the ideas and the language are her own. I pruned excrescences a little, but otherwise I had no reason for changing her lively and dramatic way of telling her own story. The names of both persons and places are known to me; but for good reasons I suppress them.

At her request, I’ve revised her manuscript. The changes I made were mainly for condensation and to make it more organized. I didn’t add anything to the events or alter the meaning of her relevant comments. With a few minor exceptions, the ideas and the language are entirely hers. I trimmed some unnecessary parts, but I saw no need to change her vibrant and dramatic way of telling her story. I know the names of both the people and places, but I’m keeping them private for good reasons.

It will naturally excite surprise that a woman reared in Slavery should be able to write so well. But circumstances will explain this. In the first place, nature endowed her with quick perceptions. Secondly, the mistress, with whom she lived till she was twelve years old, was a kind, considerate friend, who taught her to read and spell. Thirdly, she was placed in favorable circumstances after she came to the North; having frequent intercourse with intelligent persons, who felt a friendly interest in her welfare, and were disposed to give her opportunities for self-improvement.

It’s surprising that a woman who grew up in slavery can write so well. But the reasons for this are clear. First, she had a natural talent for learning quickly. Second, the mistress she lived with until she was twelve was a kind, supportive figure who taught her how to read and write. Third, when she moved North, she found herself in a supportive environment with intelligent people who cared about her well-being and were eager to help her improve herself.

I am well aware that many will accuse me of indecorum for presenting these pages to the public; for the experiences of this intelligent and much-injured woman belong to a class which some call delicate subjects, and others indelicate. This peculiar phase of Slavery has generally been kept veiled; but the public ought to be made acquainted with its monstrous features, and I willingly take the responsibility of presenting them with the veil withdrawn. I do this for the sake of my sisters in bondage, who are suffering wrongs so foul, that our ears are too delicate to listen to them. I do it with the hope of arousing conscientious and reflecting women at the North to a sense of their duty in the exertion of moral influence on the question of Slavery, on all possible occasions. I do it with the hope that every man who reads this narrative will swear solemnly before God that, so far as he has power to prevent it, no fugitive from Slavery shall ever be sent back to suffer in that loathsome den of corruption and cruelty.

I know that many people will criticize me for sharing these pages with the public; the experiences of this intelligent and greatly wronged woman touch on topics that some consider sensitive, while others see them as inappropriate. This particular aspect of slavery has usually been kept hidden, but the public deserves to learn about its horrific realities, and I'm willing to take responsibility for revealing them. I'm doing this for my sisters in bondage, who endure such terrible injustices that our ears are too sensitive to hear about them. I hope to inspire thoughtful and conscientious women in the North to recognize their duty to exert moral influence on the issue of slavery whenever possible. I also hope that every man who reads this story will make a serious promise before God that, as long as he has the power, no runaway from slavery will ever be forced back into that repulsive place of corruption and cruelty.

L. Maria Child.










INCIDENTS
IN THE
LIFE OF A SLAVE GIRL,
SEVEN YEARS CONCEALED.










I. Childhood

I was born a slave; but I never knew it till six years of happy childhood had passed away. My father was a carpenter, and considered so intelligent and skilful in his trade, that, when buildings out of the common line were to be erected, he was sent for from long distances, to be head workman. On condition of paying his mistress two hundred dollars a year, and supporting himself, he was allowed to work at his trade, and manage his own affairs. His strongest wish was to purchase his children; but, though he several times offered his hard earnings for that purpose, he never succeeded. In complexion my parents were a light shade of brownish yellow, and were termed mulattoes. They lived together in a comfortable home; and, though we were all slaves, I was so fondly shielded that I never dreamed I was a piece of merchandise, trusted to them for safe keeping, and liable to be demanded of them at any moment. I had one brother, William, who was two years younger than myself—a bright, affectionate child. I had also a great treasure in my maternal grandmother, who was a remarkable woman in many respects. She was the daughter of a planter in South Carolina, who, at his death, left her mother and his three children free, with money to go to St. Augustine, where they had relatives. It was during the Revolutionary War; and they were captured on their passage, carried back, and sold to different purchasers. Such was the story my grandmother used to tell me; but I do not remember all the particulars. She was a little girl when she was captured and sold to the keeper of a large hotel. I have often heard her tell how hard she fared during childhood. But as she grew older she evinced so much intelligence, and was so faithful, that her master and mistress could not help seeing it was for their interest to take care of such a valuable piece of property. She became an indispensable personage in the household, officiating in all capacities, from cook and wet nurse to seamstress. She was much praised for her cooking; and her nice crackers became so famous in the neighborhood that many people were desirous of obtaining them. In consequence of numerous requests of this kind, she asked permission of her mistress to bake crackers at night, after all the household work was done; and she obtained leave to do it, provided she would clothe herself and her children from the profits. Upon these terms, after working hard all day for her mistress, she began her midnight bakings, assisted by her two oldest children. The business proved profitable; and each year she laid by a little, which was saved for a fund to purchase her children. Her master died, and the property was divided among his heirs. The widow had her dower in the hotel, which she continued to keep open. My grandmother remained in her service as a slave; but her children were divided among her master’s children. As she had five, Benjamin, the youngest one, was sold, in order that each heir might have an equal portion of dollars and cents. There was so little difference in our ages that he seemed more like my brother than my uncle. He was a bright, handsome lad, nearly white; for he inherited the complexion my grandmother had derived from Anglo-Saxon ancestors. Though only ten years old, seven hundred and twenty dollars were paid for him. His sale was a terrible blow to my grandmother; but she was naturally hopeful, and she went to work with renewed energy, trusting in time to be able to purchase some of her children. She had laid up three hundred dollars, which her mistress one day begged as a loan, promising to pay her soon. The reader probably knows that no promise or writing given to a slave is legally binding; for, according to Southern laws, a slave, being property, can hold no property. When my grandmother lent her hard earnings to her mistress, she trusted solely to her honor. The honor of a slaveholder to a slave!

I was born a slave, but I didn’t realize it until six years of a happy childhood had gone by. My father was a carpenter, known for being smart and skilled at his work, so he was often called from far away to lead projects for unusual buildings. He was allowed to work at his trade and manage his own affairs as long as he paid his mistress two hundred dollars a year and supported himself. His greatest desire was to buy his children’s freedom, but despite offering his hard-earned money multiple times, he was never able to do so. My parents had a light brownish-yellow complexion and were called mulattoes. They lived together in a comfortable home, and even though we were all slaves, I was so lovingly protected that I never imagined I was simply a piece of property, entrusted to them for safekeeping and subject to being taken away at any moment. I had one brother, William, who was two years younger than me—a bright and affectionate child. I also cherished my maternal grandmother, who was remarkable in many ways. She was the daughter of a planter in South Carolina, who, upon his death, left her mother and his three children free, along with money to travel to St. Augustine, where they had relatives. This was during the Revolutionary War; they were captured during their journey, taken back, and sold to different buyers. That was the story my grandmother told me, though I don’t remember all the details. She was just a little girl when she was captured and sold to the owner of a large hotel. I often heard her talk about how difficult her childhood was. However, as she grew older, she showed so much intelligence and loyalty that her master and mistress realized it was in their best interest to take care of her because she was such a valuable asset. She became an essential part of the household, working in all roles, from cook and wet nurse to seamstress. She was highly praised for her cooking, and her delicious crackers became so well-known in the neighborhood that many people wanted to buy them. Because of the numerous requests, she asked her mistress for permission to bake crackers at night after finishing all her household chores, and she was granted permission as long as she used the profits to provide for herself and her children. With those terms, she started her midnight baking sessions after working hard all day, helped by her two oldest children. The business was profitable, and each year she saved a little, which was meant to buy her children’s freedom. When her master died, the property was split among his heirs. His widow kept the hotel open and my grandmother remained enslaved to her, while her children were divided among her master's children. Since she had five children, Benjamin, the youngest, was sold so that each heir would receive an equal share of the money. There was so little difference in our ages that he felt more like my brother than my uncle. He was a bright, handsome boy, nearly white, taking after my grandmother’s Anglo-Saxon ancestry. Even at just ten years old, he was sold for seven hundred and twenty dollars. His sale was a huge blow to my grandmother, but she was naturally optimistic and got to work with renewed determination, hoping she could eventually buy back some of her children. She had saved three hundred dollars, which one day her mistress asked to borrow, promising to pay her back soon. The reader likely knows that no promise or written agreement given to a slave is legally binding; according to Southern laws, a slave, as property, cannot own any property. When my grandmother lent her hard-earned money to her mistress, she relied solely on her trust. The trust of a slaveholder to a slave!

To this good grandmother I was indebted for many comforts. My brother Willie and I often received portions of the crackers, cakes, and preserves, she made to sell; and after we ceased to be children we were indebted to her for many more important services.

To this great grandmother, I owed many comforts. My brother Willie and I often got some of the crackers, cakes, and preserves she made to sell; and after we grew up, we relied on her for many more significant things.

Such were the unusually fortunate circumstances of my early childhood. When I was six years old, my mother died; and then, for the first time, I learned, by the talk around me, that I was a slave. My mother’s mistress was the daughter of my grandmother’s mistress. She was the foster sister of my mother; they were both nourished at my grandmother’s breast. In fact, my mother had been weaned at three months old, that the babe of the mistress might obtain sufficient food. They played together as children; and, when they became women, my mother was a most faithful servant to her whiter foster sister. On her death-bed her mistress promised that her children should never suffer for any thing; and during her lifetime she kept her word. They all spoke kindly of my dead mother, who had been a slave merely in name, but in nature was noble and womanly. I grieved for her, and my young mind was troubled with the thought who would now take care of me and my little brother. I was told that my home was now to be with her mistress; and I found it a happy one. No toilsome or disagreeable duties were imposed upon me. My mistress was so kind to me that I was always glad to do her bidding, and proud to labor for her as much as my young years would permit. I would sit by her side for hours, sewing diligently, with a heart as free from care as that of any free-born white child. When she thought I was tired, she would send me out to run and jump; and away I bounded, to gather berries or flowers to decorate her room. Those were happy days—too happy to last. The slave child had no thought for the morrow; but there came that blight, which too surely waits on every human being born to be a chattel.

Such were the unusually fortunate circumstances of my early childhood. When I was six years old, my mother died; and then, for the first time, I learned, through the conversations around me, that I was a slave. My mother’s mistress was the daughter of my grandmother’s mistress. She was my mother’s foster sister; they were both fed at my grandmother’s breast. In fact, my mother had been weaned at three months old so that the baby of the mistress could have enough to eat. They played together as children; and when they grew up, my mother was a devoted servant to her white foster sister. On her deathbed, her mistress promised that her children would never suffer, and during her life, she kept that promise. They all spoke kindly of my deceased mother, who had been a slave in name only, but was truly noble and womanly in spirit. I mourned for her, and my young mind was troubled with the worry of who would take care of me and my little brother now. I was told that I would live with her mistress, and I found it to be a happy home. No hard or unpleasant duties were assigned to me. My mistress was so kind that I was always eager to obey her, proud to work for her as much as my young age allowed. I would sit by her side for hours, sewing diligently, with a heart as carefree as any free-born white child. When she thought I was tired, she would send me outside to run and jump; and off I would go, to pick berries or flowers to decorate her room. Those were happy days—too happy to last. The slave child had no concern for the future; but that shadow came, which inevitably awaits every human being born to be property.

When I was nearly twelve years old, my kind mistress sickened and died. As I saw the cheek grow paler, and the eye more glassy, how earnestly I prayed in my heart that she might live! I loved her; for she had been almost like a mother to me. My prayers were not answered. She died, and they buried her in the little churchyard, where, day after day, my tears fell upon her grave.

When I was almost twelve, my kind mistress got sick and died. As I watched her cheek grow paler and her eyes become more glassy, I prayed desperately in my heart for her to live! I loved her because she had been like a mother to me. My prayers went unanswered. She passed away, and they buried her in the small churchyard, where my tears fell on her grave day after day.

I was sent to spend a week with my grandmother. I was now old enough to begin to think of the future; and again and again I asked myself what they would do with me. I felt sure I should never find another mistress so kind as the one who was gone. She had promised my dying mother that her children should never suffer for any thing; and when I remembered that, and recalled her many proofs of attachment to me, I could not help having some hopes that she had left me free. My friends were almost certain it would be so. They thought she would be sure to do it, on account of my mother’s love and faithful service. But, alas! we all know that the memory of a faithful slave does not avail much to save her children from the auction block.

I was sent to spend a week with my grandmother. I was now old enough to start thinking about the future, and over and over, I asked myself what would happen to me. I was sure I’d never find another boss as kind as the one who had passed away. She had promised my dying mother that her children would never go without anything, and when I thought about that and remembered her many acts of kindness towards me, I couldn’t help but hold onto some hope that she had left me free. My friends were almost certain it would be the case. They believed she would definitely do it because of my mother’s love and loyalty. But, unfortunately, we all know that the memory of a loyal servant doesn’t mean much when it comes to protecting her children from being sold off.

After a brief period of suspense, the will of my mistress was read, and we learned that she had bequeathed me to her sister’s daughter, a child of five years old. So vanished our hopes. My mistress had taught me the precepts of God’s Word: “Thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself.” “Whatsoever ye would that men should do unto you, do ye even so unto them.” But I was her slave, and I suppose she did not recognize me as her neighbor. I would give much to blot out from my memory that one great wrong. As a child, I loved my mistress; and, looking back on the happy days I spent with her, I try to think with less bitterness of this act of injustice. While I was with her, she taught me to read and spell; and for this privilege, which so rarely falls to the lot of a slave, I bless her memory.

After a short wait, my mistress's will was read, and we found out that she had left me to her sister’s five-year-old daughter. That’s when all our hopes disappeared. My mistress had taught me the teachings of God’s Word: “Love your neighbor as yourself.” “Do to others what you would want them to do to you.” But I was her slave, and I guess she didn’t see me as her neighbor. I would do anything to erase that one major injustice from my memory. As a child, I loved my mistress; and looking back on the happy times I had with her, I try to think less bitterly about this act of unfairness. While I was with her, she taught me how to read and spell; and for this opportunity, which is so rare for a slave, I am grateful for her memory.

She possessed but few slaves; and at her death those were all distributed among her relatives. Five of them were my grandmother’s children, and had shared the same milk that nourished her mother’s children. Notwithstanding my grandmother’s long and faithful service to her owners, not one of her children escaped the auction block. These God-breathing machines are no more, in the sight of their masters, than the cotton they plant, or the horses they tend.

She had very few slaves, and when she died, they were all given to her relatives. Five of them were my grandmother's children, who had grown up drinking the same milk as her mother’s kids. Despite my grandmother’s long and loyal service to her owners, none of her children escaped being sold at auction. To their masters, these breathing beings were nothing more than the cotton they grew or the horses they cared for.










II. The New Master And Mistress.

Dr. Flint, a physician in the neighborhood, had married the sister of my mistress, and I was now the property of their little daughter. It was not without murmuring that I prepared for my new home; and what added to my unhappiness, was the fact that my brother William was purchased by the same family. My father, by his nature, as well as by the habit of transacting business as a skilful mechanic, had more of the feelings of a freeman than is common among slaves. My brother was a spirited boy; and being brought up under such influences, he early detested the name of master and mistress. One day, when his father and his mistress both happened to call him at the same time, he hesitated between the two; being perplexed to know which had the strongest claim upon his obedience. He finally concluded to go to his mistress. When my father reproved him for it, he said, “You both called me, and I didn’t know which I ought to go to first.”

Dr. Flint, a local doctor, had married my mistress's sister, and I was now the property of their little girl. I wasn't thrilled about moving to my new home, especially since my brother William was bought by the same family. My father, because of his nature and his skills as a mechanic, felt more like a free man than most slaves did. My brother was a spirited kid; growing up in that environment, he quickly began to hate the terms "master" and "mistress." One day, when both his father and his mistress called him at the same time, he hesitated, confused about who he should listen to first. In the end, he chose to go to his mistress. When our father scolded him for it, he replied, “You both called me, and I didn’t know which I should go to first.”

“You are my child,” replied our father, “and when I call you, you should come immediately, if you have to pass through fire and water.”

“You are my child,” our father replied, “and when I call you, you should come right away, even if you have to go through fire and water.”

Poor Willie! He was now to learn his first lesson of obedience to a master. Grandmother tried to cheer us with hopeful words, and they found an echo in the credulous hearts of youth.

Poor Willie! He was about to learn his first lesson in obeying a master. Grandmother tried to comfort us with encouraging words, and they resonated in the trusting hearts of young people.

When we entered our new home we encountered cold looks, cold words, and cold treatment. We were glad when the night came. On my narrow bed I moaned and wept, I felt so desolate and alone.

When we stepped into our new home, we faced icy stares, harsh words, and unfriendly treatment. We were relieved when night fell. Lying on my small bed, I groaned and cried; I felt so lonely and lost.

I had been there nearly a year, when a dear little friend of mine was buried. I heard her mother sob, as the clods fell on the coffin of her only child, and I turned away from the grave, feeling thankful that I still had something left to love. I met my grandmother, who said, “Come with me, Linda;” and from her tone I knew that something sad had happened. She led me apart from the people, and then said, “My child, your father is dead.” Dead! How could I believe it? He had died so suddenly I had not even heard that he was sick. I went home with my grandmother. My heart rebelled against God, who had taken from me mother, father, mistress, and friend. The good grandmother tried to comfort me. “Who knows the ways of God?” said she. “Perhaps they have been kindly taken from the evil days to come.” Years afterwards I often thought of this. She promised to be a mother to her grandchildren, so far as she might be permitted to do so; and strengthened by her love, I returned to my master’s. I thought I should be allowed to go to my father’s house the next morning; but I was ordered to go for flowers, that my mistress’s house might be decorated for an evening party. I spent the day gathering flowers and weaving them into festoons, while the dead body of my father was lying within a mile of me. What cared my owners for that? he was merely a piece of property. Moreover, they thought he had spoiled his children, by teaching them to feel that they were human beings. This was blasphemous doctrine for a slave to teach; presumptuous in him, and dangerous to the masters.

I had been there for almost a year when a dear little friend of mine was buried. I heard her mother sob as the dirt fell on the coffin of her only child, and I turned away from the grave, feeling grateful that I still had something left to love. I met my grandmother, who said, “Come with me, Linda;” and from her tone, I knew something sad had happened. She led me away from the crowd and then said, “My child, your father is dead.” Dead! How could I believe it? He had died so suddenly that I hadn’t even heard he was sick. I went home with my grandmother. My heart rebelled against God, who had taken from me my mother, father, mistress, and friend. My kind grandmother tried to comfort me. “Who knows the ways of God?” she said. “Perhaps they have been kindly taken from the evil days to come.” Years later, I often thought about this. She promised to be a mother to her grandchildren as much as she could; and strengthened by her love, I returned to my master’s. I thought I would be allowed to go to my father’s house the next morning; but instead, I was ordered to go collect flowers so that my mistress’s house could be decorated for an evening party. I spent the day gathering flowers and weaving them into garlands while my father’s dead body lay within a mile of me. What did my owners care about that? He was merely a piece of property. Moreover, they thought he had spoiled his children by teaching them to feel that they were human beings. This was considered blasphemous doctrine for a slave to teach; it was presumptuous of him and dangerous to the masters.

The next day I followed his remains to a humble grave beside that of my dear mother. There were those who knew my father’s worth, and respected his memory.

The next day I followed his remains to a simple grave next to my dear mother's. There were people who recognized my father's value and honored his memory.

My home now seemed more dreary than ever. The laugh of the little slave-children sounded harsh and cruel. It was selfish to feel so about the joy of others. My brother moved about with a very grave face. I tried to comfort him, by saying, “Take courage, Willie; brighter days will come by and by.”

My home felt more depressing than ever. The laughter of the little slave kids sounded harsh and cruel. It felt selfish to think that way about other people's joy. My brother walked around with a very serious expression. I tried to cheer him up by saying, “Stay strong, Willie; better days will come eventually.”

“You don’t know any thing about it, Linda,” he replied. “We shall have to stay here all our days; we shall never be free.”

"You don't know anything about it, Linda," he replied. "We're going to have to stay here for the rest of our lives; we'll never be free."

I argued that we were growing older and stronger, and that perhaps we might, before long, be allowed to hire our own time, and then we could earn money to buy our freedom. William declared this was much easier to say than to do; moreover, he did not intend to buy his freedom. We held daily controversies upon this subject.

I said that we were getting older and stronger, and that maybe soon we would be able to manage our own time, which would let us earn money to buy our freedom. William insisted that this was much easier said than done; besides, he didn’t plan to buy his freedom. We had daily debates about this topic.

Little attention was paid to the slaves’ meals in Dr. Flint’s house. If they could catch a bit of food while it was going, well and good. I gave myself no trouble on that score, for on my various errands I passed my grandmother’s house, where there was always something to spare for me. I was frequently threatened with punishment if I stopped there; and my grandmother, to avoid detaining me, often stood at the gate with something for my breakfast or dinner. I was indebted to her for all my comforts, spiritual or temporal. It was her labor that supplied my scanty wardrobe. I have a vivid recollection of the linsey-woolsey dress given me every winter by Mrs. Flint. How I hated it! It was one of the badges of slavery.

Little attention was given to the slaves’ meals in Dr. Flint’s house. If they managed to grab a bit of food while it was being served, great. I didn't worry about that, because on my various errands, I passed my grandmother’s house, where there was always something for me. I was often threatened with punishment if I lingered there, so my grandmother would sometimes wait at the gate with something for my breakfast or lunch to keep me moving. I owed her all of my comforts, both spiritual and material. It was her hard work that provided for my meager wardrobe. I clearly remember the linsey-woolsey dress that Mrs. Flint gave me every winter. How I despised it! It was one of the symbols of slavery.

While my grandmother was thus helping to support me from her hard earnings, the three hundred dollars she had lent her mistress were never repaid. When her mistress died, her son-in-law, Dr. Flint, was appointed executor. When grandmother applied to him for payment, he said the estate was insolvent, and the law prohibited payment. It did not, however, prohibit him from retaining the silver candelabra, which had been purchased with that money. I presume they will be handed down in the family, from generation to generation.

While my grandmother was supporting me with her hard-earned money, the three hundred dollars she lent her employer were never paid back. When her employer died, her son-in-law, Dr. Flint, became the executor. When my grandmother asked him for repayment, he claimed the estate was bankrupt and the law didn’t allow for payment. However, it didn’t stop him from keeping the silver candelabra that had been bought with that money. I guess they will be passed down through the family for generations to come.

My grandmother’s mistress had always promised her that, at her death, she should be free; and it was said that in her will she made good the promise. But when the estate was settled, Dr. Flint told the faithful old servant that, under existing circumstances, it was necessary she should be sold.

My grandmother's mistress had always promised her that when she died, she would be free; and it was said that in her will she fulfilled that promise. But when the estate was settled, Dr. Flint told the loyal old servant that, given the current situation, she needed to be sold.

On the appointed day, the customary advertisement was posted up, proclaiming that there would be a “public sale of negroes, horses, &c.” Dr. Flint called to tell my grandmother that he was unwilling to wound her feelings by putting her up at auction, and that he would prefer to dispose of her at private sale. My grandmother saw through his hypocrisy; she understood very well that he was ashamed of the job. She was a very spirited woman, and if he was base enough to sell her, when her mistress intended she should be free, she was determined the public should know it. She had for a long time supplied many families with crackers and preserves; consequently, “Aunt Marthy,” as she was called, was generally known, and every body who knew her respected her intelligence and good character. Her long and faithful service in the family was also well known, and the intention of her mistress to leave her free. When the day of sale came, she took her place among the chattels, and at the first call she sprang upon the auction-block. Many voices called out, “Shame! Shame! Who is going to sell you, aunt Marthy? Don’t stand there! That is no place for you.” Without saying a word, she quietly awaited her fate. No one bid for her. At last, a feeble voice said, “Fifty dollars.” It came from a maiden lady, seventy years old, the sister of my grandmother’s deceased mistress. She had lived forty years under the same roof with my grandmother; she knew how faithfully she had served her owners, and how cruelly she had been defrauded of her rights; and she resolved to protect her. The auctioneer waited for a higher bid; but her wishes were respected; no one bid above her. She could neither read nor write; and when the bill of sale was made out, she signed it with a cross. But what consequence was that, when she had a big heart overflowing with human kindness? She gave the old servant her freedom.

On the scheduled day, the usual announcement was posted, stating there would be a “public sale of blacks, horses, etc.” Dr. Flint came by to inform my grandmother that he didn’t want to hurt her feelings by auctioning her off and preferred to sell her privately. My grandmother saw right through his deceit; she realized he was embarrassed about what he was doing. She was a very strong-willed woman, and if he was low enough to sell her when her mistress intended for her to be free, she was determined that everyone should know. For a long time, she had provided many families with crackers and preserves; as a result, “Aunt Marthy,” as she was known, was well-respected and recognized for her intelligence and good character. Her long and loyal service to the family was also well-known, along with her mistress's intention to free her. When the auction day arrived, she took her place among the items for sale, and at the first call, she stepped up onto the auction block. Many voices shouted, “Shame! Shame! Who is going to sell you, Aunt Marthy? Don’t stand there! That’s no place for you.” Without saying a word, she calmly awaited her fate. No one placed a bid on her. Finally, a weak voice said, “Fifty dollars.” It came from a seventy-year-old single woman, the sister of my grandmother’s late mistress. She had lived under the same roof as my grandmother for forty years; she knew how faithfully she had served her owners and how cruelly she had been robbed of her rights, and she decided to protect her. The auctioneer waited for a higher bid, but her wishes were honored; no one bid over her amount. She couldn’t read or write, and when the bill of sale was prepared, she signed it with a cross. But what did that matter when she had a big heart full of kindness? She gave the old servant her freedom.

At that time, my grandmother was just fifty years old. Laborious years had passed since then; and now my brother and I were slaves to the man who had defrauded her of her money, and tried to defraud her of her freedom. One of my mother’s sisters, called Aunt Nancy, was also a slave in his family. She was a kind, good aunt to me; and supplied the place of both housekeeper and waiting maid to her mistress. She was, in fact, at the beginning and end of every thing.

At that time, my grandmother was only fifty years old. A lot of hard years had gone by since then; and now my brother and I were stuck working for the man who swindled her out of her money and tried to take away her freedom. One of my mom’s sisters, Aunt Nancy, was also enslaved in his household. She was a kind and caring aunt to me and took on the roles of both housekeeper and maid for her mistress. She was, in fact, involved in everything from start to finish.

Mrs. Flint, like many southern women, was totally deficient in energy. She had not strength to superintend her household affairs; but her nerves were so strong, that she could sit in her easy chair and see a woman whipped, till the blood trickled from every stroke of the lash. She was a member of the church; but partaking of the Lord’s supper did not seem to put her in a Christian frame of mind. If dinner was not served at the exact time on that particular Sunday, she would station herself in the kitchen, and wait till it was dished, and then spit in all the kettles and pans that had been used for cooking. She did this to prevent the cook and her children from eking out their meagre fare with the remains of the gravy and other scrapings. The slaves could get nothing to eat except what she chose to give them. Provisions were weighed out by the pound and ounce, three times a day. I can assure you she gave them no chance to eat wheat bread from her flour barrel. She knew how many biscuits a quart of flour would make, and exactly what size they ought to be.

Mrs. Flint, like many Southern women, was completely lacking in energy. She didn’t have the strength to manage her household, but her nerves were so strong that she could sit in her comfy chair and watch a woman get whipped until blood dripped from every strike of the lash. She was a church member, but participating in the Lord’s Supper didn’t seem to put her in a Christian mindset. If dinner wasn’t served at the exact time on that particular Sunday, she would stand in the kitchen and wait until it was ready, then spit in all the pots and pans that had been used for cooking. She did this to keep the cook and her children from stretching their meager meals with leftovers of gravy and other scraps. The slaves could only eat what she decided to give them. Food was measured out by the pound and ounce, three times a day. I can assure you she didn’t give them a chance to eat wheat bread from her flour barrel. She knew exactly how many biscuits a quart of flour would make and what size they were supposed to be.

Dr. Flint was an epicure. The cook never sent a dinner to his table without fear and trembling; for if there happened to be a dish not to his liking, he would either order her to be whipped, or compel her to eat every mouthful of it in his presence. The poor, hungry creature might not have objected to eating it; but she did object to having her master cram it down her throat till she choked.

Dr. Flint was a foodie. The cook always sent meals to his table with anxiety; if there was ever a dish he didn't like, he would either have her punished or force her to eat every bite in front of him. The poor, starving woman might not have minded eating it, but she absolutely hated having her boss force it down her throat until she choked.

They had a pet dog, that was a nuisance in the house. The cook was ordered to make some Indian mush for him. He refused to eat, and when his head was held over it, the froth flowed from his mouth into the basin. He died a few minutes after. When Dr. Flint came in, he said the mush had not been well cooked, and that was the reason the animal would not eat it. He sent for the cook, and compelled her to eat it. He thought that the woman’s stomach was stronger than the dog’s; but her sufferings afterwards proved that he was mistaken. This poor woman endured many cruelties from her master and mistress; sometimes she was locked up, away from her nursing baby, for a whole day and night.

They had a pet dog that was a real hassle in the house. The cook was told to make some Indian mush for him. He wouldn’t eat it, and when they held his head over the bowl, foam dripped from his mouth into it. He died a few minutes later. When Dr. Flint came in, he said the mush wasn’t cooked properly, and that was why the dog wouldn’t eat it. He called for the cook and forced her to eat it. He thought her stomach was stronger than the dog’s, but her suffering afterwards showed he was wrong. This poor woman endured a lot of cruelty from her master and mistress; sometimes she was locked up, away from her nursing baby, for an entire day and night.

When I had been in the family a few weeks, one of the plantation slaves was brought to town, by order of his master. It was near night when he arrived, and Dr. Flint ordered him to be taken to the work house, and tied up to the joist, so that his feet would just escape the ground. In that situation he was to wait till the doctor had taken his tea. I shall never forget that night. Never before, in my life, had I heard hundreds of blows fall, in succession, on a human being. His piteous groans, and his “O, pray don’t, massa,” rang in my ear for months afterwards. There were many conjectures as to the cause of this terrible punishment. Some said master accused him of stealing corn; others said the slave had quarrelled with his wife, in presence of the overseer, and had accused his master of being the father of her child. They were both black, and the child was very fair.

When I had been with the family for a few weeks, one of the plantation slaves was brought to town by his master's order. It was getting dark when he arrived, and Dr. Flint ordered him to be taken to the workhouse and tied up to the joist, so that his feet barely touched the ground. In that position, he was to wait until the doctor had finished his tea. I will never forget that night. Never before had I heard hundreds of blows falling one after another on a human being. His pitiful groans and his “Oh, please don’t, master,” echoed in my ears for months after. There were many guesses about why he was being punished so harshly. Some said the master accused him of stealing corn; others said the slave had argued with his wife in front of the overseer and claimed his master was the father of her child. They were both black, but the child was very light-skinned.

I went into the work house next morning, and saw the cowhide still wet with blood, and the boards all covered with gore. The poor man lived, and continued to quarrel with his wife. A few months afterwards Dr. Flint handed them both over to a slave-trader. The guilty man put their value into his pocket, and had the satisfaction of knowing that they were out of sight and hearing. When the mother was delivered into the trader’s hands, she said, “You promised to treat me well.” To which he replied, “You have let your tongue run too far; damn you!” She had forgotten that it was a crime for a slave to tell who was the father of her child.

I went into the workhouse the next morning and saw the cowhide still wet with blood, and the boards all covered with gore. The poor man lived and kept arguing with his wife. A few months later, Dr. Flint handed them both over to a slave trader. The guilty man pocketed their value and felt satisfied knowing they were out of sight and hearing. When the mother was handed over to the trader, she said, “You promised to treat me well.” He replied, “You’ve talked too much; damn you!” She had forgotten that it was a crime for a slave to reveal who the father of her child was.

From others than the master persecution also comes in such cases. I once saw a young slave girl dying soon after the birth of a child nearly white. In her agony she cried out, “O Lord, come and take me!” Her mistress stood by, and mocked at her like an incarnate fiend. “You suffer, do you?” she exclaimed. “I am glad of it. You deserve it all, and more too.”

From people other than the master, persecution can also happen in these situations. I once saw a young slave girl die shortly after giving birth to a child who was almost white. In her pain, she cried out, “O Lord, come and take me!” Her mistress stood nearby, mocking her like a heartless fiend. “You’re in pain, are you?” she exclaimed. “I’m glad to see that. You deserve every bit of it, and even more.”

The girl’s mother said, “The baby is dead, thank God; and I hope my poor child will soon be in heaven, too.”

The girl's mom said, "The baby is gone, thank God; and I hope my poor child will be in heaven soon, too."

“Heaven!” retorted the mistress. “There is no such place for the like of her and her bastard.”

“Heaven!” the mistress shot back. “There’s no place like that for someone like her and her illegitimate child.”

The poor mother turned away, sobbing. Her dying daughter called her, feebly, and as she bent over her, I heard her say, “Don’t grieve so, mother; God knows all about it; and HE will have mercy upon me.”

The poor mother turned away, crying. Her dying daughter called her weakly, and as she leaned over her, I heard her say, “Don’t be so sad, mom; God knows everything; and He will have mercy on me.”

Her sufferings, afterwards, became so intense, that her mistress felt unable to stay; but when she left the room, the scornful smile was still on her lips. Seven children called her mother. The poor black woman had but the one child, whose eyes she saw closing in death, while she thanked God for taking her away from the greater bitterness of life.

Her suffering later became so intense that her mistress felt she couldn't stay; but when she left the room, a scornful smile was still on her lips. Seven children called her mother. The poor black woman had only one child, whose eyes she saw closing in death while she thanked God for taking her away from the greater bitterness of life.










III. The Slaves’ New Year’s Day.

Dr. Flint owned a fine residence in town, several farms, and about fifty slaves, besides hiring a number by the year.

Dr. Flint owned a nice house in town, several farms, and about fifty slaves, in addition to hiring a number of them for the year.

Hiring-day at the south takes place on the 1st of January. On the 2d, the slaves are expected to go to their new masters. On a farm, they work until the corn and cotton are laid. They then have two holidays. Some masters give them a good dinner under the trees. This over, they work until Christmas eve. If no heavy charges are meantime brought against them, they are given four or five holidays, whichever the master or overseer may think proper. Then comes New Year’s eve; and they gather together their little alls, or more properly speaking, their little nothings, and wait anxiously for the dawning of day. At the appointed hour the grounds are thronged with men, women, and children, waiting, like criminals, to hear their doom pronounced. The slave is sure to know who is the most humane, or cruel master, within forty miles of him.

Hiring day in the South takes place on January 1st. On the 2nd, the enslaved people are expected to go to their new owners. On a farm, they work until the corn and cotton are harvested. They then have two holidays. Some owners provide them with a nice dinner under the trees. After that, they work until Christmas Eve. If no serious complaints are made against them in the meantime, they receive four or five holidays, depending on what the owner or overseer thinks is appropriate. Then comes New Year’s Eve; they gather their few belongings, or more accurately, their little nothings, and wait anxiously for the dawn. At the appointed hour, the grounds are crowded with men, women, and children, waiting nervously to hear their fate announced. The enslaved person is sure to know who the most humane or cruel master is within a forty-mile radius.

It is easy to find out, on that day, who clothes and feeds his slaves well; for he is surrounded by a crowd, begging, “Please, massa, hire me this year. I will work very hard, massa.”

It’s easy to see, on that day, who takes good care of his slaves, because he's surrounded by a crowd, begging, “Please, sir, hire me this year. I’ll work really hard, sir.”

If a slave is unwilling to go with his new master, he is whipped, or locked up in jail, until he consents to go, and promises not to run away during the year. Should he chance to change his mind, thinking it justifiable to violate an extorted promise, woe unto him if he is caught! The whip is used till the blood flows at his feet; and his stiffened limbs are put in chains, to be dragged in the field for days and days!

If a slave refuses to go with his new owner, he gets whipped or thrown in jail until he agrees to go and promises not to escape for the year. If he happens to change his mind, believing it's okay to break a coerced promise, he is in serious trouble if he's caught! The whip is used until blood drips at his feet, and his rigid limbs are put in chains, to be dragged in the fields for days on end!

If he lives until the next year, perhaps the same man will hire him again, without even giving him an opportunity of going to the hiring-ground. After those for hire are disposed of, those for sale are called up.

If he makes it to next year, maybe the same guy will hire him again, without even giving him a chance to go to the hiring ground. After the people looking for work are taken care of, the ones for sale are called up.

O, you happy free women, contrast your New Year’s day with that of the poor bond-woman! With you it is a pleasant season, and the light of the day is blessed. Friendly wishes meet you every where, and gifts are showered upon you. Even hearts that have been estranged from you soften at this season, and lips that have been silent echo back, “I wish you a happy New Year.” Children bring their little offerings, and raise their rosy lips for a caress. They are your own, and no hand but that of death can take them from you.

Oh, you happy, free women, compare your New Year’s Day with that of the poor enslaved woman! For you, it’s a joyful time, and the daylight is full of blessings. Friendly wishes greet you everywhere, and gifts are poured upon you. Even those who have been distant from you become warm during this season, and lips that have been quiet say, “I wish you a happy New Year.” Children bring their little gifts and lift their rosy lips for a kiss. They are your own, and only death can take them from you.

But to the slave mother New Year’s day comes laden with peculiar sorrows. She sits on her cold cabin floor, watching the children who may all be torn from her the next morning; and often does she wish that she and they might die before the day dawns. She may be an ignorant creature, degraded by the system that has brutalized her from childhood; but she has a mother’s instincts, and is capable of feeling a mother’s agonies.

But for the enslaved mother, New Year’s Day brings its own unique sorrows. She sits on her cold cabin floor, watching her children, knowing they could all be taken from her the next morning; and often she wishes that she and they could die before dawn. She may be uneducated and dehumanized by the system that has oppressed her since childhood; but she has a mother’s instincts and is capable of feeling a mother’s pain.

On one of these sale days, I saw a mother lead seven children to the auction-block. She knew that some of them would be taken from her; but they took all. The children were sold to a slave-trader, and their mother was bought by a man in her own town. Before night her children were all far away. She begged the trader to tell her where he intended to take them; this he refused to do. How could he, when he knew he would sell them, one by one, wherever he could command the highest price? I met that mother in the street, and her wild, haggard face lives to-day in my mind. She wrung her hands in anguish, and exclaimed, “Gone! All gone! Why don’t God kill me?” I had no words wherewith to comfort her. Instances of this kind are of daily, yea, of hourly occurrence.

On one of these sale days, I saw a mother bring seven kids to the auction block. She knew that some of them would be taken from her; but they took all. The children were sold to a slave trader, and their mother was bought by a man from her own town. By nightfall, her children were all far away. She begged the trader to tell her where he planned to take them; he refused to say. How could he, when he knew he would sell them one by one, wherever he could get the highest price? I encountered that mother in the street, and her wild, haggard face stays in my mind today. She wrung her hands in despair and cried, “Gone! All gone! Why doesn't God just kill me?” I had no words to comfort her. Situations like this happen daily, even hourly.

Slaveholders have a method, peculiar to their institution, of getting rid of old slaves, whose lives have been worn out in their service. I knew an old woman, who for seventy years faithfully served her master. She had become almost helpless, from hard labor and disease. Her owners moved to Alabama, and the old black woman was left to be sold to any body who would give twenty dollars for her.

Slaveowners have a unique way, specific to their system, of disposing of old slaves whose lives have been exhausted by their toil. I knew an elderly woman who had dutifully served her master for seventy years. She had become almost incapable due to hard labor and illness. Her owners relocated to Alabama, leaving the old Black woman behind to be sold to anyone willing to pay twenty dollars for her.










IV. The Slave Who Dared To Feel Like A Man.

Two years had passed since I entered Dr. Flint’s family, and those years had brought much of the knowledge that comes from experience, though they had afforded little opportunity for any other kinds of knowledge.

Two years had gone by since I joined Dr. Flint’s family, and during that time I gained a lot of knowledge from experience, although I didn’t have many chances to learn anything else.

My grandmother had, as much as possible, been a mother to her orphan grandchildren. By perseverance and unwearied industry, she was now mistress of a snug little home, surrounded with the necessaries of life. She would have been happy could her children have shared them with her. There remained but three children and two grandchildren, all slaves. Most earnestly did she strive to make us feel that it was the will of God: that He had seen fit to place us under such circumstances; and though it seemed hard, we ought to pray for contentment.

My grandmother did her best to be a mother to her orphaned grandkids. Through hard work and determination, she had created a cozy little home filled with the essentials of life. She would have been happy if her children could enjoy it with her. There were only three children and two grandchildren left, all enslaved. She worked tirelessly to help us understand that this was God's will, that He had chosen to put us in these circumstances; and even though it felt unfair, we should pray for peace.

It was a beautiful faith, coming from a mother who could not call her children her own. But I, and Benjamin, her youngest boy, condemned it. We reasoned that it was much more the will of God that we should be situated as she was. We longed for a home like hers. There we always found sweet balsam for our troubles. She was so loving, so sympathizing! She always met us with a smile, and listened with patience to all our sorrows. She spoke so hopefully, that unconsciously the clouds gave place to sunshine. There was a grand big oven there, too, that baked bread and nice things for the town, and we knew there was always a choice bit in store for us.

It was a beautiful belief, coming from a mother who couldn’t call her children her own. But I, along with Benjamin, her youngest son, rejected it. We thought it was much more in line with God’s will for us to be in a situation like hers. We yearned for a home like that. There, we always found comfort for our troubles. She was so loving and understanding! She always greeted us with a smile and patiently listened to all our troubles. She spoke so positively that, without realizing it, the clouds cleared away to let in the sunshine. There was also a huge oven that baked bread and treats for the town, and we knew there was always a special treat saved just for us.

But, alas! Even the charms of the old oven failed to reconcile us to our hard lot. Benjamin was now a tall, handsome lad, strongly and gracefully made, and with a spirit too bold and daring for a slave. My brother William, now twelve years old, had the same aversion to the word master that he had when he was an urchin of seven years. I was his confidant. He came to me with all his troubles. I remember one instance in particular. It was on a lovely spring morning, and when I marked the sunlight dancing here and there, its beauty seemed to mock my sadness. For my master, whose restless, craving, vicious nature roved about day and night, seeking whom to devour, had just left me, with stinging, scorching words; words that scathed ear and brain like fire. O, how I despised him! I thought how glad I should be, if some day when he walked the earth, it would open and swallow him up, and disencumber the world of a plague.

But, unfortunately! Even the charm of the old oven couldn’t make us feel better about our tough situation. Benjamin was now a tall, handsome young man, strong and graceful, with a spirit too bold and daring for a slave. My brother William, now twelve years old, still had the same dislike for the word "master" that he did when he was just seven. I was his confidant. He came to me with all his worries. I remember one particular instance. It was a beautiful spring morning, and as I watched the sunlight dancing around, its beauty seemed to mock my sadness. My master, whose restless, greedy, vicious nature prowled day and night, hunting for someone to destroy, had just left me with stinging, scalding words; words that burned my ears and mind like fire. Oh, how I hated him! I thought about how happy I would be if one day, when he walked on the earth, it would open up and swallow him whole, freeing the world from a plague.

When he told me that I was made for his use, made to obey his command in every thing; that I was nothing but a slave, whose will must and should surrender to his, never before had my puny arm felt half so strong.

When he said that I was created for his purposes, meant to follow his orders in everything; that I was just a slave, whose will had to and should give in to his, I had never felt my weak arm so powerful before.

So deeply was I absorbed in painful reflections afterwards, that I neither saw nor heard the entrance of any one, till the voice of William sounded close beside me. “Linda,” said he, “what makes you look so sad? I love you. O, Linda, isn’t this a bad world? Every body seems so cross and unhappy. I wish I had died when poor father did.”

So caught up was I in my painful thoughts afterwards that I didn’t notice anyone come in until I heard William’s voice right next to me. “Linda,” he said, “why do you look so sad? I love you. Oh, Linda, isn’t this a terrible world? Everyone seems so angry and unhappy. I wish I had died when my poor dad did.”

I told him that every body was not cross, or unhappy; that those who had pleasant homes, and kind friends, and who were not afraid to love them, were happy. But we, who were slave-children, without father or mother, could not expect to be happy. We must be good; perhaps that would bring us contentment.

I told him that not everyone was angry or unhappy; that those who had nice homes, caring friends, and weren’t afraid to love them were happy. But we, who were enslaved children, without parents, couldn’t expect to be happy. We had to be good; maybe that would bring us some peace.

“Yes,” he said, “I try to be good; but what’s the use? They are all the time troubling me.” Then he proceeded to relate his afternoon’s difficulty with young master Nicholas. It seemed that the brother of master Nicholas had pleased himself with making up stories about William. Master Nicholas said he should be flogged, and he would do it. Whereupon he went to work; but William fought bravely, and the young master, finding he was getting the better of him, undertook to tie his hands behind him. He failed in that likewise. By dint of kicking and fisting, William came out of the skirmish none the worse for a few scratches.

“Yes,” he said, “I try to be good; but what’s the point? They’re always bothering me.” Then he went on to explain his afternoon struggle with young master Nicholas. It seemed that master Nicholas's brother enjoyed making up stories about William. Master Nicholas claimed he should be punished, and he was determined to do it. So he started to move in that direction; but William fought back fiercely, and when the young master realized he was losing, he tried to tie William’s hands behind his back. He didn’t succeed with that either. After some kicking and hitting, William came out of the fight with just a few scratches.

He continued to discourse, on his young master’s meanness; how he whipped the little boys, but was a perfect coward when a tussle ensued between him and white boys of his own size. On such occasions he always took to his legs. William had other charges to make against him. One was his rubbing up pennies with quicksilver, and passing them off for quarters of a dollar on an old man who kept a fruit stall. William was often sent to buy fruit, and he earnestly inquired of me what he ought to do under such circumstances. I told him it was certainly wrong to deceive the old man, and that it was his duty to tell him of the impositions practised by his young master. I assured him the old man would not be slow to comprehend the whole, and there the matter would end. William thought it might with the old man, but not with him. He said he did not mind the smart of the whip, but he did not like the idea of being whipped.

He went on talking about his young master’s meanness; how he would whip the little boys, but was a total coward whenever he got into a fight with white boys his own size. In those situations, he always ran away. William had other complaints about him. One was that he would polish pennies with quicksilver and pass them off as quarters to an old man who owned a fruit stand. William was often sent to buy fruit, and he eagerly asked me what he should do in such situations. I told him it was definitely wrong to trick the old man and that he should inform him about the deceit practiced by his young master. I assured him the old man would understand the whole thing quickly, and then that would be the end of it. William thought it might be simple for the old man, but not for him. He said he wasn’t bothered by the pain of the whip, but he didn’t like the idea of getting whipped.

While I advised him to be good and forgiving I was not unconscious of the beam in my own eye. It was the very knowledge of my own shortcomings that urged me to retain, if possible, some sparks of my brother’s God-given nature. I had not lived fourteen years in slavery for nothing. I had felt, seen, and heard enough, to read the characters, and question the motives, of those around me. The war of my life had begun; and though one of God’s most powerless creatures, I resolved never to be conquered. Alas, for me!

While I told him to be good and forgiving, I was well aware of my own flaws. It was my awareness of my shortcomings that motivated me to hold on to whatever bits of my brother's inherent goodness I could. I hadn’t spent fourteen years in oppression for nothing. I had felt, seen, and heard enough to understand the personalities and question the motives of the people around me. The battle of my life had started; and even though I was one of God’s most helpless creations, I promised myself that I would never be defeated. Alas, for me!

If there was one pure, sunny spot for me, I believed it to be in Benjamin’s heart, and in another’s, whom I loved with all the ardor of a girl’s first love. My owner knew of it, and sought in every way to render me miserable. He did not resort to corporal punishment, but to all the petty, tyrannical ways that human ingenuity could devise.

If there was one bright, happy place for me, I believed it to be in Benjamin’s heart, and in another’s, whom I loved with all the passion of a girl’s first love. My owner was aware of this and tried every way possible to make me unhappy. He didn’t use physical punishment, but instead employed all the petty, controlling methods that human creativity could come up with.

I remember the first time I was punished. It was in the month of February. My grandmother had taken my old shoes, and replaced them with a new pair. I needed them; for several inches of snow had fallen, and it still continued to fall. When I walked through Mrs. Flint’s room, their creaking grated harshly on her refined nerves. She called me to her, and asked what I had about me that made such a horrid noise. I told her it was my new shoes. “Take them off,” said she; “and if you put them on again, I’ll throw them into the fire.”

I remember the first time I got in trouble. It was in February. My grandmother had taken my old shoes and replaced them with a new pair. I really needed them since several inches of snow had fallen, and it was still coming down. When I walked through Mrs. Flint’s room, the creaking of the shoes grated on her refined nerves. She called me over and asked what I had that made such a horrible noise. I told her it was my new shoes. “Take them off,” she said, “and if you put them on again, I’ll throw them in the fire.”

I took them off, and my stockings also. She then sent me a long distance, on an errand. As I went through the snow, my bare feet tingled. That night I was very hoarse; and I went to bed thinking the next day would find me sick, perhaps dead. What was my grief on waking to find myself quite well!

I took them off, along with my stockings. She then sent me on a long errand. As I walked through the snow, my bare feet felt tingly. That night, my voice was really hoarse, and I went to bed thinking that the next day I would be sick, maybe even dead. How surprised I was to wake up and find myself completely fine!

I had imagined if I died, or was laid up for some time, that my mistress would feel a twinge of remorse that she had so hated “the little imp,” as she styled me. It was my ignorance of that mistress that gave rise to such extravagant imaginings.

I imagined that if I died or was stuck in bed for a while, my mistress would feel a bit guilty for hating “the little imp,” as she called me. It was my lack of understanding of that mistress that led to such wild thoughts.

Dr. Flint occasionally had high prices offered for me; but he always said, “She don’t belong to me. She is my daughter’s property, and I have no right to sell her.” Good, honest man! My young mistress was still a child, and I could look for no protection from her. I loved her, and she returned my affection. I once heard her father allude to her attachment to me; and his wife promptly replied that it proceeded from fear. This put unpleasant doubts into my mind. Did the child feign what she did not feel? or was her mother jealous of the mite of love she bestowed on me? I concluded it must be the latter. I said to myself, “Surely, little children are true.”

Dr. Flint sometimes got high offers for me, but he always said, “She doesn’t belong to me. She’s my daughter’s property, and I have no right to sell her.” What a good, honest man! My young mistress was still a child, and I couldn’t expect any protection from her. I loved her, and she loved me back. I once heard her father mention her feelings for me, and his wife immediately said it was out of fear. That planted some unpleasant doubts in my mind. Was the child pretending to feel something she didn’t? Or was her mother jealous of the little love she showed me? I decided it must be the latter. I told myself, “Surely, little children are sincere.”

One afternoon I sat at my sewing, feeling unusual depression of spirits. My mistress had been accusing me of an offence, of which I assured her I was perfectly innocent; but I saw, by the contemptuous curl of her lip, that she believed I was telling a lie.

One afternoon, I was sitting at my sewing, feeling an unusual sense of sadness. My mistress had been accusing me of something I was completely innocent of, but I could tell by the disdainful curl of her lip that she believed I was lying.

I wondered for what wise purpose God was leading me through such thorny paths, and whether still darker days were in store for me. As I sat musing thus, the door opened softly, and William came in. “Well, brother,” said I, “what is the matter this time?”

I wondered what wise purpose God had in guiding me through such difficult times, and whether even tougher days lay ahead for me. As I sat thinking like this, the door opened quietly, and William walked in. “Well, brother,” I said, “what's going on this time?”

“O Linda, Ben and his master have had a dreadful time!” said he.

“O Linda, Ben and his boss have had a terrible time!” he said.

My first thought was that Benjamin was killed. “Don’t be frightened, Linda,” said William; “I will tell you all about it.”

My first thought was that Benjamin was dead. “Don’t worry, Linda,” said William; “I’ll explain everything.”

It appeared that Benjamin’s master had sent for him, and he did not immediately obey the summons. When he did, his master was angry, and began to whip him. He resisted. Master and slave fought, and finally the master was thrown. Benjamin had cause to tremble; for he had thrown to the ground his master—one of the richest men in town. I anxiously awaited the result.

It seemed that Benjamin’s master had called for him, and he didn’t respond right away. When he finally did, his master was furious and started to whip him. He fought back. They struggled, and in the end, Benjamin managed to throw his master down. Benjamin had reason to be scared; he had just taken down his master—one of the wealthiest men in town. I was nervously waiting to see what would happen next.

That night I stole to my grandmother’s house, and Benjamin also stole thither from his master’s. My grandmother had gone to spend a day or two with an old friend living in the country.

That night I sneaked over to my grandmother’s house, and Benjamin also came over from his boss’s place. My grandmother had gone to visit an old friend who lives in the countryside for a day or two.

“I have come,” said Benjamin, “to tell you good by. I am going away.”

“I've come,” said Benjamin, “to say goodbye. I'm leaving.”

I inquired where.

I asked where.

“To the north,” he replied.

"To the north," he replied.

I looked at him to see whether he was in earnest. I saw it all in his firm, set mouth. I implored him not to go, but he paid no heed to my words. He said he was no longer a boy, and every day made his yoke more galling. He had raised his hand against his master, and was to be publicly whipped for the offence. I reminded him of the poverty and hardships he must encounter among strangers. I told him he might be caught and brought back; and that was terrible to think of.

I looked at him to see if he was serious. I could tell by his firm, set mouth. I begged him not to go, but he ignored me. He said he wasn't a boy anymore, and each day made his situation harder to bear. He had raised his hand against his master and was going to be publicly whipped for it. I reminded him of the poverty and struggles he would face among strangers. I told him he could get caught and brought back, and that was a horrifying thought.

He grew vexed, and asked if poverty and hardships with freedom, were not preferable to our treatment in slavery. “Linda,” he continued, “we are dogs here; foot-balls, cattle, every thing that’s mean. No, I will not stay. Let them bring me back. We don’t die but once.”

He became frustrated and asked if being poor and facing hardships with freedom wasn't better than how we are treated in slavery. “Linda,” he continued, “we’re like dogs here; just objects, like footballs or cattle, everything that’s low. No, I won’t stay. Let them bring me back. We only die once.”

He was right; but it was hard to give him up. “Go,” said I, “and break your mother’s heart.”

He was right; but it was hard to let him go. “Just go,” I said, “and break your mother’s heart.”

I repented of my words ere they were out.

I regretted my words before they even left my mouth.

“Linda,” said he, speaking as I had not heard him speak that evening, “how could you say that? Poor mother! be kind to her, Linda; and you, too, cousin Fanny.”

“Linda,” he said, speaking in a way I hadn’t heard from him that evening, “how could you say that? Poor mom! Be nice to her, Linda; and you, too, cousin Fanny.”

Cousin Fanny was a friend who had lived some years with us.

Cousin Fanny was a family friend who had lived with us for several years.

Farewells were exchanged, and the bright, kind boy, endeared to us by so many acts of love, vanished from our sight.

Goodbyes were said, and the cheerful, caring boy, who had won our affection through so many loving gestures, disappeared from our view.

It is not necessary to state how he made his escape. Suffice it to say, he was on his way to New York when a violent storm overtook the vessel. The captain said he must put into the nearest port. This alarmed Benjamin, who was aware that he would be advertised in every port near his own town. His embarrassment was noticed by the captain. To port they went. There the advertisement met the captain’s eye. Benjamin so exactly answered its description, that the captain laid hold on him, and bound him in chains. The storm passed, and they proceeded to New York. Before reaching that port Benjamin managed to get off his chains and throw them overboard. He escaped from the vessel, but was pursued, captured, and carried back to his master.

It’s not necessary to explain how he escaped. It’s enough to say that he was on his way to New York when a violent storm hit the ship. The captain announced they had to dock at the nearest port. This worried Benjamin, who knew he would be announced in every port near his hometown. The captain noticed his anxiety. They docked, and the advertisement caught the captain’s attention. Benjamin fit the description so perfectly that the captain grabbed him and put him in chains. The storm calmed, and they continued to New York. Before reaching the port, Benjamin managed to free himself from the chains and toss them overboard. He escaped from the ship, but was chased, captured, and taken back to his master.

When my grandmother returned home and found her youngest child had fled, great was her sorrow; but, with characteristic piety, she said, “God’s will be done.” Each morning, she inquired if any news had been heard from her boy. Yes, news was heard. The master was rejoicing over a letter, announcing the capture of his human chattel.

When my grandmother came home and discovered that her youngest child had run away, she was heartbroken; but, true to her nature, she said, “God’s will be done.” Every morning, she asked if there was any news about her son. Yes, there was news. The master was celebrating a letter that announced the capture of his property.

That day seems but as yesterday, so well do I remember it. I saw him led through the streets in chains, to jail. His face was ghastly pale, yet full of determination. He had begged one of the sailors to go to his mother’s house and ask her not to meet him. He said the sight of her distress would take from him all self-control. She yearned to see him, and she went; but she screened herself in the crowd, that it might be as her child had said.

That day feels like it was just yesterday; I remember it clearly. I saw him being led through the streets in chains, heading to jail. His face was ghostly pale, but it was filled with determination. He had asked one of the sailors to go to his mom's house and tell her not to come see him. He said that seeing her upset would make him lose all self-control. She longed to see him, and she went, but she hid in the crowd so it could be as her child had requested.

We were not allowed to visit him; but we had known the jailer for years, and he was a kind-hearted man. At midnight he opened the jail door for my grandmother and myself to enter, in disguise. When we entered the cell not a sound broke the stillness. “Benjamin, Benjamin!” whispered my grandmother. No answer. “Benjamin!” she again faltered. There was a jingle of chains. The moon had just risen, and cast an uncertain light through the bars of the window. We knelt down and took Benjamin’s cold hands in ours. We did not speak. Sobs were heard, and Benjamin’s lips were unsealed; for his mother was weeping on his neck. How vividly does memory bring back that sad night! Mother and son talked together. He asked her pardon for the suffering he had caused her. She said she had nothing to forgive; she could not blame his desire for freedom. He told her that when he was captured, he broke away, and was about casting himself into the river, when thoughts of her came over him, and he desisted. She asked if he did not also think of God. I fancied I saw his face grow fierce in the moonlight. He answered, “No, I did not think of him. When a man is hunted like a wild beast he forgets there is a God, a heaven. He forgets every thing in his struggle to get beyond the reach of the bloodhounds.”

We weren't allowed to visit him, but we had known the jailer for years, and he was a kind man. At midnight, he opened the jail door for my grandmother and me to sneak in, disguised. When we entered the cell, not a sound broke the silence. “Benjamin, Benjamin!” my grandmother whispered. No answer. “Benjamin!” she called again, her voice trembling. There was a jingle of chains. The moon had just risen, casting a faint light through the bars of the window. We knelt down and took Benjamin's cold hands in ours. We didn't speak. Sobs were heard, and Benjamin's lips moved; his mother was weeping on his neck. How vividly does memory bring back that sad night! Mother and son talked together. He asked her to forgive him for the pain he had caused her. She said she had nothing to forgive; she couldn't blame his desire for freedom. He told her that when he was captured, he broke free and was about to throw himself into the river when thoughts of her stopped him. She asked if he didn't think of God too. I thought I saw his face grow fierce in the moonlight. He replied, “No, I didn’t think of him. When a man is hunted like a wild animal, he forgets that there’s a God, a heaven. He forgets everything in his struggle to escape the bloodhounds.”

“Don’t talk so, Benjamin,” said she. “Put your trust in God. Be humble, my child, and your master will forgive you.”

“Don’t talk like that, Benjamin,” she said. “Trust in God. Be humble, my child, and your master will forgive you.”

“Forgive me for what, mother? For not letting him treat me like a dog? No! I will never humble myself to him. I have worked for him for nothing all my life, and I am repaid with stripes and imprisonment. Here I will stay till I die, or till he sells me.”

“Forgive me for what, mom? For not allowing him to treat me like a dog? No! I will never lower myself to him. I've worked for him for nothing my whole life, and all I get in return are beatings and imprisonment. I'm staying here until I die, or until he sells me.”

The poor mother shuddered at his words. I think he felt it; for when he next spoke, his voice was calmer. “Don’t fret about me, mother. I ain’t worth it,” said he. “I wish I had some of your goodness. You bear every thing patiently, just as though you thought it was all right. I wish I could.”

The poor mother shivered at his words. I think he noticed it; because when he spoke again, his voice was more relaxed. “Don’t worry about me, mom. I’m not worth it,” he said. “I wish I had some of your kindness. You handle everything so patiently, almost like you believe it’s all okay. I wish I could.”

She told him she had not always been so; once, she was like him; but when sore troubles came upon her, and she had no arm to lean upon, she learned to call on God, and he lightened her burdens. She besought him to do likewise.

She told him she hadn't always been this way; once, she was like him. But when she faced heavy troubles and had no one to lean on, she learned to turn to God, and He eased her burdens. She urged him to do the same.

We overstaid our time, and were obliged to hurry from the jail.

We stayed longer than we should have and had to rush out of the jail.

Benjamin had been imprisoned three weeks, when my grandmother went to intercede for him with his master. He was immovable. He said Benjamin should serve as an example to the rest of his slaves; he should be kept in jail till he was subdued, or be sold if he got but one dollar for him. However, he afterwards relented in some degree. The chains were taken off, and we were allowed to visit him.

Benjamin had been in prison for three weeks when my grandmother went to plead with his master. He was firm. He said Benjamin should serve as a warning to the other slaves; he should stay in jail until he was broken, or be sold if he could get even a dollar for him. However, he later softened a bit. The chains were removed, and we were allowed to visit him.

As his food was of the coarsest kind, we carried him as often as possible a warm supper, accompanied with some little luxury for the jailer.

As his food was very basic, we brought him a warm dinner as often as we could, along with a little treat for the jailer.

Three months elapsed, and there was no prospect of release or of a purchaser. One day he was heard to sing and laugh. This piece of indecorum was told to his master, and the overseer was ordered to re-chain him. He was now confined in an apartment with other prisoners, who were covered with filthy rags. Benjamin was chained near them, and was soon covered with vermin. He worked at his chains till he succeeded in getting out of them. He passed them through the bars of the window, with a request that they should be taken to his master, and he should be informed that he was covered with vermin.

Three months went by, and there was no sign of freedom or a buyer. One day, he was heard singing and laughing. This act of disrespect was reported to his master, and the overseer was instructed to re-chain him. He was now locked in a room with other prisoners, who were dressed in filthy rags. Benjamin was chained near them and soon became infested with bugs. He worked on his chains until he managed to free himself. He passed the chains through the bars of the window, asking that they be taken to his master and that he be informed he was covered in bugs.

This audacity was punished with heavier chains, and prohibition of our visits.

This boldness was punished with heavier chains and a ban on our visits.

My grandmother continued to send him fresh changes of clothes. The old ones were burned up. The last night we saw him in jail his mother still begged him to send for his master, and beg his pardon. Neither persuasion nor argument could turn him from his purpose. He calmly answered, “I am waiting his time.”

My grandmother kept sending him new clothes. The old ones were burnt. The last night we saw him in jail, his mother still urged him to contact his master and ask for forgiveness. Neither persuasion nor reasoning could change his mind. He calmly replied, “I’m waiting for his time.”

Those chains were mournful to hear.

Those chains were sad to hear.

Another three months passed, and Benjamin left his prison walls. We that loved him waited to bid him a long and last farewell. A slave trader had bought him. You remember, I told you what price he brought when ten years of age. Now he was more than twenty years old, and sold for three hundred dollars. The master had been blind to his own interest. Long confinement had made his face too pale, his form too thin; moreover, the trader had heard something of his character, and it did not strike him as suitable for a slave. He said he would give any price if the handsome lad was a girl. We thanked God that he was not.

Another three months went by, and Benjamin left his prison. Those of us who cared for him gathered to say a long and final goodbye. A slave trader had purchased him. You may recall that I mentioned the price he fetched when he was ten years old. Now, at over twenty, he sold for three hundred dollars. The master didn't see his own best interest. Long imprisonment had made his face too pale and his body too thin; additionally, the trader had heard something about his character, which didn’t seem suitable for a slave. He said he would pay any amount if the attractive young man was a girl. We were grateful that he was not.

Could you have seen that mother clinging to her child, when they fastened the irons upon his wrists; could you have heard her heart-rending groans, and seen her bloodshot eyes wander wildly from face to face, vainly pleading for mercy; could you have witnessed that scene as I saw it, you would exclaim, Slavery is damnable!

Could you have seen that mother holding onto her child when they put the shackles on his wrists? Could you have heard her heartbreaking cries and seen her red eyes darting from person to person, desperately pleading for mercy? If you had witnessed that scene the way I did, you would shout, Slavery is awful!

Benjamin, her youngest, her pet, was forever gone! She could not realize it. She had had an interview with the trader for the purpose of ascertaining if Benjamin could be purchased. She was told it was impossible, as he had given bonds not to sell him till he was out of the state. He promised that he would not sell him till he reached New Orleans.

Benjamin, her youngest, her favorite, was gone for good! She just couldn’t wrap her head around it. She had talked to the trader to find out if Benjamin could be bought. She was told it was impossible, as he had promised not to sell him until he was out of the state. He assured her that he wouldn’t sell him until he got to New Orleans.

With a strong arm and unvaried trust, my grandmother began her work of love. Benjamin must be free. If she succeeded, she knew they would still be separated; but the sacrifice was not too great. Day and night she labored. The trader’s price would treble that he gave; but she was not discouraged.

With determination and unwavering faith, my grandmother started her loving mission. Benjamin had to be free. If she succeeded, she knew they would still be apart, but the sacrifice was worth it. She worked day and night. The trader's price would be three times what he initially offered, but she didn't let that discourage her.

She employed a lawyer to write to a gentleman, whom she knew, in New Orleans. She begged him to interest himself for Benjamin, and he willingly favored her request. When he saw Benjamin, and stated his business, he thanked him; but said he preferred to wait a while before making the trader an offer. He knew he had tried to obtain a high price for him, and had invariably failed. This encouraged him to make another effort for freedom. So one morning, long before day, Benjamin was missing. He was riding over the blue billows, bound for Baltimore.

She hired a lawyer to write to a man she knew in New Orleans. She asked him to help Benjamin, and he gladly agreed. When he met Benjamin and explained what he was there for, Benjamin thanked him but said he wanted to wait a bit before making an offer to the trader. He knew the trader had tried to get a high price for him, but had always failed. This motivated him to make another attempt for freedom. So one morning, long before dawn, Benjamin was gone. He was sailing across the blue waves, headed for Baltimore.

For once his white face did him a kindly service. They had no suspicion that it belonged to a slave; otherwise, the law would have been followed out to the letter, and the thing rendered back to slavery. The brightest skies are often overshadowed by the darkest clouds. Benjamin was taken sick, and compelled to remain in Baltimore three weeks. His strength was slow in returning; and his desire to continue his journey seemed to retard his recovery. How could he get strength without air and exercise? He resolved to venture on a short walk. A by-street was selected, where he thought himself secure of not being met by any one that knew him; but a voice called out, “Halloo, Ben, my boy! what are you doing here?”

For once, his pale complexion worked to his advantage. They had no idea he was a slave; otherwise, the law would have been strictly enforced, and he would have been sent back into bondage. Even the brightest days can be overshadowed by the darkest moments. Benjamin fell ill and had to stay in Baltimore for three weeks. His strength returned slowly, and his eagerness to continue his journey seemed to slow his recovery. How could he regain his strength without fresh air and exercise? He decided to take a short walk. He chose a side street where he thought he wouldn’t run into anyone who recognized him, but then a voice called out, “Hey, Ben, my friend! What are you doing here?”

His first impulse was to run; but his legs trembled so that he could not stir. He turned to confront his antagonist, and behold, there stood his old master’s next door neighbor! He thought it was all over with him now; but it proved otherwise. That man was a miracle. He possessed a goodly number of slaves, and yet was not quite deaf to that mystic clock, whose ticking is rarely heard in the slaveholder’s breast.

His first instinct was to run, but his legs shook so much that he couldn't move. He turned to face his opponent and, to his surprise, it was his old master's next-door neighbor! He thought it was the end for him, but things turned out differently. That man was something special. He had a fair number of slaves, yet he was not completely deaf to that mysterious clock whose ticking is seldom heard in the hearts of slaveholders.

“Ben, you are sick,” said he. “Why, you look like a ghost. I guess I gave you something of a start. Never mind, Ben, I am not going to touch you. You had a pretty tough time of it, and you may go on your way rejoicing for all me. But I would advise you to get out of this place plaguy quick, for there are several gentlemen here from our town.” He described the nearest and safest route to New York, and added, “I shall be glad to tell your mother I have seen you. Good by, Ben.”

“Ben, you look terrible,” he said. “Seriously, you look like a ghost. I guess I startled you a bit. Don’t worry, Ben, I’m not going to harm you. You’ve had a rough time, and you can go on with your life as you please. But I recommend you get out of here really fast, because there are some guys from our town around. He pointed out the quickest and safest way to New York and added, “I’ll be happy to tell your mom I saw you. Goodbye, Ben.”

Benjamin turned away, filled with gratitude, and surprised that the town he hated contained such a gem—a gem worthy of a purer setting.

Benjamin turned away, feeling grateful and surprised that the town he despised had such a treasure—a treasure deserving of a more beautiful backdrop.

This gentleman was a Northerner by birth, and had married a southern lady. On his return, he told my grandmother that he had seen her son, and of the service he had rendered him.

This guy was from the North by birth and had married a Southern woman. On his return, he told my grandmother that he had seen her son and about the help he had given him.

Benjamin reached New York safely, and concluded to stop there until he had gained strength enough to proceed further. It happened that my grandmother’s only remaining son had sailed for the same city on business for his mistress. Through God’s providence, the brothers met. You may be sure it was a happy meeting. “O Phil,” exclaimed Benjamin, “I am here at last.” Then he told him how near he came to dying, almost in sight of free land, and how he prayed that he might live to get one breath of free air. He said life was worth something now, and it would be hard to die. In the old jail he had not valued it; once, he was tempted to destroy it; but something, he did not know what, had prevented him; perhaps it was fear. He had heard those who profess to be religious declare there was no heaven for self-murderers; and as his life had been pretty hot here, he did not desire a continuation of the same in another world. “If I die now,” he exclaimed, “thank God, I shall die a freeman!”

Benjamin safely arrived in New York and decided to stay there until he regained enough strength to continue. Coincidentally, my grandmother’s only remaining son had also sailed to the same city on business for his employer. By chance, the brothers met. You can imagine it was a joyful reunion. “Oh Phil,” Benjamin exclaimed, “I’m finally here!” He then shared how close he came to dying, almost in sight of freedom, and how he prayed to live just long enough to take one breath of free air. He said life felt valuable now, and it would be difficult to die. In the old jail, he hadn’t appreciated it; at one point, he had considered ending it all, but something—he didn’t know what—had stopped him; maybe it was fear. He had heard religious people say that there was no heaven for those who take their own lives, and since his life had been pretty rough here, he didn’t want to experience more of the same in the next world. “If I die now,” he exclaimed, “thank God, I will die a free man!”

He begged my uncle Phillip not to return south; but stay and work with him, till they earned enough to buy those at home. His brother told him it would kill their mother if he deserted her in her trouble. She had pledged her house, and with difficulty had raised money to buy him. Would he be bought?

He pleaded with my uncle Phillip not to go back south but to stay and work with him until they had enough money to buy those at home. His brother warned him that it would break their mother's heart if he abandoned her during her tough time. She had put up her house as collateral and had struggled to raise the money to buy him. Would he really be bought?

“No, never!” he replied. “Do you suppose, Phil, when I have got so far out of their clutches, I will give them one red cent? No! And do you suppose I would turn mother out of her home in her old age? That I would let her pay all those hard-earned dollars for me, and never to see me? For you know she will stay south as long as her other children are slaves. What a good mother! Tell her to buy you, Phil. You have been a comfort to her, and I have been a trouble. And Linda, poor Linda; what’ll become of her? Phil, you don’t know what a life they lead her. She has told me something about it, and I wish old Flint was dead, or a better man. When I was in jail, he asked her if she didn’t want him to ask my master to forgive me, and take me home again. She told him, No; that I didn’t want to go back. He got mad, and said we were all alike. I never despised my own master half as much as I do that man. There is many a worse slaveholder than my master; but for all that I would not be his slave.”

“No, never!” he replied. “Do you think, Phil, after I’ve escaped their grasp, I’d give them a single cent? No! And do you think I would kick my mother out of her home in her old age? That I would let her spend all her hard-earned money on me, never to see me again? Because you know she’ll stay in the South as long as her other children are enslaved. What a great mother! Tell her to buy you, Phil. You’ve been a comfort to her, while I’ve been a burden. And Linda, poor Linda; what’s going to happen to her? Phil, you have no idea what kind of life they’re forcing her to endure. She’s told me a bit about it, and I wish old Flint were dead, or at least a better man. When I was in jail, he asked her if she wanted him to ask my master to forgive me and bring me home again. She told him no; that I didn’t want to go back. He got angry and said we were all the same. I’ve never hated my own master half as much as I hate that man. There are plenty of worse slaveholders than my master; but despite that, I wouldn’t want to be his slave.”

While Benjamin was sick, he had parted with nearly all his clothes to pay necessary expenses. But he did not part with a little pin I fastened in his bosom when we parted. It was the most valuable thing I owned, and I thought none more worthy to wear it. He had it still.

While Benjamin was sick, he had gotten rid of almost all his clothes to cover essential expenses. But he didn’t let go of a small pin I pinned to his shirt when we said goodbye. It was the most precious thing I owned, and I believed no one was more deserving of it. He still had it.

His brother furnished him with clothes, and gave him what money he had.

His brother gave him clothes and shared whatever money he had.

They parted with moistened eyes; and as Benjamin turned away, he said, “Phil, I part with all my kindred.” And so it proved. We never heard from him again.

They said goodbye with teary eyes; and as Benjamin turned away, he said, “Phil, I’m saying goodbye to all my family.” And that turned out to be true. We never heard from him again.

Uncle Phillip came home; and the first words he uttered when he entered the house were, “Mother, Ben is free! I have seen him in New York.” She stood looking at him with a bewildered air. “Mother, don’t you believe it?” he said, laying his hand softly upon her shoulder. She raised her hands, and exclaimed, “God be praised! Let us thank him.” She dropped on her knees, and poured forth her heart in prayer. Then Phillip must sit down and repeat to her every word Benjamin had said. He told her all; only he forbore to mention how sick and pale her darling looked. Why should he distress her when she could do him no good?

Uncle Phillip came home, and the first words he said when he entered the house were, “Mom, Ben is free! I saw him in New York.” She stood there looking at him in confusion. “Mom, don’t you believe me?” he asked, gently placing his hand on her shoulder. She raised her hands and exclaimed, “Thank God! Let’s thank Him.” She dropped to her knees and prayed earnestly. Then Phillip had to sit down and tell her every word Benjamin had said. He shared everything, except he didn’t mention how sick and pale her beloved looked. Why upset her when she couldn’t help him?

The brave old woman still toiled on, hoping to rescue some of her other children. After a while she succeeded in buying Phillip. She paid eight hundred dollars, and came home with the precious document that secured his freedom. The happy mother and son sat together by the old hearthstone that night, telling how proud they were of each other, and how they would prove to the world that they could take care of themselves, as they had long taken care of others. We all concluded by saying, “He that is willing to be a slave, let him be a slave.”

The brave old woman kept working hard, hoping to rescue some of her other children. After a while, she managed to buy Phillip. She paid eight hundred dollars and came home with the important document that secured his freedom. That night, the happy mother and son sat together by the old hearth, talking about how proud they were of each other and how they would show the world that they could take care of themselves, just as they had long taken care of others. We all ended by saying, “Whoever is willing to be a slave, let them be a slave.”










V. The Trials Of Girlhood.

During the first years of my service in Dr. Flint’s family, I was accustomed to share some indulgences with the children of my mistress. Though this seemed to me no more than right, I was grateful for it, and tried to merit the kindness by the faithful discharge of my duties. But I now entered on my fifteenth year—a sad epoch in the life of a slave girl. My master began to whisper foul words in my ear. Young as I was, I could not remain ignorant of their import. I tried to treat them with indifference or contempt. The master’s age, my extreme youth, and the fear that his conduct would be reported to my grandmother, made him bear this treatment for many months. He was a crafty man, and resorted to many means to accomplish his purposes. Sometimes he had stormy, terrific ways, that made his victims tremble; sometimes he assumed a gentleness that he thought must surely subdue. Of the two, I preferred his stormy moods, although they left me trembling. He tried his utmost to corrupt the pure principles my grandmother had instilled. He peopled my young mind with unclean images, such as only a vile monster could think of. I turned from him with disgust and hatred. But he was my master. I was compelled to live under the same roof with him—where I saw a man forty years my senior daily violating the most sacred commandments of nature. He told me I was his property; that I must be subject to his will in all things. My soul revolted against the mean tyranny. But where could I turn for protection? No matter whether the slave girl be as black as ebony or as fair as her mistress. In either case, there is no shadow of law to protect her from insult, from violence, or even from death; all these are inflicted by fiends who bear the shape of men. The mistress, who ought to protect the helpless victim, has no other feelings towards her but those of jealousy and rage. The degradation, the wrongs, the vices, that grow out of slavery, are more than I can describe. They are greater than you would willingly believe. Surely, if you credited one half the truths that are told you concerning the helpless millions suffering in this cruel bondage, you at the north would not help to tighten the yoke. You surely would refuse to do for the master, on your own soil, the mean and cruel work which trained bloodhounds and the lowest class of whites do for him at the south.

During my early years working for Dr. Flint’s family, I often shared some treats with my mistress's children. While this felt completely fair to me, I appreciated it and tried to earn that kindness by being diligent in my duties. However, I was now entering my fifteenth year— a difficult time for a slave girl. My master started to whisper inappropriate things in my ear. Even at my young age, I understood their meaning. I tried to act like I didn't care or that I looked down on him. Because of his age, my youth, and the fear that he would tell my grandmother, he tolerated my reaction for many months. He was a sly man and used various tactics to get what he wanted. Sometimes he could be angry and terrifying, making his victims tremble; other times, he pretended to be gentle, thinking it would make me submit. Of the two, I preferred his angry outbursts, even though they left me shaken. He did everything he could to corrupt the strong values my grandmother had given me. He filled my young mind with dirty thoughts, things only a foul monster would imagine. I turned away from him in disgust and hatred. But he was my master. I had no choice but to live under the same roof as him—where I saw a man forty years older than me shamelessly breaking the most basic laws of nature every day. He told me I was his property and that I had to obey his will in everything. My spirit rebelled against this cruel tyranny. But where could I seek refuge? Whether a slave girl is as black as ebony or as fair as her mistress, there is no law to protect her from disgrace, violence, or even death; these are inflicted by monsters disguised as men. The mistress, who should protect the helpless victim, only feels jealousy and rage. The humiliation, the injustices, and the immoralities stemming from slavery are beyond what I can express. They are greater than you would want to believe. Certainly, if you believed even half of the truths shared with you about the countless helpless people suffering in this cruel bondage, you in the North would not aid in tightening the chains. You would undoubtedly refuse to do for the master, on your own land, the mean and cruel tasks that trained bloodhounds and the lowest class of whites perform for him in the South.

Every where the years bring to all enough of sin and sorrow; but in slavery the very dawn of life is darkened by these shadows. Even the little child, who is accustomed to wait on her mistress and her children, will learn, before she is twelve years old, why it is that her mistress hates such and such a one among the slaves. Perhaps the child’s own mother is among those hated ones. She listens to violent outbreaks of jealous passion, and cannot help understanding what is the cause. She will become prematurely knowing in evil things. Soon she will learn to tremble when she hears her master’s footfall. She will be compelled to realize that she is no longer a child. If God has bestowed beauty upon her, it will prove her greatest curse. That which commands admiration in the white woman only hastens the degradation of the female slave. I know that some are too much brutalized by slavery to feel the humiliation of their position; but many slaves feel it most acutely, and shrink from the memory of it. I cannot tell how much I suffered in the presence of these wrongs, nor how I am still pained by the retrospect. My master met me at every turn, reminding me that I belonged to him, and swearing by heaven and earth that he would compel me to submit to him. If I went out for a breath of fresh air, after a day of unwearied toil, his footsteps dogged me. If I knelt by my mother’s grave, his dark shadow fell on me even there. The light heart which nature had given me became heavy with sad forebodings. The other slaves in my master’s house noticed the change. Many of them pitied me; but none dared to ask the cause. They had no need to inquire. They knew too well the guilty practices under that roof; and they were aware that to speak of them was an offence that never went unpunished.

Everywhere, the years bring everyone enough sin and sorrow; but in slavery, even the very beginning of life is overshadowed by these burdens. Even a young child, who is used to serving her mistress and her kids, will learn, before turning twelve, why her mistress dislikes certain slaves. Maybe the child’s own mother is among those despised. She hears intense outbursts of jealousy and can’t help but understand the cause. She will become unnaturally aware of evil things at a young age. Soon, she will learn to flinch when she hears her master’s footsteps. She will be forced to accept that she is no longer a child. If God has given her beauty, it will turn out to be her greatest curse. What attracts admiration in the white woman only accelerates the degradation of the female slave. I know some are too brutalized by slavery to feel the shame of their situation; but many slaves feel it deeply and recoil from the memory. I can’t express how much I suffered witnessing these injustices, nor how much I still ache when I think back on it. My master confronted me at every turn, reminding me that I belonged to him and swearing by heaven and earth that he would force me to comply. When I stepped outside for fresh air after a day of relentless work, his footsteps followed me. When I knelt by my mother’s grave, his dark shadow loomed over me even there. The light heart that nature had given me became weighed down with sad premonitions. The other slaves in my master’s house noticed the change in me. Many of them felt sorry for me, but none dared to ask why. They didn’t need to inquire. They were all too familiar with the guilty activities under that roof, and they knew that speaking of them was an offense that never went unpunished.

I longed for some one to confide in. I would have given the world to have laid my head on my grandmother’s faithful bosom, and told her all my troubles. But Dr. Flint swore he would kill me, if I was not as silent as the grave. Then, although my grandmother was all in all to me, I feared her as well as loved her. I had been accustomed to look up to her with a respect bordering upon awe. I was very young, and felt shamefaced about telling her such impure things, especially as I knew her to be very strict on such subjects. Moreover, she was a woman of a high spirit. She was usually very quiet in her demeanor; but if her indignation was once roused, it was not very easily quelled. I had been told that she once chased a white gentleman with a loaded pistol, because he insulted one of her daughters. I dreaded the consequences of a violent outbreak; and both pride and fear kept me silent. But though I did not confide in my grandmother, and even evaded her vigilant watchfulness and inquiry, her presence in the neighborhood was some protection to me. Though she had been a slave, Dr. Flint was afraid of her. He dreaded her scorching rebukes. Moreover, she was known and patronized by many people; and he did not wish to have his villany made public. It was lucky for me that I did not live on a distant plantation, but in a town not so large that the inhabitants were ignorant of each other’s affairs. Bad as are the laws and customs in a slaveholding community, the doctor, as a professional man, deemed it prudent to keep up some outward show of decency.

I craved someone to talk to. I would have given anything to lay my head on my grandmother’s comforting shoulder and share all my troubles with her. But Dr. Flint threatened to kill me if I didn’t stay as quiet as possible. Even though my grandmother meant everything to me, I both feared and loved her. I had always looked up to her with a respect that felt almost like fear. I was very young and felt embarrassed about sharing such inappropriate things with her, especially since I knew she was very strict about such matters. Additionally, she had a strong spirit. She usually kept to herself, but once her anger was stirred, it was hard to calm her down. I had heard that she once chased a white man with a loaded pistol because he insulted one of her daughters. I was terrified of the fallout from a violent reaction; both pride and fear kept me quiet. But even though I didn’t share my feelings with my grandmother and avoided her watchful eye, her presence nearby offered me some protection. Despite having been a slave, Dr. Flint was afraid of her. He feared her sharp criticisms. Moreover, she was well-known and respected by many people, and he didn’t want his wrongdoing to come to light. It was fortunate for me that I didn’t live on a distant plantation, but in a town small enough that everyone knew each other’s business. As bad as the laws and customs were in a slaveholding community, the doctor, being a professional, thought it wise to maintain some appearance of decency.

O, what days and nights of fear and sorrow that man caused me! Reader, it is not to awaken sympathy for myself that I am telling you truthfully what I suffered in slavery. I do it to kindle a flame of compassion in your hearts for my sisters who are still in bondage, suffering as I once suffered.

Oh, what days and nights of fear and sorrow that man caused me! Reader, I’m not sharing my experiences to gain your sympathy for myself, but to ignite a flame of compassion in your hearts for my sisters who are still in bondage, suffering as I once did.

I once saw two beautiful children playing together. One was a fair white child; the other was her slave, and also her sister. When I saw them embracing each other, and heard their joyous laughter, I turned sadly away from the lovely sight. I foresaw the inevitable blight that would fall on the little slave’s heart. I knew how soon her laughter would be changed to sighs. The fair child grew up to be a still fairer woman. From childhood to womanhood her pathway was blooming with flowers, and overarched by a sunny sky. Scarcely one day of her life had been clouded when the sun rose on her happy bridal morning.

I once saw two beautiful kids playing together. One was a fair-skinned girl; the other was her slave and also her sister. When I saw them hugging each other and heard their joyful laughter, I sadly turned away from the lovely scene. I could see the inevitable sadness that would fall on the little slave’s heart. I knew her laughter would soon turn to sighs. The fair girl grew up to be an even more beautiful woman. From childhood to adulthood, her path was filled with flowers and under a sunny sky. Not a single day of her life had been shadowed when the sun rose on her happy wedding morning.

How had those years dealt with her slave sister, the little playmate of her childhood? She, also, was very beautiful; but the flowers and sunshine of love were not for her. She drank the cup of sin, and shame, and misery, whereof her persecuted race are compelled to drink.

How had those years affected her sister, the little playmate of her childhood? She was also very beautiful, but the flowers and sunshine of love were not for her. She endured the pain of sin, shame, and misery that her oppressed race was forced to suffer.

In view of these things, why are ye silent, ye free men and women of the north? Why do your tongues falter in maintenance of the right? Would that I had more ability! But my heart is so full, and my pen is so weak! There are noble men and women who plead for us, striving to help those who cannot help themselves. God bless them! God give them strength and courage to go on! God bless those, every where, who are laboring to advance the cause of humanity!

In light of all this, why are you silent, you free men and women of the north? Why do you hesitate to speak up for what's right? I wish I had more skill! But my heart is so full, and my writing is so weak! There are noble men and women who advocate for us, working to support those who can't support themselves. God bless them! May God give them strength and courage to keep going! God bless everyone who is working to advance the cause of humanity!










VI. The Jealous Mistress.

I would ten thousand times rather that my children should be the half-starved paupers of Ireland than to be the most pampered among the slaves of America. I would rather drudge out my life on a cotton plantation, till the grave opened to give me rest, than to live with an unprincipled master and a jealous mistress. The felon’s home in a penitentiary is preferable. He may repent, and turn from the error of his ways, and so find peace; but it is not so with a favorite slave. She is not allowed to have any pride of character. It is deemed a crime in her to wish to be virtuous.

I would much rather my children be the half-starved poor of Ireland than the most spoiled among the slaves in America. I would prefer to work my whole life on a cotton plantation, waiting for the grave to give me rest, than to live with a dishonorable master and a jealous mistress. Even a felon's home in prison is better. He might regret his actions, change his ways, and find peace; but it’s different for a favored slave. She’s not allowed to have any sense of pride. It’s considered a crime for her to want to be virtuous.

Mrs. Flint possessed the key to her husband’s character before I was born. She might have used this knowledge to counsel and to screen the young and the innocent among her slaves; but for them she had no sympathy. They were the objects of her constant suspicion and malevolence. She watched her husband with unceasing vigilance; but he was well practised in means to evade it. What he could not find opportunity to say in words he manifested in signs. He invented more than were ever thought of in a deaf and dumb asylum. I let them pass, as if I did not understand what he meant; and many were the curses and threats bestowed on me for my stupidity. One day he caught me teaching myself to write. He frowned, as if he was not well pleased; but I suppose he came to the conclusion that such an accomplishment might help to advance his favorite scheme. Before long, notes were often slipped into my hand. I would return them, saying, “I can’t read them, sir.” “Can’t you?” he replied; “then I must read them to you.” He always finished the reading by asking, “Do you understand?” Sometimes he would complain of the heat of the tea room, and order his supper to be placed on a small table in the piazza. He would seat himself there with a well-satisfied smile, and tell me to stand by and brush away the flies. He would eat very slowly, pausing between the mouthfuls. These intervals were employed in describing the happiness I was so foolishly throwing away, and in threatening me with the penalty that finally awaited my stubborn disobedience. He boasted much of the forbearance he had exercised towards me, and reminded me that there was a limit to his patience. When I succeeded in avoiding opportunities for him to talk to me at home, I was ordered to come to his office, to do some errand. When there, I was obliged to stand and listen to such language as he saw fit to address to me. Sometimes I so openly expressed my contempt for him that he would become violently enraged, and I wondered why he did not strike me. Circumstanced as he was, he probably thought it was better policy to be forbearing. But the state of things grew worse and worse daily. In desperation I told him that I must and would apply to my grandmother for protection. He threatened me with death, and worse than death, if I made any complaint to her. Strange to say, I did not despair. I was naturally of a buoyant disposition, and always I had a hope of somehow getting out of his clutches. Like many a poor, simple slave before me, I trusted that some threads of joy would yet be woven into my dark destiny.

Mrs. Flint understood her husband's character long before I was born. She could have used this insight to guide and protect the young and innocent among her slaves, but she had no compassion for them. They were always under her suspicion and contempt. She kept a close eye on her husband, but he was skilled at evading her watchful gaze. What he couldn't express in words, he conveyed in gestures. He came up with more signs than you’d find in a deaf and mute institution. I pretended not to understand what he meant, and he showered me with curses and threats for my supposed ignorance. One day, he caught me teaching myself to write. He frowned, clearly displeased, but I guess he realized that this skill could help him with his favorite schemes. Soon, notes were regularly slipped into my hand. I’d hand them back, saying, “I can’t read these, sir.” “Can’t you?” he replied; “then I’ll read them to you.” He always ended the reading by asking, “Do you understand?” Sometimes he’d complain about the heat in the tea room and order his supper to be served on a small table outside. He’d sit there with a satisfied smile and instruct me to stand by and swat away the flies. He ate very slowly, taking breaks between bites to talk about the happiness I was foolishly throwing away and warning me of the consequences of my stubbornness. He often bragged about how patient he had been with me, reminding me that his patience had limits. Whenever I successfully avoided talking to him at home, I was ordered to come to his office for an errand. There, I had to stand and listen to whatever he chose to say to me. Sometimes I showed my disdain for him so openly that he would get violently angry, and I couldn’t understand why he didn’t hit me. Given his circumstances, he probably thought it was wiser to hold back. But things just kept getting worse and worse every day. In desperation, I told him I had to go to my grandmother for help. He threatened me with death—and worse—if I said anything to her. Strangely enough, I didn’t give up hope. I naturally had an optimistic spirit, and I always believed I would find a way to escape his grip. Like many unfortunate, naive slaves before me, I held onto the hope that some threads of joy would eventually be woven into my dark fate.

I had entered my sixteenth year, and every day it became more apparent that my presence was intolerable to Mrs. Flint. Angry words frequently passed between her and her husband. He had never punished me himself, and he would not allow any body else to punish me. In that respect, she was never satisfied; but, in her angry moods, no terms were too vile for her to bestow upon me. Yet I, whom she detested so bitterly, had far more pity for her than he had, whose duty it was to make her life happy. I never wronged her, or wished to wrong her; and one word of kindness from her would have brought me to her feet.

I had just turned sixteen, and every day it became clearer that Mrs. Flint couldn't stand me. She often exchanged angry words with her husband. He had never punished me himself, nor would he let anyone else do it. In that way, she was never satisfied; however, during her angry moments, she had no problem using the most terrible insults against me. Yet, even though she hated me so much, I felt more pity for her than her husband did, whose job it was to make her happy. I never wronged her or wanted to, and a single word of kindness from her would have brought me to her knees.

After repeated quarrels between the doctor and his wife, he announced his intention to take his youngest daughter, then four years old, to sleep in his apartment. It was necessary that a servant should sleep in the same room, to be on hand if the child stirred. I was selected for that office, and informed for what purpose that arrangement had been made. By managing to keep within sight of people, as much as possible, during the day time, I had hitherto succeeded in eluding my master, though a razor was often held to my throat to force me to change this line of policy. At night I slept by the side of my great aunt, where I felt safe. He was too prudent to come into her room. She was an old woman, and had been in the family many years. Moreover, as a married man, and a professional man, he deemed it necessary to save appearances in some degree. But he resolved to remove the obstacle in the way of his scheme; and he thought he had planned it so that he should evade suspicion. He was well aware how much I prized my refuge by the side of my old aunt, and he determined to dispossess me of it. The first night the doctor had the little child in his room alone. The next morning, I was ordered to take my station as nurse the following night. A kind Providence interposed in my favor. During the day Mrs. Flint heard of this new arrangement, and a storm followed. I rejoiced to hear it rage.

After several fights between the doctor and his wife, he announced that he would take his youngest daughter, who was four years old at the time, to sleep in his apartment. A servant was needed to stay in the same room, in case the child woke up. I was chosen for that job and informed of the reason for the arrangement. By staying in sight of people as much as possible during the day, I had managed to avoid my master, even though a razor was often held to my throat to force me to change this strategy. At night, I slept next to my great aunt, where I felt safe. He was too cautious to come into her room. She was an elderly woman who had been part of the family for many years. Additionally, as a married man and a professional, he thought it was necessary to maintain appearances to some extent. But he decided to remove the obstacle to his plan and thought he had figured out a way to avoid suspicion. He knew how much I valued my refuge beside my old aunt, and he was determined to take that away from me. On the first night, the doctor had the little girl in his room by herself. The next morning, I was ordered to take my place as the nurse the following night. A kind Providence intervened on my behalf. During the day, Mrs. Flint heard about this new arrangement, and a storm ensued. I was thrilled to hear it rage.

After a while my mistress sent for me to come to her room. Her first question was, “Did you know you were to sleep in the doctor’s room?”

After a while, my mistress called for me to come to her room. Her first question was, “Did you know you were supposed to sleep in the doctor’s room?”

“Yes, ma’am.”

“Sure, ma’am.”

“Who told you?”

"Who told you that?"

“My master.”

"My boss."

“Will you answer truly all the questions I ask?”

“Will you answer all my questions honestly?”

“Yes, ma’am.”

“Sure, ma’am.”

“Tell me, then, as you hope to be forgiven, are you innocent of what I have accused you?”

“Tell me, then, as you hope to be forgiven, are you innocent of what I have accused you?”

“I am.”

"I exist."

She handed me a Bible, and said, “Lay your hand on your heart, kiss this holy book, and swear before God that you tell me the truth.”

She gave me a Bible and said, “Put your hand over your heart, kiss this sacred book, and promise before God that you’re telling me the truth.”

I took the oath she required, and I did it with a clear conscience.

I took the oath she asked for, and I did it with a clear conscience.

“You have taken God’s holy word to testify your innocence,” said she. “If you have deceived me, beware! Now take this stool, sit down, look me directly in the face, and tell me all that has passed between your master and you.”

“You’ve used God’s holy word to prove your innocence,” she said. “If you’ve lied to me, watch out! Now take this stool, sit down, look me straight in the eye, and tell me everything that has happened between you and your master.”

I did as she ordered. As I went on with my account her color changed frequently, she wept, and sometimes groaned. She spoke in tones so sad, that I was touched by her grief. The tears came to my eyes; but I was soon convinced that her emotions arose from anger and wounded pride. She felt that her marriage vows were desecrated, her dignity insulted; but she had no compassion for the poor victim of her husband’s perfidy. She pitied herself as a martyr; but she was incapable of feeling for the condition of shame and misery in which her unfortunate, helpless slave was placed.

I did what she asked. As I continued my story, her color changed often, she cried, and sometimes groaned. She spoke in such sad tones that I felt her grief. Tears came to my eyes; but I quickly realized that her emotions were really from anger and wounded pride. She felt that her marriage vows had been violated, her dignity disrespected; but she showed no compassion for the poor victim of her husband’s betrayal. She saw herself as a martyr; but she couldn't feel for the shame and misery her unfortunate, helpless servant was in.

Yet perhaps she had some touch of feeling for me; for when the conference was ended, she spoke kindly, and promised to protect me. I should have been much comforted by this assurance if I could have had confidence in it; but my experiences in slavery had filled me with distrust. She was not a very refined woman, and had not much control over her passions. I was an object of her jealousy, and, consequently, of her hatred; and I knew I could not expect kindness or confidence from her under the circumstances in which I was placed. I could not blame her. Slaveholders’ wives feel as other women would under similar circumstances. The fire of her temper kindled from small sparks, and now the flame became so intense that the doctor was obliged to give up his intended arrangement.

Yet maybe she felt a bit of sympathy for me, because once the meeting was over, she spoke kindly and promised to protect me. I would have found comfort in this promise if I could have trusted it, but my experiences as a slave had made me distrustful. She wasn't a very sophisticated woman and struggled to manage her emotions. I was a source of her jealousy, and, as a result, her hatred; I knew I couldn't count on her kindness or trust given my situation. I couldn't really blame her. Wives of slaveholders feel the same as other women would in similar situations. Her temper ignited from small triggers, and now the fire had grown so fierce that the doctor had to abandon his planned arrangements.

I knew I had ignited the torch, and I expected to suffer for it afterwards; but I felt too thankful to my mistress for the timely aid she rendered me to care much about that. She now took me to sleep in a room adjoining her own. There I was an object of her especial care, though not of her especial comfort, for she spent many a sleepless night to watch over me. Sometimes I woke up, and found her bending over me. At other times she whispered in my ear, as though it was her husband who was speaking to me, and listened to hear what I would answer. If she startled me, on such occasions, she would glide stealthily away; and the next morning she would tell me I had been talking in my sleep, and ask who I was talking to. At last, I began to be fearful for my life. It had been often threatened; and you can imagine, better than I can describe, what an unpleasant sensation it must produce to wake up in the dead of night and find a jealous woman bending over you. Terrible as this experience was, I had fears that it would give place to one more terrible.

I knew I had lit the fire, and I expected to suffer for it later; but I felt too grateful to my mistress for the help she gave me to worry much about that. She took me to sleep in a room next to hers. There, I was especially cared for, though not particularly comfortable, as she spent many sleepless nights watching over me. Sometimes I would wake up and find her leaning over me. Other times, she would whisper in my ear as if it was her husband speaking to me, listening to hear how I would respond. If I startled her in those moments, she would quietly slip away; and the next morning, she would tell me I had been talking in my sleep and ask who I was talking to. Eventually, I started to fear for my life. It had often been threatened, and you can imagine better than I can describe what an unsettling feeling it must be to wake up in the dead of night and see a jealous woman leaning over you. As terrible as that experience was, I feared it would be replaced by something even worse.

My mistress grew weary of her vigils; they did not prove satisfactory. She changed her tactics. She now tried the trick of accusing my master of crime, in my presence, and gave my name as the author of the accusation. To my utter astonishment, he replied, “I don’t believe it; but if she did acknowledge it, you tortured her into exposing me.” Tortured into exposing him! Truly, Satan had no difficulty in distinguishing the color of his soul! I understood his object in making this false representation. It was to show me that I gained nothing by seeking the protection of my mistress; that the power was still all in his own hands. I pitied Mrs. Flint. She was a second wife, many years the junior of her husband; and the hoary-headed miscreant was enough to try the patience of a wiser and better woman. She was completely foiled, and knew not how to proceed. She would gladly have had me flogged for my supposed false oath; but, as I have already stated, the doctor never allowed any one to whip me. The old sinner was politic. The application of the lash might have led to remarks that would have exposed him in the eyes of his children and grandchildren. How often did I rejoice that I lived in a town where all the inhabitants knew each other! If I had been on a remote plantation, or lost among the multitude of a crowded city, I should not be a living woman at this day.

My mistress got tired of her nightly watch; it wasn’t working out. She switched up her strategy. Now, she tried accusing my master of a crime in front of me and claimed that I was the one who made the accusation. To my complete shock, he responded, “I don’t believe it; but if she did admit it, you tortured her into exposing me.” Tortured into revealing him! Honestly, it was easy for the devil to reveal the true nature of his soul! I realized his aim in making this false claim. It was to show me that I wasn’t gaining anything by relying on my mistress; that all the control was still in his hands. I felt sorry for Mrs. Flint. She was a second wife, many years younger than her husband; and the old creep was enough to test the patience of anyone wiser and better. She was totally thwarted and didn’t know what to do next. She would have happily had me whipped for my supposed perjury; but as I’ve already mentioned, the doctor never let anyone beat me. The old sinner was smart. Whipping me could have led to comments that would have embarrassed him in front of his children and grandchildren. How often was I glad to live in a town where everyone knew each other! If I had been on a remote plantation or lost in a big city, I wouldn’t be alive today.

The secrets of slavery are concealed like those of the Inquisition. My master was, to my knowledge, the father of eleven slaves. But did the mothers dare to tell who was the father of their children? Did the other slaves dare to allude to it, except in whispers among themselves? No, indeed! They knew too well the terrible consequences.

The secrets of slavery are hidden just like those of the Inquisition. My master, as far as I know, was the father of eleven slaves. But did the mothers dare to reveal who the father of their children was? Did the other slaves dare to mention it, except in hushed tones among themselves? No, definitely not! They were all too aware of the awful consequences.

My grandmother could not avoid seeing things which excited her suspicions. She was uneasy about me, and tried various ways to buy me; but the never-changing answer was always repeated: “Linda does not belong to me. She is my daughter’s property, and I have no legal right to sell her.” The conscientious man! He was too scrupulous to sell me; but he had no scruples whatever about committing a much greater wrong against the helpless young girl placed under his guardianship, as his daughter’s property. Sometimes my persecutor would ask me whether I would like to be sold. I told him I would rather be sold to any body than to lead such a life as I did. On such occasions he would assume the air of a very injured individual, and reproach me for my ingratitude. “Did I not take you into the house, and make you the companion of my own children?” he would say. “Have I ever treated you like a negro? I have never allowed you to be punished, not even to please your mistress. And this is the recompense I get, you ungrateful girl!” I answered that he had reasons of his own for screening me from punishment, and that the course he pursued made my mistress hate me and persecute me. If I wept, he would say, “Poor child! Don’t cry! don’t cry! I will make peace for you with your mistress. Only let me arrange matters in my own way. Poor, foolish girl! you don’t know what is for your own good. I would cherish you. I would make a lady of you. Now go, and think of all I have promised you.”

My grandmother couldn’t help but notice things that raised her suspicions. She was worried about me and tried different ways to buy my freedom, but the same answer was always repeated: “Linda does not belong to me. She is my daughter’s property, and I have no legal right to sell her.” The man had a strong sense of ethics! He was too principled to sell me, yet he had no qualms about committing a much greater wrong against the helpless young girl under his care, as his daughter’s property. Sometimes my tormentor would ask me if I wanted to be sold. I told him I would rather be sold to anyone than to live the way I was. At those times, he would act like he was deeply hurt and accuse me of being ungrateful. “Didn’t I take you into my home and make you a companion for my own children?” he would say. “Have I ever treated you like a black person? I've never let you be punished, even to please your mistress. And this is the thanks I get, you ungrateful girl!” I responded that he had his own reasons for protecting me from punishment and that his actions made my mistress resent me and treat me worse. If I cried, he would say, “Poor child! Don’t cry! Don’t cry! I’ll make peace with your mistress for you. Just let me handle things my way. Poor, foolish girl! You don’t know what’s best for you. I would take care of you. I would make a lady out of you. Now go, and think about all I’ve promised you.”

I did think of it.

I thought of it.

Reader, I draw no imaginary pictures of southern homes. I am telling you the plain truth. Yet when victims make their escape from this wild beast of Slavery, northerners consent to act the part of bloodhounds, and hunt the poor fugitive back into his den, “full of dead men’s bones, and all uncleanness.” Nay, more, they are not only willing, but proud, to give their daughters in marriage to slaveholders. The poor girls have romantic notions of a sunny clime, and of the flowering vines that all the year round shade a happy home. To what disappointments are they destined! The young wife soon learns that the husband in whose hands she has placed her happiness pays no regard to his marriage vows. Children of every shade of complexion play with her own fair babies, and too well she knows that they are born unto him of his own household. Jealousy and hatred enter the flowery home, and it is ravaged of its loveliness.

Reader, I’m not painting any fanciful pictures of southern homes. I'm sharing the plain truth. Yet when victims manage to escape from the savage reality of slavery, people from the North often act like bloodhounds, chasing the poor fugitive back into their lair, “full of dead men’s bones and all uncleanness.” What’s more, they’re not just willing but also proud to marry off their daughters to slaveholders. The poor girls have dreamy ideas about a sunny place and the blooming vines that shade a blissful home all year long. But what disappointments await them! The young wife quickly discovers that the husband she thought would bring her happiness completely disregards his marriage vows. Children of every skin color play with her own fair babies, and she knows too well that they are born of his own household. Jealousy and hatred seep into the once beautiful home, destroying its loveliness.

Southern women often marry a man knowing that he is the father of many little slaves. They do not trouble themselves about it. They regard such children as property, as marketable as the pigs on the plantation; and it is seldom that they do not make them aware of this by passing them into the slave-trader’s hands as soon as possible, and thus getting them out of their sight. I am glad to say there are some honorable exceptions.

Southern women often marry a man knowing he has fathered many enslaved children. They don’t concern themselves with it. They see these children as property, just as marketable as the pigs on the plantation; and it’s rare that they don’t make it clear by selling them to the slave trader as soon as they can, getting them out of their sight. I’m happy to say there are some honorable exceptions.

I have myself known two southern wives who exhorted their husbands to free those slaves towards whom they stood in a “parental relation;” and their request was granted. These husbands blushed before the superior nobleness of their wives’ natures. Though they had only counselled them to do that which it was their duty to do, it commanded their respect, and rendered their conduct more exemplary. Concealment was at an end, and confidence took the place of distrust.

I personally know two southern wives who encouraged their husbands to free the slaves they had a "parental relationship" with, and their husbands agreed. These men felt embarrassed in the face of the greater nobility of their wives’ character. Even though they had just advised them to do what was their duty, it earned their respect and made their actions more admirable. Secrets were no longer hidden, and trust replaced suspicion.

Though this bad institution deadens the moral sense, even in white women, to a fearful extent, it is not altogether extinct. I have heard southern ladies say of Mr. Such a one, “He not only thinks it no disgrace to be the father of those little niggers, but he is not ashamed to call himself their master. I declare, such things ought not to be tolerated in any decent society!”

Though this terrible institution numbs the moral sense, even among white women, to a shocking degree, it is not completely gone. I’ve heard southern ladies say about Mr. So-and-so, “He doesn’t think it’s disgraceful to be the father of those little Black children, and he isn’t ashamed to call himself their master. Honestly, things like this shouldn’t be accepted in any decent society!”










VII. The Lover.

Why does the slave ever love? Why allow the tendrils of the heart to twine around objects which may at any moment be wrenched away by the hand of violence? When separations come by the hand of death, the pious soul can bow in resignation, and say, “Not my will, but thine be done, O Lord!” But when the ruthless hand of man strikes the blow, regardless of the misery he causes, it is hard to be submissive. I did not reason thus when I was a young girl. Youth will be youth. I loved, and I indulged the hope that the dark clouds around me would turn out a bright lining. I forgot that in the land of my birth the shadows are too dense for light to penetrate. A land

Why does a slave ever love? Why let the heart wrap around things that can be taken away at any moment by violence? When we face separation through death, a faithful soul can accept it and say, “Not my will, but yours be done, O Lord!” But when a cruel person delivers the blow, showing no regard for the pain they cause, it's tough to accept. I didn't think this way when I was a young girl. Youth is youthful. I loved, and I hoped that the dark clouds around me would have a silver lining. I forgot that in my homeland, the shadows are too thick for any light to get through. A land

“Where laughter is not mirth; nor thought the mind;
Nor words a language; nor e’en men mankind.
Where cries reply to curses, shrieks to blows,
And each is tortured in his separate hell.”

There was in the neighborhood a young colored carpenter; a free-born man. We had been well acquainted in childhood, and frequently met together afterwards. We became mutually attached, and he proposed to marry me. I loved him with all the ardor of a young girl’s first love. But when I reflected that I was a slave, and that the laws gave no sanction to the marriage of such, my heart sank within me. My lover wanted to buy me; but I knew that Dr. Flint was too wilful and arbitrary a man to consent to that arrangement. From him, I was sure of experiencing all sorts of opposition, and I had nothing to hope from my mistress. She would have been delighted to have got rid of me, but not in that way. It would have relieved her mind of a burden if she could have seen me sold to some distant state, but if I was married near home I should be just as much in her husband’s power as I had previously been,—for the husband of a slave has no power to protect her. Moreover, my mistress, like many others, seemed to think that slaves had no right to any family ties of their own; that they were created merely to wait upon the family of the mistress. I once heard her abuse a young slave girl, who told her that a colored man wanted to make her his wife. “I will have you peeled and pickled, my lady,” said she, “if I ever hear you mention that subject again. Do you suppose that I will have you tending my children with the children of that nigger?” The girl to whom she said this had a mulatto child, of course not acknowledged by its father. The poor black man who loved her would have been proud to acknowledge his helpless offspring.

There was a young Black carpenter in the neighborhood; he was a free man. We had known each other well since childhood and often met up after that. We grew fond of each other, and he proposed marriage. I loved him with all the passion of a young girl's first love. But when I realized I was a slave and that the laws didn’t allow for the marriage of someone like me, my heart sank. My boyfriend wanted to buy my freedom, but I knew Dr. Flint was too stubborn and controlling to agree to that. I was certain he would create all kinds of obstacles, and I had no hope from my mistress. She would have loved to be rid of me, just not that way. It would have eased her mind to see me sold off to a distant state, but if I married someone nearby, I would still be just as much under her husband's control as I was before—because a slave's husband has no real power to protect her. Plus, my mistress, like many others, seemed to believe that slaves had no right to their own families; they were only meant to serve the mistress's family. I once heard her scold a young slave girl who told her that a Black man wanted to marry her. “I’ll have you skinned and pickled, girl,” she said, “if I ever hear you bring up that topic again. Do you think I’ll let you take care of my children while you’re tied to that black man’s kids?” The girl she was talking to had a mixed-race child, who, of course, was not acknowledged by its father. The poor Black man who loved her would have been proud to recognize his defenseless child.

Many and anxious were the thoughts I revolved in my mind. I was at a loss what to do. Above all things, I was desirous to spare my lover the insults that had cut so deeply into my own soul. I talked with my grandmother about it, and partly told her my fears. I did not dare to tell her the worst. She had long suspected all was not right, and if I confirmed her suspicions I knew a storm would rise that would prove the overthrow of all my hopes.

I had so many anxious thoughts running through my mind. I didn’t know what to do. More than anything, I wanted to protect my partner from the insults that had hurt me so deeply. I talked to my grandmother about it and shared some of my fears, but I didn't dare tell her the worst. She had suspected something was wrong for a while, and if I confirmed her suspicions, I knew it would create a huge upheaval that would destroy all my hopes.

This love-dream had been my support through many trials; and I could not bear to run the risk of having it suddenly dissipated. There was a lady in the neighborhood, a particular friend of Dr. Flint’s, who often visited the house. I had a great respect for her, and she had always manifested a friendly interest in me. Grandmother thought she would have great influence with the doctor. I went to this lady, and told her my story. I told her I was aware that my lover’s being a free-born man would prove a great objection; but he wanted to buy me; and if Dr. Flint would consent to that arrangement, I felt sure he would be willing to pay any reasonable price. She knew that Mrs. Flint disliked me; therefore, I ventured to suggest that perhaps my mistress would approve of my being sold, as that would rid her of me. The lady listened with kindly sympathy, and promised to do her utmost to promote my wishes. She had an interview with the doctor, and I believe she pleaded my cause earnestly; but it was all to no purpose.

This love-dream had been my support through many challenges, and I couldn't bear the thought of it suddenly disappearing. There was a woman in the neighborhood, a close friend of Dr. Flint’s, who often visited the house. I had a lot of respect for her, and she always showed a friendly interest in me. My grandmother believed she would have a strong influence over the doctor. I went to this woman and shared my story with her. I mentioned that I knew my lover being a free-born man would be a significant issue, but he wanted to buy me, and if Dr. Flint agreed to that, I was sure he would pay any reasonable price. She knew that Mrs. Flint disliked me, so I suggested that perhaps my mistress might approve of me being sold since that would get rid of me. The woman listened with genuine sympathy and promised to do everything she could to support my wishes. She met with the doctor, and I believe she advocated for me passionately; but it was all in vain.

How I dreaded my master now! Every minute I expected to be summoned to his presence; but the day passed, and I heard nothing from him. The next morning, a message was brought to me: “Master wants you in his study.” I found the door ajar, and I stood a moment gazing at the hateful man who claimed a right to rule me, body and soul. I entered, and tried to appear calm. I did not want him to know how my heart was bleeding. He looked fixedly at me, with an expression which seemed to say, “I have half a mind to kill you on the spot.” At last he broke the silence, and that was a relief to both of us.

How I dreaded my master now! Every minute I expected to be called into his presence; but the day passed, and I heard nothing from him. The next morning, a message was brought to me: “Master wants you in his study.” I found the door slightly open, and I stood for a moment staring at the loathsome man who thought he had the right to control me, body and soul. I entered and tried to look calm. I didn’t want him to know how my heart was aching. He stared at me with a look that seemed to say, “I feel like killing you right now.” Finally, he broke the silence, and that was a relief for both of us.

“So you want to be married, do you?” said he, “and to a free nigger.”

“So you want to get married, do you?” he said, “and to a free Black person.”

“Yes, sir.”

“Yeah, sure.”

“Well, I’ll soon convince you whether I am your master, or the nigger fellow you honor so highly. If you must have a husband, you may take up with one of my slaves.”

“Well, I’ll quickly show you whether I’m your master or the guy you admire so much. If you really want a husband, you can go for one of my slaves.”

What a situation I should be in, as the wife of one of his slaves, even if my heart had been interested!

What a position I would be in, as the wife of one of his slaves, even if my heart had been involved!

I replied, “Don’t you suppose, sir, that a slave can have some preference about marrying? Do you suppose that all men are alike to her?”

I replied, “Don’t you think, sir, that a slave might have some say in whom they marry? Do you think that all men are the same to her?”

“Do you love this nigger?” said he, abruptly.

“Do you like this black?” he asked suddenly.

“Yes, sir.”

"Yes, sir."

“How dare you tell me so!” he exclaimed, in great wrath. After a slight pause, he added, “I supposed you thought more of yourself; that you felt above the insults of such puppies.”

“How dare you say that to me!” he shouted, clearly angered. After a brief pause, he continued, “I thought you had a higher opinion of yourself; that you considered yourself above the insults from such losers.”

I replied, “If he is a puppy I am a puppy, for we are both of the negro race. It is right and honorable for us to love each other. The man you call a puppy never insulted me, sir; and he would not love me if he did not believe me to be a virtuous woman.”

I replied, “If he’s a puppy, then I’m a puppy too, because we’re both from the same race. It’s right and honorable for us to love each other. The man you refer to as a puppy never disrespected me, sir; and he wouldn’t love me if he didn’t see me as a virtuous woman.”

He sprang upon me like a tiger, and gave me a stunning blow. It was the first time he had ever struck me; and fear did not enable me to control my anger. When I had recovered a little from the effects, I exclaimed, “You have struck me for answering you honestly. How I despise you!”

He jumped at me like a tiger and landed a shocking punch. It was the first time he had ever hit me, and my fear didn’t help me manage my anger. After I had calmed down a bit, I shouted, “You hit me for being honest with you. I really despise you!”

There was silence for some minutes. Perhaps he was deciding what should be my punishment; or, perhaps, he wanted to give me time to reflect on what I had said, and to whom I had said it. Finally, he asked, “Do you know what you have said?”

There was silence for a few minutes. Maybe he was thinking about what my punishment should be; or maybe he wanted to give me time to think about what I had said and to whom I had said it. Finally, he asked, “Do you know what you just said?”

“Yes, sir; but your treatment drove me to it.”

“Yes, sir; but your treatment pushed me to it.”

“Do you know that I have a right to do as I like with you,—that I can kill you, if I please?”

“Do you know that I have the right to do whatever I want with you—that I can kill you if I want to?”

“You have tried to kill me, and I wish you had; but you have no right to do as you like with me.”

“You've tried to kill me, and I wish you had; but you don't have the right to do whatever you want with me.”

“Silence!” he exclaimed, in a thundering voice. “By heavens, girl, you forget yourself too far! Are you mad? If you are, I will soon bring you to your senses. Do you think any other master would bear what I have borne from you this morning? Many masters would have killed you on the spot. How would you like to be sent to jail for your insolence?”

“Silence!” he shouted, in a booming voice. “Good heavens, girl, you’re losing your mind! Are you crazy? If you are, I’ll quickly make you see sense. Do you think any other boss would tolerate what I’ve put up with from you this morning? Many bosses would have fired you on the spot. How would you feel about being sent to jail for your disrespect?”

“I know I have been disrespectful, sir,” I replied; “but you drove me to it; I couldn’t help it. As for the jail, there would be more peace for me there than there is here.”

“I know I’ve been disrespectful, sir,” I replied; “but you pushed me to it; I couldn’t help it. As for jail, I’d find more peace there than I do here.”

“You deserve to go there,” said he, “and to be under such treatment, that you would forget the meaning of the word peace. It would do you good. It would take some of your high notions out of you. But I am not ready to send you there yet, notwithstanding your ingratitude for all my kindness and forbearance. You have been the plague of my life. I have wanted to make you happy, and I have been repaid with the basest ingratitude; but though you have proved yourself incapable of appreciating my kindness, I will be lenient towards you, Linda. I will give you one more chance to redeem your character. If you behave yourself and do as I require, I will forgive you and treat you as I always have done; but if you disobey me, I will punish you as I would the meanest slave on my plantation. Never let me hear that fellow’s name mentioned again. If I ever know of your speaking to him, I will cowhide you both; and if I catch him lurking about my premises, I will shoot him as soon as I would a dog. Do you hear what I say? I’ll teach you a lesson about marriage and free niggers! Now go, and let this be the last time I have occasion to speak to you on this subject.”

“You deserve to go there,” he said, “and to be treated in such a way that you would forget what the word peace means. It would do you good. It would take away some of your high ideals. But I am not ready to send you there yet, despite your ingratitude for all my kindness and patience. You have been a burden in my life. I have wanted to make you happy, and I’ve received nothing but the worst ingratitude in return; but even though you have shown you can't appreciate my kindness, I will be lenient with you, Linda. I will give you one more chance to change your behavior. If you behave and do what I ask, I will forgive you and treat you as I always have; but if you disobey me, I will punish you like the lowest slave on my plantation. Never let me hear that guy’s name mentioned again. If I find out you’ve spoken to him, I will whip you both; and if I catch him lurking around my property, I will shoot him just like I would a dog. Do you hear me? I’ll teach you a lesson about marriage and free blacks! Now go, and let this be the last time we discuss this.”

Reader, did you ever hate? I hope not. I never did but once; and I trust I never shall again. Somebody has called it “the atmosphere of hell;” and I believe it is so.

Reader, have you ever hated? I hope not. I only did once; and I hope I never will again. Someone has referred to it as “the atmosphere of hell;” and I believe that's true.

For a fortnight the doctor did not speak to me. He thought to mortify me; to make me feel that I had disgraced myself by receiving the honorable addresses of a respectable colored man, in preference to the base proposals of a white man. But though his lips disdained to address me, his eyes were very loquacious. No animal ever watched its prey more narrowly than he watched me. He knew that I could write, though he had failed to make me read his letters; and he was now troubled lest I should exchange letters with another man. After a while he became weary of silence; and I was sorry for it. One morning, as he passed through the hall, to leave the house, he contrived to thrust a note into my hand. I thought I had better read it, and spare myself the vexation of having him read it to me. It expressed regret for the blow he had given me, and reminded me that I myself was wholly to blame for it. He hoped I had become convinced of the injury I was doing myself by incurring his displeasure. He wrote that he had made up his mind to go to Louisiana; that he should take several slaves with him, and intended I should be one of the number. My mistress would remain where she was; therefore I should have nothing to fear from that quarter. If I merited kindness from him, he assured me that it would be lavishly bestowed. He begged me to think over the matter, and answer the following day.

For two weeks, the doctor didn’t talk to me. He wanted to humiliate me, to make me feel like I had embarrassed myself by accepting the respectful advances of a decent Black man instead of the dishonorable offers from a white man. But even though he wouldn’t speak to me, his eyes were very expressive. No animal ever watched its prey more closely than he watched me. He knew I could write, even though he had failed to get me to read his letters, and he was worried that I might exchange letters with another man. Eventually, he grew tired of being silent, and I felt bad about it. One morning, as he walked through the hall to leave the house, he managed to slip a note into my hand. I thought it would be better to read it myself rather than endure the annoyance of him reading it to me. It expressed regret for the blow he had given me and reminded me that I was entirely to blame for it. He hoped I realized the harm I was causing myself by making him upset. He wrote that he planned to go to Louisiana, would take several slaves with him, and intended for me to be one of them. My mistress would stay where she was, so I wouldn’t have to worry about that. If I deserved his kindness, he promised it would be generously given. He asked me to think it over and respond the next day.

The next morning I was called to carry a pair of scissors to his room. I laid them on the table, with the letter beside them. He thought it was my answer, and did not call me back. I went as usual to attend my young mistress to and from school. He met me in the street, and ordered me to stop at his office on my way back. When I entered, he showed me his letter, and asked me why I had not answered it. I replied, “I am your daughter’s property, and it is in your power to send me, or take me, wherever you please.” He said he was very glad to find me so willing to go, and that we should start early in the autumn. He had a large practice in the town, and I rather thought he had made up the story merely to frighten me. However that might be, I was determined that I would never go to Louisiana with him.

The next morning, I was asked to take a pair of scissors to his room. I placed them on the table next to the letter. He assumed it was my reply and didn’t call me back. I went as usual to accompany my young mistress to and from school. He spotted me on the street and told me to stop by his office on my way back. When I walked in, he showed me his letter and asked why I hadn’t replied. I said, “I belong to your daughter, and you have the power to send me or take me wherever you want.” He said he was pleased to see I was so willing to go and that we would leave early in the fall. He had a big practice in town, and I suspected he had fabricated the story just to scare me. Regardless, I was determined that I would never go to Louisiana with him.

Summer passed away, and early in the autumn Dr. Flint’s eldest son was sent to Louisiana to examine the country, with a view to emigrating. That news did not disturb me. I knew very well that I should not be sent with him. That I had not been taken to the plantation before this time, was owing to the fact that his son was there. He was jealous of his son; and jealousy of the overseer had kept him from punishing me by sending me into the fields to work. Is it strange that I was not proud of these protectors? As for the overseer, he was a man for whom I had less respect than I had for a bloodhound.

Summer came to an end, and early in autumn, Dr. Flint’s oldest son was sent to Louisiana to check out the area with the intention of moving there. That news didn’t bother me. I knew for sure that I wouldn’t be sent with him. The reason I hadn’t been taken to the plantation until now was because his son was there. He was jealous of his son; and his jealousy of the overseer had kept him from punishing me by making me work in the fields. Is it surprising that I wasn’t proud of these so-called protectors? As for the overseer, he was someone I respected even less than a bloodhound.

Young Mr. Flint did not bring back a favorable report of Louisiana, and I heard no more of that scheme. Soon after this, my lover met me at the corner of the street, and I stopped to speak to him. Looking up, I saw my master watching us from his window. I hurried home, trembling with fear. I was sent for, immediately, to go to his room. He met me with a blow. “When is mistress to be married?” said he, in a sneering tone. A shower of oaths and imprecations followed. How thankful I was that my lover was a free man! that my tyrant had no power to flog him for speaking to me in the street!

Young Mr. Flint didn’t have anything good to say about Louisiana, and I didn’t hear anything more about that plan. Shortly after, my boyfriend ran into me at the corner of the street, and I stopped to talk to him. When I looked up, I saw my master watching us from his window. I rushed home, shaking with fear. I was called to his room right away. He met me with a slap. “When is your mistress getting married?” he sneered. A torrent of curses followed. I was so grateful that my boyfriend was free! My oppressor had no power to punish him for talking to me in the street!

Again and again I revolved in my mind how all this would end. There was no hope that the doctor would consent to sell me on any terms. He had an iron will, and was determined to keep me, and to conquer me. My lover was an intelligent and religious man. Even if he could have obtained permission to marry me while I was a slave, the marriage would give him no power to protect me from my master. It would have made him miserable to witness the insults I should have been subjected to. And then, if we had children, I knew they must “follow the condition of the mother.” What a terrible blight that would be on the heart of a free, intelligent father! For his sake, I felt that I ought not to link his fate with my own unhappy destiny. He was going to Savannah to see about a little property left him by an uncle; and hard as it was to bring my feelings to it, I earnestly entreated him not to come back. I advised him to go to the Free States, where his tongue would not be tied, and where his intelligence would be of more avail to him. He left me, still hoping the day would come when I could be bought. With me the lamp of hope had gone out. The dream of my girlhood was over. I felt lonely and desolate.

Over and over, I thought about how this would all end. There was no chance that the doctor would agree to sell me under any circumstances. He had a strong will and was determined to keep me, to break me. My lover was smart and religious. Even if he could have gotten permission to marry me while I was still a slave, the marriage wouldn’t give him any power to protect me from my master. It would have been heartbreaking for him to witness the insults I would have to endure. And then, if we had children, I knew they would “follow the condition of the mother.” What a terrible burden that would be for a free, intelligent father! For his sake, I felt I shouldn’t tie his fate to my own miserable future. He was going to Savannah to sort out a small property left to him by his uncle, and as hard as it was for me to say this, I strongly urged him not to return. I advised him to go to the Free States, where he could speak freely and where his intelligence would serve him better. He left me, still hoping for the day when I could be bought. For me, the light of hope had gone out. The dream of my youth was over. I felt so alone and lost.

Still I was not stripped of all. I still had my good grandmother, and my affectionate brother. When he put his arms round my neck, and looked into my eyes, as if to read there the troubles I dared not tell, I felt that I still had something to love. But even that pleasant emotion was chilled by the reflection that he might be torn from me at any moment, by some sudden freak of my master. If he had known how we loved each other, I think he would have exulted in separating us. We often planned together how we could get to the north. But, as William remarked, such things are easier said than done. My movements were very closely watched, and we had no means of getting any money to defray our expenses. As for grandmother, she was strongly opposed to her children’s undertaking any such project. She had not forgotten poor Benjamin’s sufferings, and she was afraid that if another child tried to escape, he would have a similar or a worse fate. To me, nothing seemed more dreadful than my present life. I said to myself, “William must be free. He shall go to the north, and I will follow him.” Many a slave sister has formed the same plans.

Still, I wasn’t completely alone. I still had my loving grandmother and my caring brother. When he wrapped his arms around my neck and looked into my eyes as if trying to understand the troubles I couldn’t express, I felt like I still had something to hold onto. But even that nice feeling was dampened by the thought that he could be taken from me at any moment by some sudden whim of my master. If he had known how much we cared for each other, I think he would have taken pleasure in tearing us apart. We often talked about how we could make it to the north. But, as William pointed out, it’s easier said than done. My movements were watched very closely, and we had no way to get any money to cover our expenses. As for grandmother, she was strongly against any of her children trying to escape. She hadn’t forgotten poor Benjamin’s sufferings, and she worried that if another child tried to flee, they would face a similar or worse fate. To me, nothing felt worse than my current life. I kept telling myself, “William *must* be free. He will go north, and I will follow him.” Many a slave sister has dreamed up the same plans.










VIII. What Slaves Are Taught To Think Of The North.

Slaveholders pride themselves upon being honorable men; but if you were to hear the enormous lies they tell their slaves, you would have small respect for their veracity. I have spoken plain English. Pardon me. I cannot use a milder term. When they visit the north, and return home, they tell their slaves of the runaways they have seen, and describe them to be in the most deplorable condition. A slaveholder once told me that he had seen a runaway friend of mine in New York, and that she besought him to take her back to her master, for she was literally dying of starvation; that many days she had only one cold potato to eat, and at other times could get nothing at all. He said he refused to take her, because he knew her master would not thank him for bringing such a miserable wretch to his house. He ended by saying to me, “This is the punishment she brought on herself for running away from a kind master.”

Slaveholders take pride in being honorable men, but if you heard the huge lies they tell their slaves, you’d have little respect for their honesty. I’m speaking plain English. Excuse me, but I can’t use softer words. When they visit the North and come back home, they tell their slaves about the runaways they’ve seen and describe them as being in the most terrible condition. A slaveholder once told me he saw a runaway friend of mine in New York, and she begged him to take her back to her master because she was literally starving; for many days she had only one cold potato to eat, and at other times she couldn’t get anything at all. He said he refused to take her back because he knew her master wouldn’t thank him for bringing such a miserable person to his house. He finished by saying to me, “This is the punishment she brought on herself for running away from a kind master.”

This whole story was false. I afterwards staid with that friend in New York, and found her in comfortable circumstances. She had never thought of such a thing as wishing to go back to slavery. Many of the slaves believe such stories, and think it is not worth while to exchange slavery for such a hard kind of freedom. It is difficult to persuade such that freedom could make them useful men, and enable them to protect their wives and children. If those heathen in our Christian land had as much teaching as some Hindoos, they would think otherwise. They would know that liberty is more valuable than life. They would begin to understand their own capabilities, and exert themselves to become men and women.

This entire story was untrue. I later stayed with that friend in New York and found her living comfortably. She had never considered the idea of wanting to go back to slavery. Many slaves believe such stories and think it isn’t worth it to trade slavery for such a tough kind of freedom. It's hard to convince them that freedom could make them better individuals and allow them to support their wives and children. If those people in our Christian country received as much education as some Hindus, they would think differently. They would recognize that liberty is more valuable than life. They would start to understand their own potential and strive to become true men and women.

But while the Free States sustain a law which hurls fugitives back into slavery, how can the slaves resolve to become men? There are some who strive to protect wives and daughters from the insults of their masters; but those who have such sentiments have had advantages above the general mass of slaves. They have been partially civilized and Christianized by favorable circumstances. Some are bold enough to utter such sentiments to their masters. O, that there were more of them!

But while the Free States have laws that force fugitives back into slavery, how can slaves ever hope to become fully human? Some try to protect their wives and daughters from the insults of their masters, but those who feel this way have had advantages over the majority of slaves. They have been somewhat civilized and Christianized by fortunate circumstances. Some are brave enough to express such feelings to their masters. Oh, that there were more of them!

Some poor creatures have been so brutalized by the lash that they will sneak out of the way to give their masters free access to their wives and daughters. Do you think this proves the black man to belong to an inferior order of beings? What would you be, if you had been born and brought up a slave, with generations of slaves for ancestors? I admit that the black man is inferior. But what is it that makes him so? It is the ignorance in which white men compel him to live; it is the torturing whip that lashes manhood out of him; it is the fierce bloodhounds of the South, and the scarcely less cruel human bloodhounds of the north, who enforce the Fugitive Slave Law. They do the work.

Some unfortunate individuals have been so traumatized by abuse that they will go out of their way to allow their masters unrestricted access to their wives and daughters. Do you think this shows that Black people are inherently inferior? What would you be like if you had been born and raised as a slave, with generations of slaves in your family? I admit that the Black man is seen as inferior. But what causes this perception? It’s the ignorance that white people force upon him; it’s the brutal whip that strips away his manhood; it’s the aggressive bloodhounds of the South, and the almost equally ruthless human pursuers in the North, who enforce the Fugitive Slave Law. They are the ones responsible.

Southern gentlemen indulge in the most contemptuous expressions about the Yankees, while they, on their part, consent to do the vilest work for them, such as the ferocious bloodhounds and the despised negro-hunters are employed to do at home. When southerners go to the north, they are proud to do them honor; but the northern man is not welcome south of Mason and Dixon’s line, unless he suppresses every thought and feeling at variance with their “peculiar institution.” Nor is it enough to be silent. The masters are not pleased, unless they obtain a greater degree of subservience than that; and they are generally accommodated. Do they respect the northerner for this? I trow not. Even the slaves despise “a northern man with southern principles;” and that is the class they generally see. When northerners go to the south to reside, they prove very apt scholars. They soon imbibe the sentiments and disposition of their neighbors, and generally go beyond their teachers. Of the two, they are proverbially the hardest masters.

Southern gentlemen express the most contemptible opinions about the Yankees, yet they willingly do the most disgraceful tasks for them, akin to the brutal bloodhounds and the hated hunters used at home. When Southerners visit the North, they take pride in honoring them; however, a Northerner isn't welcome south of Mason and Dixon's line unless he hides every thought and feeling that clashes with their "peculiar institution." Being silent isn't enough either. The masters are not satisfied unless they see a higher level of submission than that, and they typically get it. Do they actually respect the Northerner for this? I doubt it. Even the slaves look down on "a northern man with southern principles," which is generally the type they encounter. When Northerners move to the South, they quickly become eager students. They soon absorb the views and attitudes of those around them and usually surpass their instructors. Among the two, they are notoriously the harshest masters.

They seem to satisfy their consciences with the doctrine that God created the Africans to be slaves. What a libel upon the heavenly Father, who “made of one blood all nations of men!” And then who are Africans? Who can measure the amount of Anglo-Saxon blood coursing in the veins of American slaves?

They seem to ease their consciences with the belief that God created Africans to be slaves. What a slander against the heavenly Father, who “made of one blood all nations of men!” And then who are Africans? Who can measure how much Anglo-Saxon blood flows in the veins of American slaves?

I have spoken of the pains slaveholders take to give their slaves a bad opinion of the north; but, notwithstanding this, intelligent slaves are aware that they have many friends in the Free States. Even the most ignorant have some confused notions about it. They knew that I could read; and I was often asked if I had seen any thing in the newspapers about white folks over in the big north, who were trying to get their freedom for them. Some believe that the abolitionists have already made them free, and that it is established by law, but that their masters prevent the law from going into effect. One woman begged me to get a newspaper and read it over. She said her husband told her that the black people had sent word to the queen of ’Merica that they were all slaves; that she didn’t believe it, and went to Washington city to see the president about it. They quarrelled; she drew her sword upon him, and swore that he should help her to make them all free.

I’ve talked about the efforts slaveholders make to make their slaves think poorly of the North; however, despite this, aware slaves know they have many supporters in the Free States. Even the least informed have some vague ideas about it. They knew I could read, and I was often asked if I had seen anything in the newspapers about white people up in the North trying to help them gain their freedom. Some believe that the abolitionists have already freed them and that it's confirmed by law, but their masters are keeping the law from being enforced. One woman asked me to get a newspaper and read it aloud. She said her husband told her that black people had sent a message to the queen of America saying they were all slaves; she didn’t believe it and went to Washington, D.C., to speak with the president about it. They argued; she pulled her sword on him and swore he had to help her free them all.

That poor, ignorant woman thought that America was governed by a Queen, to whom the President was subordinate. I wish the President was subordinate to Queen Justice.

That poor, clueless woman thought that America was ruled by a Queen, with the President under her authority. I wish the President was under Queen Justice.










IX. Sketches Of Neighboring Slaveholders.

There was a planter in the country, not far from us, whom I will call Mr. Litch. He was an ill-bred, uneducated man, but very wealthy. He had six hundred slaves, many of whom he did not know by sight. His extensive plantation was managed by well-paid overseers. There was a jail and a whipping post on his grounds; and whatever cruelties were perpetrated there, they passed without comment. He was so effectually screened by his great wealth that he was called to no account for his crimes, not even for murder.

There was a landowner in the countryside, not far from us, whom I'll call Mr. Litch. He was rude and uneducated, but very rich. He owned six hundred slaves, many of whom he couldn't recognize by sight. His large plantation was run by well-paid overseers. There was a jail and a whipping post on his property; and any cruelty that happened there went unnoticed. His immense wealth allowed him to avoid facing any consequences for his actions, not even for murder.

Various were the punishments resorted to. A favorite one was to tie a rope round a man’s body, and suspend him from the ground. A fire was kindled over him, from which was suspended a piece of fat pork. As this cooked, the scalding drops of fat continually fell on the bare flesh. On his own plantation, he required very strict obedience to the eighth commandment. But depredations on the neighbors were allowable, provided the culprit managed to evade detection or suspicion. If a neighbor brought a charge of theft against any of his slaves, he was browbeaten by the master, who assured him that his slaves had enough of every thing at home, and had no inducement to steal. No sooner was the neighbor’s back turned, than the accused was sought out, and whipped for his lack of discretion. If a slave stole from him even a pound of meat or a peck of corn, if detection followed, he was put in chains and imprisoned, and so kept till his form was attenuated by hunger and suffering.

There were various punishments used. One common method was to tie a rope around a man's body and hang him off the ground. A fire was lit above him, with a piece of fatty pork hanging over it. As it cooked, the hot drops of fat continuously fell on his bare skin. On his own plantation, he demanded strict obedience to the eighth commandment. However, stealing from neighbors was permitted, as long as the thief could avoid being caught or suspected. If a neighbor accused any of his slaves of theft, the master would intimidate him, insisting that his slaves had plenty at home and no reason to steal. As soon as the neighbor left, the accused would be found and whipped for being careless. If a slave stole even a pound of meat or a peck of corn and got caught, he would be put in chains and imprisoned, left there until he grew weak from hunger and suffering.

A freshet once bore his wine cellar and meat house miles away from the plantation. Some slaves followed, and secured bits of meat and bottles of wine. Two were detected; a ham and some liquor being found in their huts. They were summoned by their master. No words were used, but a club felled them to the ground. A rough box was their coffin, and their interment was a dog’s burial. Nothing was said.

A flood once swept away his wine cellar and meat house miles from the plantation. Some slaves followed and managed to grab bits of meat and bottles of wine. Two were caught; a ham and some liquor were discovered in their huts. They were called by their master. No words were exchanged, but a club knocked them to the ground. A crude box served as their coffin, and their burial was treated like a dog's. There was no discussion.

Murder was so common on his plantation that he feared to be alone after nightfall. He might have believed in ghosts.

Murder was so common on his plantation that he was afraid to be alone after dark. He might have believed in ghosts.

His brother, if not equal in wealth, was at least equal in cruelty. His bloodhounds were well trained. Their pen was spacious, and a terror to the slaves. They were let loose on a runaway, and, if they tracked him, they literally tore the flesh from his bones. When this slaveholder died, his shrieks and groans were so frightful that they appalled his own friends. His last words were, “I am going to hell; bury my money with me.”

His brother, although not as wealthy, was just as cruel. His bloodhounds were well trained. Their kennel was large and frightened the slaves. They were released to hunt down a runaway, and if they found him, they literally ripped the flesh off his bones. When this slave owner died, his screams and moans were so terrifying that they shocked his own friends. His last words were, “I’m going to hell; bury my money with me.”

After death his eyes remained open. To press the lids down, silver dollars were laid on them. These were buried with him. From this circumstance, a rumor went abroad that his coffin was filled with money. Three times his grave was opened, and his coffin taken out. The last time, his body was found on the ground, and a flock of buzzards were pecking at it. He was again interred, and a sentinel set over his grave. The perpetrators were never discovered.

After he died, his eyes stayed open. To close them, silver dollars were placed on his eyelids. These were buried with him. Because of this, a rumor spread that his coffin was packed with money. His grave was opened three times, and his coffin was removed each time. The last time, his body was found on the ground, being picked at by a group of buzzards. He was buried again, and a guard was posted over his grave. The people responsible were never found.

Cruelty is contagious in uncivilized communities. Mr. Conant, a neighbor of Mr. Litch, returned from town one evening in a partial state of intoxication. His body servant gave him some offence. He was divested of his clothes, except his shirt, whipped, and tied to a large tree in front of the house. It was a stormy night in winter. The wind blew bitterly cold, and the boughs of the old tree crackled under falling sleet. A member of the family, fearing he would freeze to death, begged that he might be taken down; but the master would not relent. He remained there three hours; and, when he was cut down, he was more dead than alive. Another slave, who stole a pig from this master, to appease his hunger, was terribly flogged. In desperation, he tried to run away. But at the end of two miles, he was so faint with loss of blood, he thought he was dying. He had a wife, and he longed to see her once more. Too sick to walk, he crept back that long distance on his hands and knees. When he reached his master’s, it was night. He had not strength to rise and open the gate. He moaned, and tried to call for help. I had a friend living in the same family. At last his cry reached her. She went out and found the prostrate man at the gate. She ran back to the house for assistance, and two men returned with her. They carried him in, and laid him on the floor. The back of his shirt was one clot of blood. By means of lard, my friend loosened it from the raw flesh. She bandaged him, gave him cool drink, and left him to rest. The master said he deserved a hundred more lashes. When his own labor was stolen from him, he had stolen food to appease his hunger. This was his crime.

Cruelty spreads easily in uncivilized communities. Mr. Conant, a neighbor of Mr. Litch, returned home one evening partly drunk. His servant offended him, so he was stripped of his clothes except for his shirt, whipped, and tied to a large tree in front of the house. It was a stormy winter night, with bitterly cold winds and branches of the old tree cracking under the falling sleet. A family member, worried he would freeze to death, begged to have him taken down, but the master refused to show mercy. He stayed there for three hours, and when they finally cut him down, he was more dead than alive. Another slave, who stole a pig from this master to satisfy his hunger, was severely flogged. In desperation, he tried to run away, but after two miles, he was so weak from blood loss that he thought he was dying. He had a wife and desperately wanted to see her one last time. Too sick to walk, he crawled back that long distance on his hands and knees. When he reached his master's place, it was night. He didn’t have the strength to stand and open the gate. He moaned and tried to call for help. I had a friend who lived in the same family. Eventually, his cries reached her. She went outside and found the man collapsed at the gate. She hurried back to the house for help, and two men returned with her. They carried him inside and laid him on the floor. The back of his shirt was one large clump of blood. Using lard, my friend carefully pried it away from the raw flesh. She bandaged him, gave him a cool drink, and left him to rest. The master said he deserved a hundred more lashes. Since his labor had been taken from him, he had stolen food to satisfy his hunger. That was his crime.

Another neighbor was a Mrs. Wade. At no hour of the day was there cessation of the lash on her premises. Her labors began with the dawn, and did not cease till long after nightfall. The barn was her particular place of torture. There she lashed the slaves with the might of a man. An old slave of hers once said to me, “It is hell in missis’s house. ’Pears I can never get out. Day and night I prays to die.”

Another neighbor was Mrs. Wade. There was never a moment during the day when the sounds of her punishment didn’t echo from her property. Her work started at dawn and continued long after dark. The barn was her specific site of torment. There, she whipped the slaves with the strength of a man. One of her old slaves once told me, “It’s hell in the mistress’s house. It seems like I can never escape. Day and night, I pray to die.”

The mistress died before the old woman, and, when dying, entreated her husband not to permit any one of her slaves to look on her after death. A slave who had nursed her children, and had still a child in her care, watched her chance, and stole with it in her arms to the room where lay her dead mistress. She gazed a while on her, then raised her hand and dealt two blows on her face, saying, as she did so, “The devil is got you now!” She forgot that the child was looking on. She had just begun to talk; and she said to her father, “I did see ma, and mammy did strike ma, so,” striking her own face with her little hand. The master was startled. He could not imagine how the nurse could obtain access to the room where the corpse lay; for he kept the door locked. He questioned her. She confessed that what the child had said was true, and told how she had procured the key. She was sold to Georgia.

The mistress died before the old woman and, on her deathbed, asked her husband not to let any of her slaves see her after she passed away. A slave who had cared for her children and still had one child to look after saw her chance and snuck into the room where her dead mistress lay, holding the baby in her arms. She stared at her for a moment, then raised her hand and hit her face twice, saying, “The devil has you now!” She forgot that the child was watching. The little one had just begun to talk and said to her father, “I saw mama, and mammy hit mama like this,” striking her own face with her tiny hand. The master was taken aback. He couldn’t understand how the nurse managed to get into the room where the body was since he kept the door locked. He questioned her, and she admitted that what the child said was true and explained how she got the key. She was sold to Georgia.

In my childhood I knew a valuable slave, named Charity, and loved her, as all children did. Her young mistress married, and took her to Louisiana. Her little boy, James, was sold to a good sort of master. He became involved in debt, and James was sold again to a wealthy slaveholder, noted for his cruelty. With this man he grew up to manhood, receiving the treatment of a dog. After a severe whipping, to save himself from further infliction of the lash, with which he was threatened, he took to the woods. He was in a most miserable condition—cut by the cowskin, half naked, half starved, and without the means of procuring a crust of bread.

In my childhood, I knew a valuable slave named Charity, and I loved her like all the other kids did. Her young mistress got married and took her to Louisiana. Her little boy, James, was sold to a decent master. He ended up in debt, and James was sold again to a wealthy slaveowner known for his cruelty. With this man, he grew up enduring terrible treatment. After a severe beating, to avoid more punishment that he was threatened with, he escaped to the woods. He was in terrible condition—beaten with a cowskin, half-naked, starving, and unable to find even a piece of bread.

Some weeks after his escape, he was captured, tied, and carried back to his master’s plantation. This man considered punishment in his jail, on bread and water, after receiving hundreds of lashes, too mild for the poor slave’s offence. Therefore he decided, after the overseer should have whipped him to his satisfaction, to have him placed between the screws of the cotton gin, to stay as long as he had been in the woods. This wretched creature was cut with the whip from his head to his feet, then washed with strong brine, to prevent the flesh from mortifying, and make it heal sooner than it otherwise would. He was then put into the cotton gin, which was screwed down, only allowing him room to turn on his side when he could not lie on his back. Every morning a slave was sent with a piece of bread and bowl of water, which were placed within reach of the poor fellow. The slave was charged, under penalty of severe punishment, not to speak to him.

Some weeks after his escape, he was recaptured, tied up, and taken back to his master's plantation. This man thought that punishment in his jail, on bread and water, after receiving hundreds of lashes, was too lenient for the poor slave’s offense. So, he decided that after the overseer whipped him to his satisfaction, he would have him placed between the screws of the cotton gin for as long as he had been in the woods. This miserable creature was lashed from head to toe, then washed with strong brine to prevent his flesh from rotting and to help it heal faster. He was then put into the cotton gin, which was screwed down tightly, allowing him only enough room to turn on his side when he couldn’t lie on his back. Every morning, a slave was sent with a piece of bread and a bowl of water, which were placed within reach of the poor guy. The slave was told, under the threat of harsh punishment, not to speak to him.

Four days passed, and the slave continued to carry the bread and water. On the second morning, he found the bread gone, but the water untouched. When he had been in the press four days and five nights, the slave informed his master that the water had not been used for four mornings, and that a horrible stench came from the gin house. The overseer was sent to examine into it. When the press was unscrewed, the dead body was found partly eaten by rats and vermin. Perhaps the rats that devoured his bread had gnawed him before life was extinct. Poor Charity! Grandmother and I often asked each other how her affectionate heart would bear the news, if she should ever hear of the murder of her son. We had known her husband, and knew that James was like him in manliness and intelligence. These were the qualities that made it so hard for him to be a plantation slave. They put him into a rough box, and buried him with less feeling than would have been manifested for an old house dog. Nobody asked any questions. He was a slave; and the feeling was that the master had a right to do what he pleased with his own property. And what did he care for the value of a slave? He had hundreds of them. When they had finished their daily toil, they must hurry to eat their little morsels, and be ready to extinguish their pine knots before nine o’clock, when the overseer went his patrol rounds. He entered every cabin, to see that men and their wives had gone to bed together, lest the men, from over-fatigue, should fall asleep in the chimney corner, and remain there till the morning horn called them to their daily task. Women are considered of no value, unless they continually increase their owner’s stock. They are put on a par with animals. This same master shot a woman through the head, who had run away and been brought back to him. No one called him to account for it. If a slave resisted being whipped, the bloodhounds were unpacked, and set upon him, to tear his flesh from his bones. The master who did these things was highly educated, and styled a perfect gentleman. He also boasted the name and standing of a Christian, though Satan never had a truer follower.

Four days went by, and the slave kept bringing the bread and water. On the second morning, he noticed the bread was gone, but the water was still there. After being in the press for four days and five nights, the slave told his master that the water hadn’t been touched for four mornings, and that a terrible smell was coming from the gin house. The overseer was sent to check it out. When the press was unscrewed, they found the dead body, partially eaten by rats and vermin. It was possible that the rats that devoured his bread had gnawed at him before he died. Poor Charity! Grandmother and I often wondered how her loving heart would handle the news if she ever found out about her son’s murder. We knew her husband and recognized that James was like him in strength and intelligence. These qualities made it incredibly difficult for him to be a plantation slave. They placed him in a rough box and buried him with less care than they would have shown for an old house dog. Nobody asked any questions. He was a slave, and the belief was that the master had every right to do whatever he wanted with his own property. And what did he care about the value of a slave? He had hundreds of them. After finishing their daily work, they had to rush to eat their tiny portions and be ready to put out their pine knots before nine o’clock, when the overseer made his rounds. He checked every cabin to ensure that men and their wives were in bed together, in case the men, exhausted, fell asleep by the fireplace and stayed there until the morning horn called them for another day of work. Women were viewed as having no worth unless they continuously increased their owner’s stock. They were treated like animals. This same master shot a woman in the head who had run away and was brought back to him. No one held him accountable for it. If a slave resisted being whipped, the bloodhounds were unloaded and set upon him to tear his flesh from his bones. The master who did these things was well-educated and called a perfect gentleman. He also claimed to be a Christian, though Satan never had a truer follower.

I could tell of more slaveholders as cruel as those I have described. They are not exceptions to the general rule. I do not say there are no humane slaveholders. Such characters do exist, notwithstanding the hardening influences around them. But they are “like angels’ visits—few and far between.”

I could mention more slaveholders who are just as cruel as the ones I've described. They're not exceptions to the overall trend. I'm not saying there are no compassionate slaveholders. Such people do exist, despite the harsh influences surrounding them. But they are "like angels' visits—rare and hard to find."

I knew a young lady who was one of these rare specimens. She was an orphan, and inherited as slaves a woman and her six children. Their father was a free man. They had a comfortable home of their own, parents and children living together. The mother and eldest daughter served their mistress during the day, and at night returned to their dwelling, which was on the premises. The young lady was very pious, and there was some reality in her religion. She taught her slaves to lead pure lives, and wished them to enjoy the fruit of their own industry. Her religion was not a garb put on for Sunday, and laid aside till Sunday returned again. The eldest daughter of the slave mother was promised in marriage to a free man; and the day before the wedding this good mistress emancipated her, in order that her marriage might have the sanction of law.

I knew a young woman who was one of these rare individuals. She was an orphan and inherited a woman and her six children as slaves. Their father was a free man. They had a comfortable home where the parents and children lived together. The mother and eldest daughter worked for their mistress during the day and returned to their home at night, which was on the property. The young woman was very devout, and her faith was genuine. She taught her slaves to live virtuous lives and wanted them to benefit from their own hard work. Her religion wasn't just something she put on for Sunday and took off until the next Sunday. The eldest daughter of the enslaved mother was promised in marriage to a free man; and the day before the wedding, this kind mistress freed her so that their marriage would be recognized by the law.

Report said that this young lady cherished an unrequited affection for a man who had resolved to marry for wealth. In the course of time a rich uncle of hers died. He left six thousand dollars to his two sons by a colored woman, and the remainder of his property to this orphan niece. The metal soon attracted the magnet. The lady and her weighty purse became his. She offered to manumit her slaves—telling them that her marriage might make unexpected changes in their destiny, and she wished to insure their happiness. They refused to take their freedom, saying that she had always been their best friend, and they could not be so happy any where as with her. I was not surprised. I had often seen them in their comfortable home, and thought that the whole town did not contain a happier family. They had never felt slavery; and, when it was too late, they were convinced of its reality.

A report stated that this young woman had an unreturned love for a man who intended to marry for money. Eventually, a wealthy uncle of hers passed away. He left six thousand dollars to his two sons from a woman of color and the rest of his assets to his orphaned niece. The money quickly attracted attention. The woman and her large fortune became his. She offered to free her slaves, explaining that her marriage might lead to unexpected changes in their future, and she wanted to ensure their happiness. They declined their freedom, insisting that she had always been their best friend and that they wouldn’t be as happy anywhere else but with her. I wasn’t surprised. I had often seen them in their comfortable home and thought that no family in town was happier. They had never truly experienced slavery, and when it was too late, they realized its reality.

When the new master claimed this family as his property, the father became furious, and went to his mistress for protection. “I can do nothing for you now, Harry,” said she. “I no longer have the power I had a week ago. I have succeeded in obtaining the freedom of your wife; but I cannot obtain it for your children.” The unhappy father swore that nobody should take his children from him. He concealed them in the woods for some days; but they were discovered and taken. The father was put in jail, and the two oldest boys sold to Georgia. One little girl, too young to be of service to her master, was left with the wretched mother. The other three were carried to their master’s plantation. The eldest soon became a mother, and, when the slaveholder’s wife looked at the babe, she wept bitterly. She knew that her own husband had violated the purity she had so carefully inculcated. She had a second child by her master, and then he sold her and his offspring to his brother. She bore two children to the brother, and was sold again. The next sister went crazy. The life she was compelled to lead drove her mad. The third one became the mother of five daughters. Before the birth of the fourth the pious mistress died. To the last, she rendered every kindness to the slaves that her unfortunate circumstances permitted. She passed away peacefully, glad to close her eyes on a life which had been made so wretched by the man she loved.

When the new owner claimed this family as his property, the father got really angry and went to his mistress for help. “I can’t do anything for you now, Harry,” she said. “I don’t have the power I had a week ago. I managed to get your wife freed, but I can’t do the same for your children.” The desperate father vowed that no one would take his children from him. He hid them in the woods for a few days, but they were found and taken. The father was jailed, and the two oldest boys were sold to Georgia. One little girl, too young to work for her owner, was left with the miserable mother. The other three were taken to their owner's plantation. The eldest soon became a mother, and when the slaveholder’s wife looked at the baby, she cried hard. She knew her husband had violated the purity she had worked so hard to instill. She had a second child with her owner, and then he sold her and their children to his brother. She had two more children with the brother and was sold again. The next sister went insane. The life she had to live drove her mad. The third one became the mother of five daughters. Before she gave birth to the fourth, the devout mistress passed away. Until the end, she showed kindness to the slaves as much as her unfortunate situation allowed. She died peacefully, relieved to close her eyes on a life made so miserable by the man she loved.

This man squandered the fortune he had received, and sought to retrieve his affairs by a second marriage; but, having retired after a night of drunken debauch, he was found dead in the morning. He was called a good master; for he fed and clothed his slaves better than most masters, and the lash was not heard on his plantation so frequently as on many others. Had it not been for slavery, he would have been a better man, and his wife a happier woman.

This man wasted the fortune he had received and tried to sort out his life by marrying again. However, after a night of heavy drinking, he was found dead in the morning. People said he was a good boss because he took better care of his workers than most masters, and you didn’t hear the whip crack as often on his plantation as on many others. If it weren't for slavery, he would have been a better person, and his wife would have been happier.

No pen can give an adequate description of the all-pervading corruption produced by slavery. The slave girl is reared in an atmosphere of licentiousness and fear. The lash and the foul talk of her master and his sons are her teachers. When she is fourteen or fifteen, her owner, or his sons, or the overseer, or perhaps all of them, begin to bribe her with presents. If these fail to accomplish their purpose, she is whipped or starved into submission to their will. She may have had religious principles inculcated by some pious mother or grandmother, or some good mistress; she may have a lover, whose good opinion and peace of mind are dear to her heart; or the profligate men who have power over her may be exceedingly odious to her. But resistance is hopeless.

No words can truly capture the overwhelming corruption brought on by slavery. The slave girl grows up in an environment filled with immorality and fear. Her education comes from the whip and the degrading comments of her master and his sons. When she turns fourteen or fifteen, her owner, his sons, or the overseer, or maybe all of them, start trying to win her over with gifts. If that doesn't work, she gets whipped or starved into submission. She might have had moral values instilled in her by a devout mother or grandmother, or a kind mistress; she might have a boyfriend whose approval and happiness matter deeply to her; or the immoral men who control her might be disgustingly repulsive to her. But fighting back feels impossible.

“The poor worm
Shall prove her contest vain. Life’s little day
Shall pass, and she is gone!”

The slaveholder’s sons are, of course, vitiated, even while boys, by the unclean influences every where around them. Nor do the master’s daughters always escape. Severe retributions sometimes come upon him for the wrongs he does to the daughters of the slaves. The white daughters early hear their parents quarrelling about some female slave. Their curiosity is excited, and they soon learn the cause. They are attended by the young slave girls whom their father has corrupted; and they hear such talk as should never meet youthful ears, or any other ears. They know that the women slaves are subject to their father’s authority in all things; and in some cases they exercise the same authority over the men slaves. I have myself seen the master of such a household whose head was bowed down in shame; for it was known in the neighborhood that his daughter had selected one of the meanest slaves on his plantation to be the father of his first grandchild. She did not make her advances to her equals, nor even to her father’s more intelligent servants. She selected the most brutalized, over whom her authority could be exercised with less fear of exposure. Her father, half frantic with rage, sought to revenge himself on the offending black man; but his daughter, foreseeing the storm that would arise, had given him free papers, and sent him out of the state.

The slaveholder’s sons are, of course, corrupted, even as boys, by the filthy influences surrounding them. The master’s daughters don’t always escape either. Sometimes, severe consequences come back to him for the wrongs he does to the slaves’ daughters. The white daughters hear their parents arguing about some female slave early on. Their curiosity piqued, they quickly learn the reason. They are accompanied by the young slave girls whom their father has tainted; they hear conversations that should never reach young ears, or any ears for that matter. They understand that the female slaves are completely under their father’s control, and in some cases, they hold that same power over the male slaves. I have personally seen the master of such a household whose head was bowed in shame because it became known in the community that his daughter had chosen one of the most degraded slaves on his plantation to be the father of his first grandchild. She didn’t approach her equals, nor even her father’s more capable servants. Instead, she picked the most brutalized one, over whom she could exercise her authority with less fear of being found out. Her father, half-crazed with anger, tried to take revenge on the offending black man, but his daughter, anticipating the storm that would follow, had given him freedom papers and sent him out of the state.

In such cases the infant is smothered, or sent where it is never seen by any who know its history. But if the white parent is the father, instead of the mother, the offspring are unblushingly reared for the market. If they are girls, I have indicated plainly enough what will be their inevitable destiny.

In these situations, the baby is hidden away or sent to a place where no one who knows its background will ever see it. However, if the white parent is the father instead of the mother, the children are openly raised for exploitation. If they are girls, it's clear what their unavoidable future will be.

You may believe what I say; for I write only that whereof I know. I was twenty-one years in that cage of obscene birds. I can testify, from my own experience and observation, that slavery is a curse to the whites as well as to the blacks. It makes the white fathers cruel and sensual; the sons violent and licentious; it contaminates the daughters, and makes the wives wretched. And as for the colored race, it needs an abler pen than mine to describe the extremity of their sufferings, the depth of their degradation.

You can believe what I say because I only write about what I know. I spent twenty-one years in that cage of disgusting birds. I can tell you from my experience and observation that slavery is a curse for both whites and blacks. It turns white fathers cruel and depraved, makes sons violent and immoral, it corrupts daughters, and leaves wives miserable. As for the black community, it takes a more skilled writer than me to truly capture the extent of their suffering and the depth of their degradation.

Yet few slaveholders seem to be aware of the widespread moral ruin occasioned by this wicked system. Their talk is of blighted cotton crops—not of the blight on their children’s souls.

Yet few slaveholders seem to realize the widespread moral damage caused by this terrible system. They talk about ruined cotton crops—not about the harm to their children’s souls.

If you want to be fully convinced of the abominations of slavery, go on a southern plantation, and call yourself a negro trader. Then there will be no concealment; and you will see and hear things that will seem to you impossible among human beings with immortal souls.

If you really want to understand the horrors of slavery, visit a southern plantation and introduce yourself as a black trader. Then, there will be no hiding, and you will witness and hear things that will seem unimaginable among people with immortal souls.










X. A Perilous Passage In The Slave Girl’s Life.

After my lover went away, Dr. Flint contrived a new plan. He seemed to have an idea that my fear of my mistress was his greatest obstacle. In the blandest tones, he told me that he was going to build a small house for me, in a secluded place, four miles away from the town. I shuddered; but I was constrained to listen, while he talked of his intention to give me a home of my own, and to make a lady of me. Hitherto, I had escaped my dreaded fate, by being in the midst of people. My grandmother had already had high words with my master about me. She had told him pretty plainly what she thought of his character, and there was considerable gossip in the neighborhood about our affairs, to which the open-mouthed jealousy of Mrs. Flint contributed not a little. When my master said he was going to build a house for me, and that he could do it with little trouble and expense, I was in hopes something would happen to frustrate his scheme; but I soon heard that the house was actually begun. I vowed before my Maker that I would never enter it. I had rather toil on the plantation from dawn till dark; I had rather live and die in jail, than drag on, from day to day, through such a living death. I was determined that the master, whom I so hated and loathed, who had blighted the prospects of my youth, and made my life a desert, should not, after my long struggle with him, succeed at last in trampling his victim under his feet. I would do any thing, every thing, for the sake of defeating him. What could I do? I thought and thought, till I became desperate, and made a plunge into the abyss.

After my lover left, Dr. Flint came up with a new plan. He seemed to think that my fear of my mistress was his biggest hurdle. In the sweetest tone, he told me he was going to build a small house for me, in a secluded area, four miles away from town. I shuddered but felt forced to listen as he talked about his desire to give me a home of my own and to elevate my status. Until now, I had avoided my dreaded fate by being around other people. My grandmother had already had a serious confrontation with my master about me. She had made her feelings about his character quite clear, and there was a lot of gossip in the neighborhood about our situation, fueled by Mrs. Flint’s open jealousy. When my master said he was going to build a house for me, and that it would be easy and cheap, I hoped something would come up to stop his plans; but soon enough, I heard that the house was actually being built. I vowed before my Creator that I would never step inside it. I would rather work on the plantation from dawn till dusk; I would rather live and die in jail than endure such a living death day after day. I was determined that my master, whom I so hated and despised, who had ruined my youth and turned my life into a wasteland, would not succeed in trampling me underfoot after my long struggle. I would do anything, everything, to defeat him. What could I do? I thought and thought until I was desperate, and then I took a leap into the unknown.

And now, reader, I come to a period in my unhappy life, which I would gladly forget if I could. The remembrance fills me with sorrow and shame. It pains me to tell you of it; but I have promised to tell you the truth, and I will do it honestly, let it cost me what it may. I will not try to screen myself behind the plea of compulsion from a master; for it was not so. Neither can I plead ignorance or thoughtlessness. For years, my master had done his utmost to pollute my mind with foul images, and to destroy the pure principles inculcated by my grandmother, and the good mistress of my childhood. The influences of slavery had had the same effect on me that they had on other young girls; they had made me prematurely knowing, concerning the evil ways of the world. I knew what I did, and I did it with deliberate calculation.

And now, reader, I’m at a point in my unhappy life that I would happily forget if I could. The memory fills me with sorrow and shame. It hurts me to share it with you, but I’ve promised to tell you the truth, and I’ll do it honestly, no matter the cost. I won’t try to hide behind the excuse of being forced by a master; that wasn’t the case. I can’t claim ignorance or carelessness either. For years, my master did everything he could to taint my mind with disgusting images and to undermine the pure values instilled in me by my grandmother and my kind mistress from my childhood. The influences of slavery had the same effect on me as they did on other young girls; they made me aware of the dark sides of the world too soon. I knew what I was doing, and I did it with clear intention.

But, O, ye happy women, whose purity has been sheltered from childhood, who have been free to choose the objects of your affection, whose homes are protected by law, do not judge the poor desolate slave girl too severely! If slavery had been abolished, I, also, could have married the man of my choice; I could have had a home shielded by the laws; and I should have been spared the painful task of confessing what I am now about to relate; but all my prospects had been blighted by slavery. I wanted to keep myself pure; and, under the most adverse circumstances, I tried hard to preserve my self-respect; but I was struggling alone in the powerful grasp of the demon Slavery; and the monster proved too strong for me. I felt as if I was forsaken by God and man; as if all my efforts must be frustrated; and I became reckless in my despair.

But, oh, you happy women, whose purity has been protected since childhood, who have been free to choose those you love, and whose homes are safeguarded by law, please don't judge the poor, desolate slave girl too harshly! If slavery had been ended, I also could have married the man I chose; I could have had a home protected by the laws; and I would have been spared the painful task of sharing what I'm about to say; but all my hopes were crushed by slavery. I wanted to stay pure; and, despite the toughest circumstances, I worked hard to maintain my self-respect; but I was struggling alone against the strong grip of the demon of Slavery; and the monster was too powerful for me. I felt abandoned by both God and man; as if all my efforts were doomed to fail; and I grew reckless in my despair.

I have told you that Dr. Flint’s persecutions and his wife’s jealousy had given rise to some gossip in the neighborhood. Among others, it chanced that a white unmarried gentleman had obtained some knowledge of the circumstances in which I was placed. He knew my grandmother, and often spoke to me in the street. He became interested for me, and asked questions about my master, which I answered in part. He expressed a great deal of sympathy, and a wish to aid me. He constantly sought opportunities to see me, and wrote to me frequently. I was a poor slave girl, only fifteen years old.

I’ve mentioned that Dr. Flint’s harassment and his wife’s jealousy led to some rumors in the neighborhood. Among others, a single white guy happened to learn about my situation. He knew my grandmother and often chatted with me on the street. He became interested in my well-being and asked me questions about my master, which I answered partially. He showed a lot of sympathy and wanted to help me. He constantly looked for chances to see me and wrote to me often. I was just a poor slave girl, only fifteen years old.

So much attention from a superior person was, of course, flattering; for human nature is the same in all. I also felt grateful for his sympathy, and encouraged by his kind words. It seemed to me a great thing to have such a friend. By degrees, a more tender feeling crept into my heart. He was an educated and eloquent gentleman; too eloquent, alas, for the poor slave girl who trusted in him. Of course I saw whither all this was tending. I knew the impassable gulf between us; but to be an object of interest to a man who is not married, and who is not her master, is agreeable to the pride and feelings of a slave, if her miserable situation has left her any pride or sentiment. It seems less degrading to give one’s self, than to submit to compulsion. There is something akin to freedom in having a lover who has no control over you, except that which he gains by kindness and attachment. A master may treat you as rudely as he pleases, and you dare not speak; moreover, the wrong does not seem so great with an unmarried man, as with one who has a wife to be made unhappy. There may be sophistry in all this; but the condition of a slave confuses all principles of morality, and, in fact, renders the practice of them impossible.

Receiving so much attention from someone higher up was definitely flattering because human nature is universal. I felt thankful for his understanding and uplifted by his kind words. It felt wonderful to have such a friend. Gradually, a deeper affection grew in my heart. He was an educated and articulate gentleman; too articulate, unfortunately, for the poor enslaved girl who relied on him. I could see where this was heading. I knew the vast divide between us; but being an object of interest to an unmarried man who isn’t my master is a boost to the pride and feelings of a slave, if she still has any pride or emotions left. It feels less degrading to choose to give oneself than to be forced. There’s a sense of freedom in having a lover who has no power over you except what he wins through kindness and affection. A master can treat you however he wants, and you can’t say a word; on top of that, what happens with an unmarried man doesn’t feel as wrong as it does with someone who has a wife to hurt. There might be some twisted logic in all this, but the state of being enslaved messes with all moral principles and makes it, honestly, impossible to practice them.

When I found that my master had actually begun to build the lonely cottage, other feelings mixed with those I have described. Revenge, and calculations of interest, were added to flattered vanity and sincere gratitude for kindness. I knew nothing would enrage Dr. Flint so much as to know that I favored another; and it was something to triumph over my tyrant even in that small way. I thought he would revenge himself by selling me, and I was sure my friend, Mr. Sands, would buy me. He was a man of more generosity and feeling than my master, and I thought my freedom could be easily obtained from him. The crisis of my fate now came so near that I was desperate. I shuddered to think of being the mother of children that should be owned by my old tyrant. I knew that as soon as a new fancy took him, his victims were sold far off to get rid of them; especially if they had children. I had seen several women sold, with his babies at the breast. He never allowed his offspring by slaves to remain long in sight of himself and his wife. Of a man who was not my master I could ask to have my children well supported; and in this case, I felt confident I should obtain the boon. I also felt quite sure that they would be made free. With all these thoughts revolving in my mind, and seeing no other way of escaping the doom I so much dreaded, I made a headlong plunge. Pity me, and pardon me, O virtuous reader! You never knew what it is to be a slave; to be entirely unprotected by law or custom; to have the laws reduce you to the condition of a chattel, entirely subject to the will of another. You never exhausted your ingenuity in avoiding the snares, and eluding the power of a hated tyrant; you never shuddered at the sound of his footsteps, and trembled within hearing of his voice. I know I did wrong. No one can feel it more sensibly than I do. The painful and humiliating memory will haunt me to my dying day. Still, in looking back, calmly, on the events of my life, I feel that the slave woman ought not to be judged by the same standard as others.

When I discovered that my master had actually started to build the lonely cottage, I felt a mix of emotions beyond just those I’ve described. Revenge and self-interest joined my feelings of flattered vanity and genuine gratitude for his kindness. I knew nothing would infuriate Dr. Flint more than the thought that I favored someone else; it felt like a small victory over my oppressor. I worried he might take revenge by selling me, but I was confident my friend, Mr. Sands, would buy me. He was more generous and empathetic than my master, and I believed my freedom would be easy to secure from him. The moment that would determine my future was approaching rapidly, and I felt desperate. The thought of being the mother of children owned by my old oppressor made me shudder. I knew that as soon as Dr. Flint found a new interest, he would sell his victims far away to dispose of them, especially if they had kids. I had seen several women sold, their babies still nursing. He never allowed his slave children to stay in sight of himself or his wife for long. I could ask a man who wasn’t my master to ensure my children were well cared for, and I felt hopeful that I could achieve this. I also believed they would be set free. With all these thoughts racing through my mind, and seeing no other way to escape the fate I dreaded, I made a reckless decision. Pity me, and forgive me, O virtuous reader! You’ve never faced the reality of being a slave—completely unprotected by laws or customs; reduced to a mere property, entirely at someone else’s will. You’ve never had to use all your cleverness to avoid traps and escape the grip of a loathed tyrant; you’ve never flinched at the sound of his footsteps or felt anxiety at hearing his voice. I know I was wrong. No one feels that more deeply than I do. The painful and humiliating memories will haunt me for the rest of my life. Nevertheless, when I look back calmly on the events of my life, I believe that the slave woman shouldn’t be judged by the same standards as others.

The months passed on. I had many unhappy hours. I secretly mourned over the sorrow I was bringing on my grandmother, who had so tried to shield me from harm. I knew that I was the greatest comfort of her old age, and that it was a source of pride to her that I had not degraded myself, like most of the slaves. I wanted to confess to her that I was no longer worthy of her love; but I could not utter the dreaded words.

The months went by. I had many unhappy moments. I quietly grieved over the pain I was causing my grandmother, who had tried so hard to protect me. I knew I was the greatest comfort in her old age, and it filled her with pride that I hadn’t brought shame on myself like most of the slaves. I wanted to tell her that I no longer deserved her love; but I couldn’t bring myself to say those feared words.

As for Dr. Flint, I had a feeling of satisfaction and triumph in the thought of telling him. From time to time he told me of his intended arrangements, and I was silent. At last, he came and told me the cottage was completed, and ordered me to go to it. I told him I would never enter it. He said, “I have heard enough of such talk as that. You shall go, if you are carried by force; and you shall remain there.”

As for Dr. Flint, I felt a sense of satisfaction and victory at the idea of telling him. He sometimes shared his plans with me, and I remained quiet. Finally, he came to inform me that the cottage was finished and ordered me to go there. I told him I would never step foot in it. He replied, “I’ve heard enough of this kind of talk. You’ll go, even if you have to be taken by force, and you will stay there.”

I replied, “I will never go there. In a few months I shall be a mother.”

I responded, “I’m never going there. In a few months, I’ll be a mom.”

He stood and looked at me in dumb amazement, and left the house without a word. I thought I should be happy in my triumph over him. But now that the truth was out, and my relatives would hear of it, I felt wretched. Humble as were their circumstances, they had pride in my good character. Now, how could I look them in the face? My self-respect was gone! I had resolved that I would be virtuous, though I was a slave. I had said, “Let the storm beat! I will brave it till I die.” And now, how humiliated I felt!

He stood there, staring at me in shock, and left the house without saying a word. I thought I would feel happy about winning against him. But now that the truth was out, and my family would find out, I felt miserable. Even though they had humble lives, they took pride in my good character. Now, how could I look them in the eye? I had lost my self-respect! I had promised myself that I would be virtuous, even as a slave. I had said, “Let the storm come! I’ll face it until I die.” And now, I felt so humiliated!

I went to my grandmother. My lips moved to make confession, but the words stuck in my throat. I sat down in the shade of a tree at her door and began to sew. I think she saw something unusual was the matter with me. The mother of slaves is very watchful. She knows there is no security for her children. After they have entered their teens she lives in daily expectation of trouble. This leads to many questions. If the girl is of a sensitive nature, timidity keeps her from answering truthfully, and this well-meant course has a tendency to drive her from maternal counsels. Presently, in came my mistress, like a mad woman, and accused me concerning her husband. My grandmother, whose suspicions had been previously awakened, believed what she said. She exclaimed, “O Linda! has it come to this? I had rather see you dead than to see you as you now are. You are a disgrace to your dead mother.” She tore from my fingers my mother’s wedding ring and her silver thimble. “Go away!” she exclaimed, “and never come to my house, again.” Her reproaches fell so hot and heavy, that they left me no chance to answer. Bitter tears, such as the eyes never shed but once, were my only answer. I rose from my seat, but fell back again, sobbing. She did not speak to me; but the tears were running down her furrowed cheeks, and they scorched me like fire. She had always been so kind to me! So kind! How I longed to throw myself at her feet, and tell her all the truth! But she had ordered me to go, and never to come there again. After a few minutes, I mustered strength, and started to obey her. With what feelings did I now close that little gate, which I used to open with such an eager hand in my childhood! It closed upon me with a sound I never heard before.

I went to my grandmother's house. My lips moved to confess, but the words got stuck in my throat. I sat down in the shade of a tree by her door and started to sew. I think she noticed something was off with me. A mother instinctively watches over her children, especially when there's no real safety for them. Once they hit their teenage years, she lives in constant fear of trouble. This leads to a lot of questions. If a girl is sensitive, her shyness prevents her from answering honestly, and well-meaning inquiries can push her away from her mother's guidance. Soon, my mistress barged in like a crazy person and accused me of something involving her husband. My grandmother, who had already been suspicious, believed her. She said, “Oh, Linda! Is it really this bad? I’d rather see you dead than to see you like this. You’re a disgrace to your late mother.” She stripped my mother’s wedding ring and silver thimble from my fingers. “Leave!” she shouted, “and don’t come back here again.” Her harsh words hit me so hard that I couldn't respond. The only answer I could give was bitter tears, the kind you only cry once in a lifetime. I stood up, but collapsed back down, sobbing. She didn’t say a word to me, but her tears, running down her lined face, burned me like fire. She had always been so kind to me! So kind! I wished I could throw myself at her feet and tell her everything! But she had told me to leave and never return. After a few minutes, I gathered my strength and started to obey. With what feelings did I now close that little gate, which I once opened eagerly in my childhood! The sound it made as it closed was unlike anything I had ever heard before.

Where could I go? I was afraid to return to my master’s. I walked on recklessly, not caring where I went, or what would become of me. When I had gone four or five miles, fatigue compelled me to stop. I sat down on the stump of an old tree. The stars were shining through the boughs above me. How they mocked me, with their bright, calm light! The hours passed by, and as I sat there alone a chilliness and deadly sickness came over me. I sank on the ground. My mind was full of horrid thoughts. I prayed to die; but the prayer was not answered. At last, with great effort I roused myself, and walked some distance further, to the house of a woman who had been a friend of my mother. When I told her why I was there, she spoke soothingly to me; but I could not be comforted. I thought I could bear my shame if I could only be reconciled to my grandmother. I longed to open my heart to her. I thought if she could know the real state of the case, and all I had been bearing for years, she would perhaps judge me less harshly. My friend advised me to send for her. I did so; but days of agonizing suspense passed before she came. Had she utterly forsaken me? No. She came at last. I knelt before her, and told her the things that had poisoned my life; how long I had been persecuted; that I saw no way of escape; and in an hour of extremity I had become desperate. She listened in silence. I told her I would bear any thing and do any thing, if in time I had hopes of obtaining her forgiveness. I begged of her to pity me, for my dead mother’s sake. And she did pity me. She did not say, “I forgive you;” but she looked at me lovingly, with her eyes full of tears. She laid her old hand gently on my head, and murmured, “Poor child! Poor child!”

Where could I go? I was scared to go back to my master’s. I walked aimlessly, not caring where I ended up or what would happen to me. After four or five miles, exhaustion forced me to take a break. I sat down on the stump of an old tree. The stars were shining through the branches above me. They seemed to mock me with their bright, calm light! Hours went by, and as I sat there alone, I felt a chill and a wave of sickness wash over me. I sank to the ground. My mind was filled with horrible thoughts. I prayed to die, but my prayer went unanswered. Finally, with great effort, I pulled myself up and walked a bit further to the house of a woman who had been a friend of my mother. When I explained why I was there, she spoke to me in a calming way, but I couldn’t find comfort. I thought I could handle my shame if I could just reconcile with my grandmother. I longed to open my heart to her. I figured if she could understand the truth of my situation and everything I had endured for years, she might judge me less harshly. My friend suggested that I call for her. I did, but days of agonizing suspense passed before she finally arrived. Had she completely abandoned me? No. She finally came. I knelt before her and told her about all the things that had poisoned my life; how long I had been tormented; that I saw no way out; and in a moment of desperation, I had become hopeless. She listened in silence. I told her I would endure anything and do anything if there was a chance I could earn her forgiveness. I begged her to have compassion for me, for my deceased mother’s sake. And she did feel for me. She didn’t say, “I forgive you,” but she looked at me with love, her eyes filled with tears. She gently placed her old hand on my head and murmured, “Poor child! Poor child!”










XI. The New Tie To Life.

I returned to my good grandmother’s house. She had an interview with Mr. Sands. When she asked him why he could not have left her one ewe lamb,—whether there were not plenty of slaves who did not care about character,—he made no answer; but he spoke kind and encouraging words. He promised to care for my child, and to buy me, be the conditions what they might.

I went back to my wonderful grandmother’s house. She had a meeting with Mr. Sands. When she asked him why he couldn’t have left her just one ewe lamb—whether there weren’t plenty of slaves who didn’t care about their reputation—he didn’t respond; instead, he said kind and uplifting things. He promised to look after my child and to buy me, no matter what the circumstances were.

I had not seen Dr. Flint for five days. I had never seen him since I made the avowal to him. He talked of the disgrace I had brought on myself; how I had sinned against my master, and mortified my old grandmother. He intimated that if I had accepted his proposals, he, as a physician, could have saved me from exposure. He even condescended to pity me. Could he have offered wormwood more bitter? He, whose persecutions had been the cause of my sin!

I hadn't seen Dr. Flint for five days. I hadn’t seen him at all since I confessed to him. He talked about the shame I had brought upon myself, how I had sinned against my master, and embarrassed my grandmother. He hinted that if I had accepted his advances, he, as a doctor, could have protected me from shame. He even pretended to feel sorry for me. Could he have offered up anything more bitter than this? He, whose harassment was the reason for my wrongdoing!

“Linda,” said he, “though you have been criminal towards me, I feel for you, and I can pardon you if you obey my wishes. Tell me whether the fellow you wanted to marry is the father of your child. If you deceive me, you shall feel the fires of hell.”

“Linda,” he said, “even though you’ve wronged me, I still care about you, and I can forgive you if you do what I ask. Just tell me if the guy you wanted to marry is the father of your child. If you lie to me, you’ll face serious consequences.”

I did not feel as proud as I had done. My strongest weapon with him was gone. I was lowered in my own estimation, and had resolved to bear his abuse in silence. But when he spoke contemptuously of the lover who had always treated me honorably; when I remembered that but for him I might have been a virtuous, free, and happy wife, I lost my patience. “I have sinned against God and myself,” I replied; “but not against you.”

I didn't feel as proud as I used to. My greatest strength against him was gone. I felt diminished, and I decided to endure his mistreatment quietly. But when he spoke disrespectfully about the man who had always treated me with respect; when I remembered that if it weren't for him I could have been a virtuous, free, and happy wife, I snapped. “I have sinned against God and myself,” I said; “but not against you.”

He clinched his teeth, and muttered, “Curse you!” He came towards me, with ill-suppressed rage, and exclaimed, “You obstinate girl! I could grind your bones to powder! You have thrown yourself away on some worthless rascal. You are weak-minded, and have been easily persuaded by those who don’t care a straw for you. The future will settle accounts between us. You are blinded now; but hereafter you will be convinced that your master was your best friend. My lenity towards you is a proof of it. I might have punished you in many ways. I might have had you whipped till you fell dead under the lash. But I wanted you to live; I would have bettered your condition. Others cannot do it. You are my slave. Your mistress, disgusted by your conduct, forbids you to return to the house; therefore I leave you here for the present; but I shall see you often. I will call to-morrow.”

He clenched his teeth and muttered, “Damn you!” He approached me, barely holding back his anger, and shouted, “You stubborn girl! I could crush you! You’ve wasted yourself on some worthless jerk. You’re weak-minded and have been easily swayed by people who don’t care about you at all. The future will settle things between us. You’re blinded right now, but later you’ll realize that your master was your best friend. My leniency towards you proves it. I could have punished you in many ways. I could have had you whipped until you collapsed. But I wanted you to live; I would have improved your situation. Others can’t do that. You are my slave. Your mistress, disgusted by your behavior, has forbidden you from returning to the house, so I’m leaving you here for now; but I’ll see you often. I’ll be back tomorrow.”

He came with frowning brows, that showed a dissatisfied state of mind. After asking about my health, he inquired whether my board was paid, and who visited me. He then went on to say that he had neglected his duty; that as a physician there were certain things that he ought to have explained to me. Then followed talk such as would have made the most shameless blush. He ordered me to stand up before him. I obeyed. “I command you,” said he, “to tell me whether the father of your child is white or black.” I hesitated. “Answer me this instant!” he exclaimed. I did answer. He sprang upon me like a wolf, and grabbed my arm as if he would have broken it. “Do you love him?” said he, in a hissing tone.

He came in with a frown that showed he was unhappy. After asking how I was doing, he wanted to know if my rent was paid and who had been visiting me. Then he admitted he hadn’t done his job well; as a doctor, there were things he should have explained to me. The conversation took a turn that would have embarrassed even the most shameless person. He ordered me to stand up. I complied. “I command you,” he said, “to tell me if the father of your child is white or black.” I hesitated. “Answer me right now!” he shouted. I did respond. He lunged at me like a wolf, grabbing my arm as if he intended to break it. “Do you love him?” he asked, his voice hissing.

“I am thankful that I do not despise him,” I replied.

"I’m glad that I don’t hate him," I replied.

He raised his hand to strike me; but it fell again. I don’t know what arrested the blow. He sat down, with lips tightly compressed. At last he spoke. “I came here,” said he, “to make you a friendly proposition; but your ingratitude chafes me beyond endurance. You turn aside all my good intentions towards you. I don’t know what it is that keeps me from killing you.” Again he rose, as if he had a mind to strike me.

He lifted his hand to hit me, but then it dropped again. I don't know what stopped him. He sat down, his lips pressed together tightly. Finally, he spoke. “I came here,” he said, “to make you a friendly offer, but your ingratitude annoys me beyond what I can take. You reject all my good intentions towards you. I don’t know what stops me from killing you.” Once more, he stood up, as if he was about to hit me.

But he resumed. “On one condition I will forgive your insolence and crime. You must henceforth have no communication of any kind with the father of your child. You must not ask any thing from him, or receive any thing from him. I will take care of you and your child. You had better promise this at once, and not wait till you are deserted by him. This is the last act of mercy I shall show towards you.”

But he continued. “I’ll forgive your disrespect and wrongdoing on one condition. You must no longer have any contact with the father of your child. You can't ask him for anything, or accept anything from him. I will take care of you and your child. You should agree to this right now, and not wait until he abandons you. This is the last act of kindness I will show you.”

I said something about being unwilling to have my child supported by a man who had cursed it and me also. He rejoined, that a woman who had sunk to my level had no right to expect any thing else. He asked, for the last time, would I accept his kindness? I answered that I would not.

I mentioned that I didn’t want my child to be supported by a man who had cursed both it and me. He replied that a woman who had fallen to my level shouldn’t expect anything different. He asked, for the last time, if I would accept his kindness. I said that I would not.

“Very well,” said he; “then take the consequences of your wayward course. Never look to me for help. You are my slave, and shall always be my slave. I will never sell you, that you may depend upon.”

“Alright,” he said; “then face the consequences of your stubborn choices. Don’t expect any help from me. You are my slave, and you will always be my slave. I will never sell you, you can count on that.”

Hope died away in my heart as he closed the door after him. I had calculated that in his rage he would sell me to a slave-trader; and I knew the father of my child was on the watch to buy me.

Hope faded in my heart as he shut the door behind him. I had figured that in his anger, he would sell me to a slave trader; and I knew the father of my child was waiting to buy me.

About this time my uncle Phillip was expected to return from a voyage. The day before his departure I had officiated as bridesmaid to a young friend. My heart was then ill at ease, but my smiling countenance did not betray it. Only a year had passed; but what fearful changes it had wrought! My heart had grown gray in misery. Lives that flash in sunshine, and lives that are born in tears, receive their hue from circumstances. None of us know what a year may bring forth.

About this time, my uncle Phillip was supposed to come back from a trip. The day before he left, I was a bridesmaid for a young friend. My heart was heavy, but my smiling face didn’t show it. Just a year had gone by, but what terrible changes it had brought! My heart had turned gray from sadness. Lives that sparkle with joy and lives that start in sorrow get their color from what happens around them. None of us knows what a year can bring.

I felt no joy when they told me my uncle had come. He wanted to see me, though he knew what had happened. I shrank from him at first; but at last consented that he should come to my room. He received me as he always had done. O, how my heart smote me when I felt his tears on my burning cheeks! The words of my grandmother came to my mind,—“Perhaps your mother and father are taken from the evil days to come.” My disappointed heart could now praise God that it was so. But why, thought I, did my relatives ever cherish hopes for me? What was there to save me from the usual fate of slave girls? Many more beautiful and more intelligent than I had experienced a similar fate, or a far worse one. How could they hope that I should escape?

I felt no happiness when they told me my uncle had arrived. He wanted to see me, even though he knew what had happened. I hesitated at first, but eventually agreed to let him come into my room. He greeted me just as he always had. Oh, how my heart ached when I felt his tears on my burning cheeks! My grandmother's words came to mind—“Maybe your mother and father were taken from the evil days to come.” My disappointed heart could now thank God that it was so. But why, I wondered, did my relatives ever hold out hopes for me? What was there to protect me from the usual fate of slave girls? Many who were more beautiful and smarter than I had faced a similar fate, or something even worse. How could they believe I would be different?

My uncle’s stay was short, and I was not sorry for it. I was too ill in mind and body to enjoy my friends as I had done. For some weeks I was unable to leave my bed. I could not have any doctor but my master, and I would not have him sent for. At last, alarmed by my increasing illness, they sent for him. I was very weak and nervous; and as soon as he entered the room, I began to scream. They told him my state was very critical. He had no wish to hasten me out of the world, and he withdrew.

My uncle's visit was brief, and I wasn't sad about it. I was too unwell both mentally and physically to enjoy my friends like I used to. For several weeks, I couldn't get out of bed. The only doctor I would accept was my master, and I refused to have him called. Eventually, worried about my worsening condition, they called for him. I was very weak and anxious; as soon as he walked into the room, I started screaming. They informed him that my condition was very serious. He didn't want to rush me out of this world, so he left.

When my babe was born, they said it was premature. It weighed only four pounds; but God let it live. I heard the doctor say I could not survive till morning. I had often prayed for death; but now I did not want to die, unless my child could die too. Many weeks passed before I was able to leave my bed. I was a mere wreck of my former self. For a year there was scarcely a day when I was free from chills and fever. My babe also was sickly. His little limbs were often racked with pain. Dr. Flint continued his visits, to look after my health; and he did not fail to remind me that my child was an addition to his stock of slaves.

When my baby was born, they said it was premature. It weighed only four pounds, but God let it survive. I heard the doctor say I wouldn't make it till morning. I had often prayed for death, but now I didn’t want to die unless my child could die too. Many weeks went by before I could get out of bed. I was just a shadow of my former self. For a year, there was hardly a day I was free from chills and fever. My baby was sickly too, often in pain. Dr. Flint kept coming by to check on my health, and he didn’t hesitate to remind me that my child was just an addition to his stock of slaves.

I felt too feeble to dispute with him, and listened to his remarks in silence. His visits were less frequent; but his busy spirit could not remain quiet. He employed my brother in his office, and he was made the medium of frequent notes and messages to me. William was a bright lad, and of much use to the doctor. He had learned to put up medicines, to leech, cup, and bleed. He had taught himself to read and spell. I was proud of my brother; and the old doctor suspected as much. One day, when I had not seen him for several weeks, I heard his steps approaching the door. I dreaded the encounter, and hid myself. He inquired for me, of course; but I was nowhere to be found. He went to his office, and despatched William with a note. The color mounted to my brother’s face when he gave it to me; and he said, “Don’t you hate me, Linda, for bringing you these things?” I told him I could not blame him; he was a slave, and obliged to obey his master’s will. The note ordered me to come to his office. I went. He demanded to know where I was when he called. I told him I was at home. He flew into a passion, and said he knew better. Then he launched out upon his usual themes,—my crimes against him, and my ingratitude for his forbearance. The laws were laid down to me anew, and I was dismissed. I felt humiliated that my brother should stand by, and listen to such language as would be addressed only to a slave. Poor boy! He was powerless to defend me; but I saw the tears, which he vainly strove to keep back. This manifestation of feeling irritated the doctor. William could do nothing to please him. One morning he did not arrive at the office so early as usual; and that circumstance afforded his master an opportunity to vent his spleen. He was put in jail. The next day my brother sent a trader to the doctor, with a request to be sold. His master was greatly incensed at what he called his insolence. He said he had put him there to reflect upon his bad conduct, and he certainly was not giving any evidence of repentance. For two days he harassed himself to find somebody to do his office work; but every thing went wrong without William. He was released, and ordered to take his old stand, with many threats, if he was not careful about his future behavior.

I felt too weak to argue with him and listened to his comments in silence. His visits were less frequent, but his restless energy couldn’t stay still. He had my brother working in his office, and he became the go-between for frequent notes and messages to me. William was a bright kid and really helpful to the doctor. He learned how to prepare medicines, to leech, cup, and bleed. He taught himself to read and spell. I was proud of my brother, and the old doctor noticed it. One day, after not seeing him for weeks, I heard his footsteps approaching the door. I dreaded the meeting and hid. He asked for me, of course, but I was nowhere to be found. He went to his office and sent William with a note. My brother's face flushed when he handed it to me, and he said, “Don’t you hate me, Linda, for bringing you these things?” I told him I couldn’t blame him; he was a slave and had to follow his master’s orders. The note instructed me to come to his office. I went. He demanded to know where I was when he called. I told him I was at home. He lost his temper and insisted he knew better. Then he launched into his usual complaints—my wrongdoings against him and my ingratitude for his patience. The rules were laid down for me again, and I was dismissed. I felt embarrassed that my brother had to stand by and listen to language meant only for a slave. Poor boy! He couldn’t defend me, but I saw the tears he struggled to hold back. This display of emotion irritated the doctor. William couldn’t do anything to please him. One morning, he didn’t arrive at the office as early as usual, and that gave his master a chance to vent his anger. He was thrown in jail. The next day, my brother sent a trader to the doctor asking to be sold. His master was furious at what he called his insolence. He said he had put him there to think about his bad behavior and he surely wasn’t showing any signs of regret. For two days, the doctor stressed over finding someone else to do his office work, but everything went wrong without William. He was released and told to take his old position, with many threats if he didn’t improve his behavior.

As the months passed on, my boy improved in health. When he was a year old, they called him beautiful. The little vine was taking deep root in my existence, though its clinging fondness excited a mixture of love and pain. When I was most sorely oppressed I found a solace in his smiles. I loved to watch his infant slumbers; but always there was a dark cloud over my enjoyment. I could never forget that he was a slave. Sometimes I wished that he might die in infancy. God tried me. My darling became very ill. The bright eyes grew dull, and the little feet and hands were so icy cold that I thought death had already touched them. I had prayed for his death, but never so earnestly as I now prayed for his life; and my prayer was heard. Alas, what mockery it is for a slave mother to try to pray back her dying child to life! Death is better than slavery. It was a sad thought that I had no name to give my child. His father caressed him and treated him kindly, whenever he had a chance to see him. He was not unwilling that he should bear his name; but he had no legal claim to it; and if I had bestowed it upon him, my master would have regarded it as a new crime, a new piece of insolence, and would, perhaps, revenge it on the boy. O, the serpent of Slavery has many and poisonous fangs!

As the months went by, my boy got healthier. When he turned a year old, people said he was beautiful. That little vine was taking deep root in my life, though its clingy affection stirred up a mix of love and pain. During my toughest times, I found comfort in his smiles. I loved watching him sleep, but there was always a dark cloud hanging over my happiness. I could never forget that he was a slave. Sometimes I even hoped he would die in infancy. God tested me. My darling fell very ill. His bright eyes dimmed, and his little hands and feet were so cold that I thought death had already claimed him. I had prayed for his death, but never as desperately as I now prayed for his life; and my prayer was answered. Alas, how cruel it is for a slave mother to beg for her dying child to come back to life! Death is better than slavery. It was heartbreaking to know I had no name to give my child. His father loved him and treated him kindly whenever he had the chance. He wouldn’t mind if the boy took his name, but he had no legal right to it; and if I had given it to him, my master would have seen it as a new offense, a new act of defiance, and might have taken it out on the boy. Oh, the serpent of Slavery has many poisonous fangs!










XII. Fear Of Insurrection.

Not far from this time Nat Turner’s insurrection broke out; and the news threw our town into great commotion. Strange that they should be alarmed, when their slaves were so “contented and happy”! But so it was.

Not long after this, Nat Turner’s rebellion happened, and the news caused a huge stir in our town. It’s odd that they would be worried when their slaves were so “content and happy”! But that’s how it was.

It was always the custom to have a muster every year. On that occasion every white man shouldered his musket. The citizens and the so-called country gentlemen wore military uniforms. The poor whites took their places in the ranks in every-day dress, some without shoes, some without hats. This grand occasion had already passed; and when the slaves were told there was to be another muster, they were surprised and rejoiced. Poor creatures! They thought it was going to be a holiday. I was informed of the true state of affairs, and imparted it to the few I could trust. Most gladly would I have proclaimed it to every slave; but I dared not. All could not be relied on. Mighty is the power of the torturing lash.

It was always the tradition to have a muster every year. During that time, every white man carried his musket. The citizens and the so-called country gentlemen donned military uniforms. The poorer whites took their places in the ranks in everyday clothes, some without shoes and some without hats. This grand event had already taken place, and when the slaves were told there would be another muster, they were surprised and thrilled. Poor souls! They thought it would be a holiday. I learned the true situation and shared it with a few I could trust. I would have loved to inform every slave, but I didn’t dare. Not everyone could be trusted. The power of the torturing lash is immense.

By sunrise, people were pouring in from every quarter within twenty miles of the town. I knew the houses were to be searched; and I expected it would be done by country bullies and the poor whites. I knew nothing annoyed them so much as to see colored people living in comfort and respectability; so I made arrangements for them with especial care. I arranged every thing in my grandmother’s house as neatly as possible. I put white quilts on the beds, and decorated some of the rooms with flowers. When all was arranged, I sat down at the window to watch. Far as my eye could reach, it rested on a motley crowd of soldiers. Drums and fifes were discoursing martial music. The men were divided into companies of sixteen, each headed by a captain. Orders were given, and the wild scouts rushed in every direction, wherever a colored face was to be found.

By sunrise, people were arriving from every direction within twenty miles of the town. I knew the houses would be searched, and I expected it would be done by local bullies and poor white people. Nothing annoyed them more than seeing Black people living in comfort and respectability, so I made special arrangements for them. I set up everything in my grandmother’s house as neatly as possible. I put white quilts on the beds and decorated some of the rooms with flowers. Once everything was ready, I sat down by the window to watch. As far as I could see, there was a mixed crowd of soldiers. Drums and fifes were playing military music. The men were organized into groups of sixteen, each led by a captain. Commands were issued, and the wild scouts sprinted in every direction, searching for any Black face they could find.

It was a grand opportunity for the low whites, who had no negroes of their own to scourge. They exulted in such a chance to exercise a little brief authority, and show their subserviency to the slaveholders; not reflecting that the power which trampled on the colored people also kept themselves in poverty, ignorance, and moral degradation. Those who never witnessed such scenes can hardly believe what I know was inflicted at this time on innocent men, women, and children, against whom there was not the slightest ground for suspicion. Colored people and slaves who lived in remote parts of the town suffered in an especial manner. In some cases the searchers scattered powder and shot among their clothes, and then sent other parties to find them, and bring them forward as proof that they were plotting insurrection. Every where men, women, and children were whipped till the blood stood in puddles at their feet. Some received five hundred lashes; others were tied hands and feet, and tortured with a bucking paddle, which blisters the skin terribly. The dwellings of the colored people, unless they happened to be protected by some influential white person, who was nigh at hand, were robbed of clothing and every thing else the marauders thought worth carrying away. All day long these unfeeling wretches went round, like a troop of demons, terrifying and tormenting the helpless. At night, they formed themselves into patrol bands, and went wherever they chose among the colored people, acting out their brutal will. Many women hid themselves in woods and swamps, to keep out of their way. If any of the husbands or fathers told of these outrages, they were tied up to the public whipping post, and cruelly scourged for telling lies about white men. The consternation was universal. No two people that had the slightest tinge of color in their faces dared to be seen talking together.

It was a big opportunity for the poor white people, who didn’t have any black individuals of their own to abuse. They reveled in the chance to exert a little control and show their loyalty to the slaveholders, not realizing that the power that oppressed people of color also kept them in poverty, ignorance, and moral decay. Those who had never witnessed such events can hardly believe the atrocities I know were inflicted on innocent men, women, and children, against whom there was no reason for suspicion at all. People of color and enslaved individuals living in remote areas of town suffered particularly. In some cases, the searchers scattered gunpowder and shot among their clothes, then sent other teams to find them, claiming as proof that they were conspiring to revolt. Everywhere, men, women, and children were whipped until blood pooled at their feet. Some received five hundred lashes; others were bound hand and foot and tortured with a bucking paddle, which severely blistered their skin. The homes of people of color, unless protected by some influential white person nearby, were looted of clothing and anything else the attackers found valuable. All day long, these heartless individuals roamed around like a horde of demons, terrorizing and tormenting the helpless. At night, they formed patrols and moved freely among the people of color, exercising their brutal will. Many women hid in woods and swamps to stay out of sight. If any husbands or fathers spoke out against these horrors, they were tied to the public whipping post and brutally punished for "lying" about white men. The panic was widespread. No two individuals with even the slightest hint of color in their faces dared to be seen talking to each other.

I entertained no positive fears about our household, because we were in the midst of white families who would protect us. We were ready to receive the soldiers whenever they came. It was not long before we heard the tramp of feet and the sound of voices. The door was rudely pushed open; and in they tumbled, like a pack of hungry wolves. They snatched at every thing within their reach. Every box, trunk, closet, and corner underwent a thorough examination. A box in one of the drawers containing some silver change was eagerly pounced upon. When I stepped forward to take it from them, one of the soldiers turned and said angrily, “What d’ye foller us fur? D’ye s’pose white folks is come to steal?”

I had no real fears about our home because we were surrounded by white families who would protect us. We were prepared to welcome the soldiers whenever they arrived. It wasn't long before we heard the sound of marching feet and voices. The door was roughly pushed open, and they rushed in like a pack of starving wolves. They grabbed anything within reach. Every box, trunk, closet, and corner was thoroughly searched. A box in one of the drawers containing some silver coins was quickly taken. When I stepped forward to take it back from them, one of the soldiers turned and angrily said, “What are you following us for? Do you think white folks are here to steal?”

I replied, “You have come to search; but you have searched that box, and I will take it, if you please.”

I replied, “You came to look for something; but you already checked that box, and I’ll take it, if that’s okay with you.”

At that moment I saw a white gentleman who was friendly to us; and I called to him, and asked him to have the goodness to come in and stay till the search was over. He readily complied. His entrance into the house brought in the captain of the company, whose business it was to guard the outside of the house, and see that none of the inmates left it. This officer was Mr. Litch, the wealthy slaveholder whom I mentioned, in the account of neighboring planters, as being notorious for his cruelty. He felt above soiling his hands with the search. He merely gave orders; and, if a bit of writing was discovered, it was carried to him by his ignorant followers, who were unable to read.

At that moment, I saw a friendly white man and called him over, asking if he could come in and stay until the search was finished. He agreed right away. His arrival brought in the captain of the company, whose job was to guard the outside of the house and make sure none of the people inside left. This officer was Mr. Litch, the wealthy slave owner I mentioned before, known for his cruelty. He felt too important to get involved in the search himself. Instead, he just gave orders, and if any writing was found, it was brought to him by his clueless followers, who couldn’t read.

My grandmother had a large trunk of bedding and table cloths. When that was opened, there was a great shout of surprise; and one exclaimed, “Where’d the damned niggers git all dis sheet an’ table clarf?”

My grandmother had a big trunk filled with bedding and tablecloths. When it was opened, there was a loud shout of surprise, and someone exclaimed, “Where did the hell the damn blacks get all this sheet and tablecloth?”

My grandmother, emboldened by the presence of our white protector, said, “You may be sure we didn’t pilfer ’em from your houses.”

My grandmother, feeling brave because of our white protector's presence, said, “You can be sure we didn't steal them from your houses.”

“Look here, mammy,” said a grim-looking fellow without any coat, “you seem to feel mighty gran’ ’cause you got all them ’ere fixens. White folks oughter have ’em all.”

“Hey there, ma’am,” said a serious-looking guy without a coat, “you seem to feel pretty great because you have all those things. White people should have them all.”

His remarks were interrupted by a chorus of voices shouting, “We’s got ’em! We’s got ’em! Dis ’ere yaller gal’s got letters!”

His comments were cut off by a wave of voices shouting, “We got them! We got them! This yellow girl has letters!”

There was a general rush for the supposed letter, which, upon examination, proved to be some verses written to me by a friend. In packing away my things, I had overlooked them. When their captain informed them of their contents, they seemed much disappointed. He inquired of me who wrote them. I told him it was one of my friends. “Can you read them?” he asked. When I told him I could, he swore, and raved, and tore the paper into bits. “Bring me all your letters!” said he, in a commanding tone. I told him I had none. “Don’t be afraid,” he continued, in an insinuating way. “Bring them all to me. Nobody shall do you any harm.” Seeing I did not move to obey him, his pleasant tone changed to oaths and threats. “Who writes to you? half free niggers?” inquired he. I replied, “O, no; most of my letters are from white people. Some request me to burn them after they are read, and some I destroy without reading.”

There was a rush for the supposed letter, which, upon checking, turned out to be some poems written to me by a friend. While I was packing my things, I had missed them. When their captain told them what it was, they looked pretty let down. He asked me who wrote them. I said it was one of my friends. “Can you read them?” he asked. When I said I could, he swore, raged, and ripped the paper into shreds. “Bring me all your letters!” he ordered. I told him I didn’t have any. “Don’t be scared,” he said, trying to sound smooth. “Just bring them all to me. Nobody will hurt you.” When he saw I wasn’t moving to follow his orders, his friendly tone turned into curses and threats. “Who writes to you? Half free blacks?” he asked. I replied, “Oh no; most of my letters are from white people. Some ask me to burn them after I read them, and some I destroy without reading.”

An exclamation of surprise from some of the company put a stop to our conversation. Some silver spoons which ornamented an old-fashioned buffet had just been discovered. My grandmother was in the habit of preserving fruit for many ladies in the town, and of preparing suppers for parties; consequently she had many jars of preserves. The closet that contained these was next invaded, and the contents tasted. One of them, who was helping himself freely, tapped his neighbor on the shoulder, and said, “Wal done! Don’t wonder de niggers want to kill all de white folks, when dey live on ’sarves” [meaning preserves]. I stretched out my hand to take the jar, saying, “You were not sent here to search for sweetmeats.”

A shout of surprise from some of the group interrupted our conversation. A set of silver spoons that decorated an old-fashioned buffet had just been found. My grandmother used to make preserves for many ladies in town and prepare dinners for parties; as a result, she had lots of jars of preserves. The closet holding these was soon opened, and we started tasting the contents. One person, helping himself generously, tapped his neighbor on the shoulder and said, “Well done! No wonder the Black folks want to get rid of all the white people when they live on preserves.” I reached out to grab the jar, saying, “You weren’t sent here to look for sweets.”

“And what were we sent for?” said the captain, bristling up to me. I evaded the question.

“And what were we sent for?” the captain said, getting defensive with me. I dodged the question.

The search of the house was completed, and nothing found to condemn us. They next proceeded to the garden, and knocked about every bush and vine, with no better success. The captain called his men together, and, after a short consultation, the order to march was given. As they passed out of the gate, the captain turned back, and pronounced a malediction on the house. He said it ought to be burned to the ground, and each of its inmates receive thirty-nine lashes. We came out of this affair very fortunately; not losing any thing except some wearing apparel.

The search of the house was finished, and nothing was found to incriminate us. They then moved to the garden, rummaging through every bush and vine, without any better luck. The captain gathered his men together, and after a brief discussion, gave the order to march. As they left through the gate, the captain turned back and cursed the house. He said it should be burned to the ground, and each person inside should get thirty-nine lashes. We came out of this situation quite well, losing nothing except some clothing.

Towards evening the turbulence increased. The soldiers, stimulated by drink, committed still greater cruelties. Shrieks and shouts continually rent the air. Not daring to go to the door, I peeped under the window curtain. I saw a mob dragging along a number of colored people, each white man, with his musket upraised, threatening instant death if they did not stop their shrieks. Among the prisoners was a respectable old colored minister. They had found a few parcels of shot in his house, which his wife had for years used to balance her scales. For this they were going to shoot him on Court House Green. What a spectacle was that for a civilized country! A rabble, staggering under intoxication, assuming to be the administrators of justice!

Towards evening, the chaos intensified. The soldiers, fueled by alcohol, committed even more brutal acts. Cries and shouts filled the air continuously. Not daring to open the door, I peeked under the window curtain. I saw a mob dragging several Black individuals, each white man with his rifle raised, threatening immediate death if they didn’t stop their cries. Among the captives was a respected old Black minister. They had found a few bags of shot in his house, which his wife had used for years to weigh her goods. For this, they were going to execute him on Court House Green. What a sight that was for a civilized society! A crowd, stumbling from intoxication, pretending to be the enforcers of justice!

The better class of the community exerted their influence to save the innocent, persecuted people; and in several instances they succeeded, by keeping them shut up in jail till the excitement abated. At last the white citizens found that their own property was not safe from the lawless rabble they had summoned to protect them. They rallied the drunken swarm, drove them back into the country, and set a guard over the town.

The more affluent members of the community used their influence to protect the innocent and persecuted individuals; in several cases, they succeeded by keeping them locked up in jail until the fury died down. Eventually, the white citizens realized that their own property wasn't safe from the unruly mob they had called in for protection. They gathered the intoxicated crowd, pushed them back into the countryside, and established a guard over the town.

The next day, the town patrols were commissioned to search colored people that lived out of the city; and the most shocking outrages were committed with perfect impunity. Every day for a fortnight, if I looked out, I saw horsemen with some poor panting negro tied to their saddles, and compelled by the lash to keep up with their speed, till they arrived at the jail yard. Those who had been whipped too unmercifully to walk were washed with brine, tossed into a cart, and carried to jail. One black man, who had not fortitude to endure scourging, promised to give information about the conspiracy. But it turned out that he knew nothing at all. He had not even heard the name of Nat Turner. The poor fellow had, however, made up a story, which augmented his own sufferings and those of the colored people.

The next day, the town patrols were ordered to search for people of color living outside the city, and the most shocking abuses were carried out without any consequences. Every day for two weeks, when I looked outside, I saw horsemen with some poor, gasping black person tied to their saddles, forced by the whip to keep up with their speed until they reached the jail yard. Those who had been whipped so severely that they couldn't walk were washed with saltwater, tossed into a cart, and taken to jail. One black man, who couldn't bear the beating, promised to provide information about the conspiracy. But it turned out he knew nothing at all. He hadn’t even heard the name Nat Turner. The poor guy had, however, made up a story that only added to his own suffering and that of the other people of color.

The day patrol continued for some weeks, and at sundown a night guard was substituted. Nothing at all was proved against the colored people, bond or free. The wrath of the slaveholders was somewhat appeased by the capture of Nat Turner. The imprisoned were released. The slaves were sent to their masters, and the free were permitted to return to their ravaged homes. Visiting was strictly forbidden on the plantations. The slaves begged the privilege of again meeting at their little church in the woods, with their burying ground around it. It was built by the colored people, and they had no higher happiness than to meet there and sing hymns together, and pour out their hearts in spontaneous prayer. Their request was denied, and the church was demolished. They were permitted to attend the white churches, a certain portion of the galleries being appropriated to their use. There, when every body else had partaken of the communion, and the benediction had been pronounced, the minister said, “Come down, now, my colored friends.” They obeyed the summons, and partook of the bread and wine, in commemoration of the meek and lowly Jesus, who said, “God is your Father, and all ye are brethren.”

The day patrol went on for several weeks, and at sunset a night guard took over. Nothing was proven against the Black people, whether enslaved or free. The anger of the slaveholders was somewhat eased by the capture of Nat Turner. The imprisoned individuals were released. The enslaved were sent back to their owners, and the free were allowed to return to their damaged homes. Visiting was strictly prohibited on the plantations. The enslaved pleaded to meet again at their small church in the woods, which had their burial ground around it. It was built by the Black community, and they found their greatest joy in gathering there to sing hymns and pray together. Their request was denied, and the church was torn down. They were allowed to attend white churches, with a specific section of the galleries set aside for them. There, after everyone else had taken communion and the blessing had been given, the minister said, "Come down now, my Black friends." They followed the call and shared in the bread and wine, in memory of the humble Jesus, who said, "God is your Father, and all of you are brothers."










XIII. The Church And Slavery.

After the alarm caused by Nat Turner’s insurrection had subsided, the slaveholders came to the conclusion that it would be well to give the slaves enough of religious instruction to keep them from murdering their masters. The Episcopal clergyman offered to hold a separate service on Sundays for their benefit. His colored members were very few, and also very respectable—a fact which I presume had some weight with him. The difficulty was to decide on a suitable place for them to worship. The Methodist and Baptist churches admitted them in the afternoon; but their carpets and cushions were not so costly as those at the Episcopal church. It was at last decided that they should meet at the house of a free colored man, who was a member.

After the panic from Nat Turner’s rebellion had calmed down, the slave owners realized it would be wise to provide the slaves with enough religious education to prevent them from killing their masters. The Episcopal minister offered to hold a separate service on Sundays for their benefit. His few colored members were also very respectable—a fact that I assume influenced his decision. The challenge was to find an appropriate place for them to worship. The Methodist and Baptist churches allowed them to attend in the afternoon, but their carpets and cushions weren’t as expensive as those at the Episcopal church. Ultimately, it was decided they would meet at the home of a free colored man who was a member.

I was invited to attend, because I could read. Sunday evening came, and, trusting to the cover of night, I ventured out. I rarely ventured out by daylight, for I always went with fear, expecting at every turn to encounter Dr. Flint, who was sure to turn me back, or order me to his office to inquire where I got my bonnet, or some other article of dress. When the Rev. Mr. Pike came, there were some twenty persons present. The reverend gentleman knelt in prayer, then seated himself, and requested all present, who could read, to open their books, while he gave out the portions he wished them to repeat or respond to.

I was invited to join because I could read. Sunday evening came, and trusting the cover of night, I headed out. I rarely went out during the day because I always felt scared, expecting to run into Dr. Flint at any moment, who would definitely send me back or call me to his office to ask where I got my bonnet or some other piece of clothing. When Rev. Mr. Pike arrived, there were about twenty people there. The reverend knelt for prayer, then sat down and asked everyone who could read to open their books while he announced the sections he wanted them to repeat or respond to.

His text was, “Servants, be obedient to them that are your masters according to the flesh, with fear and trembling, in singleness of your heart, as unto Christ.”

His text was, “Servants, be obedient to your masters in a worldly sense, with respect and sincerity, as you would to Christ.”

Pious Mr. Pike brushed up his hair till it stood upright, and, in deep, solemn tones, began: “Hearken, ye servants! Give strict heed unto my words. You are rebellious sinners. Your hearts are filled with all manner of evil. ’Tis the devil who tempts you. God is angry with you, and will surely punish you, if you don’t forsake your wicked ways. You that live in town are eye-servants behind your master’s back. Instead of serving your masters faithfully, which is pleasing in the sight of your heavenly Master, you are idle, and shirk your work. God sees you. You tell lies. God hears you. Instead of being engaged in worshipping him, you are hidden away somewhere, feasting on your master’s substance; tossing coffee-grounds with some wicked fortuneteller, or cutting cards with another old hag. Your masters may not find you out, but God sees you, and will punish you. O, the depravity of your hearts! When your master’s work is done, are you quietly together, thinking of the goodness of God to such sinful creatures? No; you are quarrelling, and tying up little bags of roots to bury under the door-steps to poison each other with. God sees you. You men steal away to every grog shop to sell your master’s corn, that you may buy rum to drink. God sees you. You sneak into the back streets, or among the bushes, to pitch coppers. Although your masters may not find you out, God sees you; and he will punish you. You must forsake your sinful ways, and be faithful servants. Obey your old master and your young master—your old mistress and your young mistress. If you disobey your earthly master, you offend your heavenly Master. You must obey God’s commandments. When you go from here, don’t stop at the corners of the streets to talk, but go directly home, and let your master and mistress see that you have come.”

Pious Mr. Pike fixed his hair until it stood straight up, and in deep, serious tones, began: “Listen up, everyone! Pay close attention to what I’m saying. You are rebellious sinners. Your hearts are filled with all kinds of evil. It’s the devil who tempts you. God is angry with you and will definitely punish you if you don’t turn away from your sinful ways. You who live in town are fake servants when your master isn’t looking. Instead of serving your masters honestly, which pleases your heavenly Master, you’re lazy and avoid your work. God sees you. You lie. God hears you. Instead of being involved in worshipping Him, you’re hiding away somewhere, enjoying your master’s resources; tossing coffee grounds with some deceitful fortune teller or playing cards with another old witch. Your masters may not catch you, but God sees you, and will punish you. Oh, the wickedness of your hearts! When your master’s work is done, are you quietly together, reflecting on God’s goodness to such sinful people? No; you’re arguing and tying little bags of roots to bury under the doorsteps to harm each other. God sees you. You men sneak off to every bar to sell your master’s corn so you can buy rum. God sees you. You creep into the back alleys, or hide in the bushes, to gamble. Even if your masters don’t find out, God sees you; and He will punish you. You must stop your sinful ways and be faithful servants. Obey your old master and your young master—your old mistress and your young mistress. If you disobey your earthly master, you offend your heavenly Master. You must follow God’s commandments. When you leave here, don’t stop at the corners of the streets to chat, but go straight home, and let your master and mistress see that you’ve returned.”

The benediction was pronounced. We went home, highly amused at brother Pike’s gospel teaching, and we determined to hear him again. I went the next Sabbath evening, and heard pretty much a repetition of the last discourse. At the close of the meeting, Mr. Pike informed us that he found it very inconvenient to meet at the friend’s house, and he should be glad to see us, every Sunday evening, at his own kitchen.

The blessing was given. We went home, really amused by Brother Pike's sermon, and we decided to hear him again. I returned the next Sunday evening and heard almost the same message as before. At the end of the meeting, Mr. Pike told us that it was very inconvenient for him to meet at our friend's house, and he would be happy to host us every Sunday evening at his own kitchen.

I went home with the feeling that I had heard the Reverend Mr. Pike for the last time. Some of his members repaired to his house, and found that the kitchen sported two tallow candles; the first time, I am sure, since its present occupant owned it, for the servants never had any thing but pine knots. It was so long before the reverend gentleman descended from his comfortable parlor that the slaves left, and went to enjoy a Methodist shout. They never seem so happy as when shouting and singing at religious meetings. Many of them are sincere, and nearer to the gate of heaven than sanctimonious Mr. Pike, and other long-faced Christians, who see wounded Samaritans, and pass by on the other side.

I left home feeling like I had just heard Reverend Mr. Pike for the last time. Some of his church members went to his house and noticed that the kitchen had two tallow candles; it was the first time, I'm sure, since the current occupant lived there, because the servants only used pine knots. The reverend took so long to come down from his cozy parlor that the slaves decided to leave and enjoy a Methodist shout. They never seem as happy as when they're shouting and singing at religious meetings. Many of them are genuine and closer to heaven than self-righteous Mr. Pike and other long-faced Christians, who see those in need and just walk by on the other side.

The slaves generally compose their own songs and hymns; and they do not trouble their heads much about the measure. They often sing the following verses:

The slaves usually write their own songs and hymns, and they don’t worry too much about the rhythm. They often sing these verses:

“Old Satan is one busy ole man;
He rolls dem blocks all in my way;
But Jesus is my bosom friend;
He rolls dem blocks away.
“If I had died when I was young,
Den how my stam’ring tongue would have sung;
But I am ole, and now I stand
A narrow chance for to tread dat heavenly land.”

I well remember one occasion when I attended a Methodist class meeting. I went with a burdened spirit, and happened to sit next a poor, bereaved mother, whose heart was still heavier than mine. The class leader was the town constable—a man who bought and sold slaves, who whipped his brethren and sisters of the church at the public whipping post, in jail or out of jail. He was ready to perform that Christian office any where for fifty cents. This white-faced, black-hearted brother came near us, and said to the stricken woman, “Sister, can’t you tell us how the Lord deals with your soul? Do you love him as you did formerly?”

I clearly remember a time when I went to a Methodist class meeting. I showed up feeling weighed down, and I ended up sitting next to a poor mother who was even more heartbroken than I was. The class leader was the town constable—a man who bought and sold slaves, who whipped his fellow church members at the public whipping post, whether they were in jail or out. He was ready to carry out that so-called Christian duty anywhere for fifty cents. This cold-faced, cruel brother came up to us and said to the grieving woman, “Sister, can’t you share how the Lord is working in your soul? Do you love Him like you used to?”

She rose to her feet, and said, in piteous tones, “My Lord and Master, help me! My load is more than I can bear. God has hid himself from me, and I am left in darkness and misery.” Then, striking her breast, she continued, “I can’t tell you what is in here! They’ve got all my children. Last week they took the last one. God only knows where they’ve sold her. They let me have her sixteen years, and then— O! O! Pray for her brothers and sisters! I’ve got nothing to live for now. God make my time short!”

She stood up and said, in a mournful voice, “My Lord and Master, please help me! My burden is too heavy to carry. God has turned away from me, and I’m left in darkness and despair.” Then, striking her chest, she continued, “I can’t even express what I feel inside! They’ve taken all my children. Last week, they took the last one. Only God knows where they’ve sold her. They let me have her for sixteen years, and then— Oh! Oh! Pray for her brothers and sisters! I have nothing to live for now. God, please make my time short!”

She sat down, quivering in every limb. I saw that constable class leader become crimson in the face with suppressed laughter, while he held up his handkerchief, that those who were weeping for the poor woman’s calamity might not see his merriment. Then, with assumed gravity, he said to the bereaved mother, “Sister, pray to the Lord that every dispensation of his divine will may be sanctified to the good of your poor needy soul!”

She sat down, shaking all over. I noticed that the class leader constable turned beet red with suppressed laughter while holding up his handkerchief so those who were crying for the poor woman wouldn’t see him amused. Then, trying to be serious, he said to the grieving mother, “Sister, pray to the Lord that every part of His divine will may be a blessing for your needy soul!”

The congregation struck up a hymn, and sung as though they were as free as the birds that warbled round us,—

The congregation started singing a hymn, and they sang as if they were as free as the birds chirping around us,—

“Ole Satan thought he had a mighty aim;
He missed my soul, and caught my sins.
Cry Amen, cry Amen, cry Amen to God!
“He took my sins upon his back;
Went muttering and grumbling down to hell.
Cry Amen, cry Amen, cry Amen to God!
“Ole Satan’s church is here below.
Up to God’s free church I hope to go.
Cry Amen, cry Amen, cry Amen to God!”

Precious are such moments to the poor slaves. If you were to hear them at such times, you might think they were happy. But can that hour of singing and shouting sustain them through the dreary week, toiling without wages, under constant dread of the lash?

Precious are such moments to the poor slaves. If you were to hear them at such times, you might think they were happy. But can that hour of singing and shouting sustain them through the dreary week, toiling without pay, under constant fear of the whip?

The Episcopal clergyman, who, ever since my earliest recollection, had been a sort of god among the slaveholders, concluded, as his family was large, that he must go where money was more abundant. A very different clergyman took his place. The change was very agreeable to the colored people, who said, “God has sent us a good man this time.” They loved him, and their children followed him for a smile or a kind word. Even the slaveholders felt his influence. He brought to the rectory five slaves. His wife taught them to read and write, and to be useful to her and themselves. As soon as he was settled, he turned his attention to the needy slaves around him. He urged upon his parishioners the duty of having a meeting expressly for them every Sunday, with a sermon adapted to their comprehension. After much argument and importunity, it was finally agreed that they might occupy the gallery of the church on Sunday evenings. Many colored people, hitherto unaccustomed to attend church, now gladly went to hear the gospel preached. The sermons were simple, and they understood them. Moreover, it was the first time they had ever been addressed as human beings. It was not long before his white parishioners began to be dissatisfied. He was accused of preaching better sermons to the negroes than he did to them. He honestly confessed that he bestowed more pains upon those sermons than upon any others; for the slaves were reared in such ignorance that it was a difficult task to adapt himself to their comprehension. Dissensions arose in the parish. Some wanted he should preach to them in the evening, and to the slaves in the afternoon. In the midst of these disputings his wife died, after a very short illness. Her slaves gathered round her dying bed in great sorrow. She said, “I have tried to do you good and promote your happiness; and if I have failed, it has not been for want of interest in your welfare. Do not weep for me; but prepare for the new duties that lie before you. I leave you all free. May we meet in a better world.” Her liberated slaves were sent away, with funds to establish them comfortably. The colored people will long bless the memory of that truly Christian woman. Soon after her death her husband preached his farewell sermon, and many tears were shed at his departure.

The Episcopal minister, who had always been seen as a kind of god among the slaveholders, decided that since he had a large family, he needed to move where money was more plentiful. A very different minister took his place. The change was welcomed by the Black community, who said, “God has sent us a good man this time.” They adored him, and their children followed him for a smile or a kind word. Even the slaveholders felt his influence. He brought five slaves with him to the rectory. His wife taught them how to read and write and to be helpful to her and themselves. Once he got settled, he focused on the needy slaves around him. He urged his parishioners to have a meeting just for them every Sunday, with a sermon that they could understand. After much discussion and persistence, it was finally agreed that they could sit in the gallery of the church on Sunday evenings. Many Black people, who had never attended church before, now happily came to hear the gospel preached. The sermons were simple, and they understood them. Moreover, it was the first time they had ever been spoken to as equals. Before long, his white parishioners started to feel unhappy. He was accused of delivering better sermons to the Black congregation than to them. He honestly admitted that he put more effort into those sermons than any others because the slaves had been raised in such ignorance that it was challenging to tailor his message to their understanding. Conflicts arose in the parish. Some wanted him to preach to them in the evening and to the slaves in the afternoon. In the midst of these disputes, his wife passed away after a very brief illness. Her slaves gathered around her dying bed, filled with sorrow. She said, “I have tried to do you good and promote your happiness; if I have failed, it was not for lack of care for your well-being. Don’t weep for me; instead, prepare for the new responsibilities that await you. I leave you all free. May we meet in a better world.” Her freed slaves were sent away with funds to help them establish themselves comfortably. The black community will long remember and honor the memory of that truly Christian woman. Shortly after her death, her husband gave his farewell sermon, and many tears were shed at his departure.

Several years after, he passed through our town and preached to his former congregation. In his afternoon sermon he addressed the colored people. “My friends,” said he, “it affords me great happiness to have an opportunity of speaking to you again. For two years I have been striving to do something for the colored people of my own parish; but nothing is yet accomplished. I have not even preached a sermon to them. Try to live according to the word of God, my friends. Your skin is darker than mine; but God judges men by their hearts, not by the color of their skins.” This was strange doctrine from a southern pulpit. It was very offensive to slaveholders. They said he and his wife had made fools of their slaves, and that he preached like a fool to the negroes.

Several years later, he came through our town and preached to his old congregation. In his afternoon sermon, he spoke to the Black community. “My friends,” he said, “I’m so happy to have the chance to talk to you again. For two years, I’ve been trying to do something for the Black people in my parish, but I haven't accomplished anything yet. I haven’t even preached a sermon to them. Please try to live according to the word of God, my friends. Your skin is darker than mine, but God judges people by their hearts, not by the color of their skin.” This was unusual teaching from a southern pulpit. It was very offensive to slaveholders. They claimed he and his wife had made fools of their slaves and that he preached foolishly to the Black community.

I knew an old black man, whose piety and childlike trust in God were beautiful to witness. At fifty-three years old he joined the Baptist church. He had a most earnest desire to learn to read. He thought he should know how to serve God better if he could only read the Bible. He came to me, and begged me to teach him. He said he could not pay me, for he had no money; but he would bring me nice fruit when the season for it came. I asked him if he didn’t know it was contrary to law; and that slaves were whipped and imprisoned for teaching each other to read. This brought the tears into his eyes. “Don’t be troubled, uncle Fred,” said I. “I have no thoughts of refusing to teach you. I only told you of the law, that you might know the danger, and be on your guard.” He thought he could plan to come three times a week without its being suspected. I selected a quiet nook, where no intruder was likely to penetrate, and there I taught him his A, B, C. Considering his age, his progress was astonishing. As soon as he could spell in two syllables he wanted to spell out words in the Bible. The happy smile that illuminated his face put joy into my heart. After spelling out a few words, he paused, and said, “Honey, it ’pears when I can read dis good book I shall be nearer to God. White man is got all de sense. He can larn easy. It ain’t easy for ole black man like me. I only wants to read dis book, dat I may know how to live; den I hab no fear ’bout dying.”

I knew an older Black man whose deep faith and childlike trust in God were beautiful to see. At fifty-three, he joined the Baptist church. He had a strong desire to learn to read because he thought it would help him serve God better if he could read the Bible. He came to me and begged me to teach him. He said he couldn’t pay me because he had no money, but he would bring me nice fruit when it was in season. I asked him if he didn’t know it was against the law and that slaves were whipped and imprisoned for teaching each other to read. This brought tears to his eyes. “Don’t worry, Uncle Fred,” I said. “I have no intention of refusing to teach you. I just mentioned the law so you would understand the danger and be cautious.” He thought he could manage to come three times a week without anyone finding out. I found a quiet spot where no one was likely to intrude, and there I taught him his ABCs. Given his age, his progress was amazing. As soon as he could spell two-syllable words, he wanted to spell out words from the Bible. The happy smile on his face filled my heart with joy. After spelling out a few words, he paused and said, “Honey, it seems like when I can read this good book I’ll be closer to God. White people have all the sense. They can learn easily. It’s not easy for an old Black man like me. I just want to read this book so I know how to live; then I won’t fear dying.”

I tried to encourage him by speaking of the rapid progress he had made. “Hab patience, child,” he replied. “I larns slow.”

I tried to encourage him by talking about how much progress he had made. “Have patience, kid,” he replied. “I learn slow.”

I had no need of patience. His gratitude, and the happiness I imparted, were more than a recompense for all my trouble.

I didn't need to be patient. His gratitude and the joy I brought him were more than enough reward for all my effort.

At the end of six months he had read through the New Testament, and could find any text in it. One day, when he had recited unusually well, I said, “Uncle Fred, how do you manage to get your lessons so well?”

At the end of six months, he had read through the New Testament and could find any passage in it. One day, after he had recited particularly well, I said, “Uncle Fred, how do you manage to learn your lessons so effectively?”

“Lord bress you, chile,” he replied. “You nebber gibs me a lesson dat I don’t pray to God to help me to understan’ what I spells and what I reads. And he does help me, chile. Bress his holy name!”

“God bless you, kid,” he replied. “You never give me a lesson that I don’t ask God to help me understand what I spell and what I read. And He does help me, kid. Bless His holy name!”

There are thousands, who, like good uncle Fred, are thirsting for the water of life; but the law forbids it, and the churches withhold it. They send the Bible to heathen abroad, and neglect the heathen at home. I am glad that missionaries go out to the dark corners of the earth; but I ask them not to overlook the dark corners at home. Talk to American slaveholders as you talk to savages in Africa. Tell them it is wrong to traffic in men. Tell them it is sinful to sell their own children, and atrocious to violate their own daughters. Tell them that all men are brethren, and that man has no right to shut out the light of knowledge from his brother. Tell them they are answerable to God for sealing up the Fountain of Life from souls that are thirsting for it.

There are thousands who, like good Uncle Fred, are longing for the water of life; but the law prevents it, and the churches deny it. They send the Bible to people overseas but ignore the issues at home. I'm glad that missionaries go to the dark corners of the world; however, I urge them not to forget the dark corners right here. Speak to American slaveholders the same way you would speak to savages in Africa. Tell them it's wrong to trade in people. Tell them it's sinful to sell their own children and horrific to harm their own daughters. Remind them that all men are brothers and that no one has the right to block the light of knowledge from another. Explain to them that they will have to answer to God for shutting off the Fountain of Life from souls that are desperate for it.

There are men who would gladly undertake such missionary work as this; but, alas! their number is small. They are hated by the south, and would be driven from its soil, or dragged to prison to die, as others have been before them. The field is ripe for the harvest, and awaits the reapers. Perhaps the great grandchildren of uncle Fred may have freely imparted to them the divine treasures, which he sought by stealth, at the risk of the prison and the scourge.

There are men who would eagerly take on missionary work like this, but unfortunately, there aren't many of them. They're despised in the South and would be forced out or thrown in prison to die, just like others before them. The opportunity is ready for the taking, waiting for those who will seize it. Maybe the great-grandchildren of Uncle Fred will have shared the divine treasures he sought in secret, risking imprisonment and punishment.

Are doctors of divinity blind, or are they hypocrites? I suppose some are the one, and some the other; but I think if they felt the interest in the poor and the lowly, that they ought to feel, they would not be so easily blinded. A clergyman who goes to the south, for the first time, has usually some feeling, however vague, that slavery is wrong. The slaveholder suspects this, and plays his game accordingly. He makes himself as agreeable as possible; talks on theology, and other kindred topics. The reverend gentleman is asked to invoke a blessing on a table loaded with luxuries. After dinner he walks round the premises, and sees the beautiful groves and flowering vines, and the comfortable huts of favored household slaves. The southerner invites him to talk with these slaves. He asks them if they want to be free, and they say, “O, no, massa.” This is sufficient to satisfy him. He comes home to publish a “South-Side View of Slavery,” and to complain of the exaggerations of abolitionists. He assures people that he has been to the south, and seen slavery for himself; that it is a beautiful “patriarchal institution;” that the slaves don’t want their freedom; that they have hallelujah meetings, and other religious privileges.

Are divinity doctors blind, or are they just hypocrites? I guess some are one and some are the other; but I think if they truly cared about the poor and the humble, like they should, they wouldn't be so easily fooled. A clergyman visiting the South for the first time usually has some vague feeling that slavery is wrong. The slaveholder picks up on this and plays the game accordingly. He makes himself as charming as possible, discussing theology and other related topics. The reverend is asked to bless a table full of lavish food. After dinner, he strolls around the property, admiring the lovely groves and blooming vines, as well as the comfy homes of favored household slaves. The southerner encourages him to chat with these slaves. He asks them if they want to be free, and they reply, “Oh, no, master.” This is enough to satisfy him. He returns home, ready to publish a “South-Side View of Slavery” and to criticize the exaggerations of abolitionists. He confidently tells others that he has been to the South and witnessed slavery himself; that it is a lovely “patriarchal institution;” that the slaves don’t want their freedom; that they hold hallelujah meetings and enjoy other religious privileges.

What does he know of the half-starved wretches toiling from dawn till dark on the plantations? of mothers shrieking for their children, torn from their arms by slave traders? of young girls dragged down into moral filth? of pools of blood around the whipping post? of hounds trained to tear human flesh? of men screwed into cotton gins to die? The slaveholder showed him none of these things, and the slaves dared not tell of them if he had asked them.

What does he know about the starving people working from dawn until dusk on the plantations? About mothers crying out for their children, ripped from their arms by slave traders? About young girls being dragged into moral degradation? About pools of blood around the whipping post? About dogs trained to tear into human flesh? About men being crushed in cotton gins to die? The slaveholder showed him none of this, and the slaves wouldn’t dare speak of it, even if he asked.

There is a great difference between Christianity and religion at the south. If a man goes to the communion table, and pays money into the treasury of the church, no matter if it be the price of blood, he is called religious. If a pastor has offspring by a woman not his wife, the church dismiss him, if she is a white woman; but if she is colored, it does not hinder his continuing to be their good shepherd.

There is a big difference between Christianity and religion in the South. If someone goes to the communion table and puts money into the church’s treasury, no matter if it comes from unethical means, they are considered religious. If a pastor has children with a woman who isn’t his wife, the church will fire him if she’s white; but if she’s Black, it doesn’t stop him from being their respected leader.

When I was told that Dr. Flint had joined the Episcopal church, I was much surprised. I supposed that religion had a purifying effect on the character of men; but the worst persecutions I endured from him were after he was a communicant. The conversation of the doctor, the day after he had been confirmed, certainly gave me no indication that he had “renounced the devil and all his works.” In answer to some of his usual talk, I reminded him that he had just joined the church. “Yes, Linda,” said he. “It was proper for me to do so. I am getting in years, and my position in society requires it, and it puts an end to all the damned slang. You would do well to join the church, too, Linda.”

When I found out that Dr. Flint had joined the Episcopal church, I was really surprised. I thought that religion would have a positive impact on people's character; however, the worst mistreatment I faced from him happened after he became a member. The conversation I had with the doctor the day after he was confirmed definitely gave me no sign that he had “renounced the devil and all his works.” In response to some of his usual comments, I reminded him that he had just joined the church. “Yes, Linda,” he replied. “It was the right thing to do. I’m getting older, and my social standing calls for it, plus it gets rid of all that awful slang. You should think about joining the church too, Linda.”

“There are sinners enough in it already,” rejoined I. “If I could be allowed to live like a Christian, I should be glad.”

“There are already enough sinners in it,” I replied. “If I could live as a Christian, I would be happy.”

“You can do what I require; and if you are faithful to me, you will be as virtuous as my wife,” he replied.

“You can do what I ask; and if you stay loyal to me, you’ll be as virtuous as my wife,” he replied.

I answered that the Bible didn’t say so.

I replied that the Bible doesn't say that.

His voice became hoarse with rage. “How dare you preach to me about your infernal Bible!” he exclaimed. “What right have you, who are my negro, to talk to me about what you would like, and what you wouldn’t like? I am your master, and you shall obey me.”

His voice grew hoarse with anger. “How dare you lecture me about your damn Bible!” he shouted. “What right do you, who are my servant, have to tell me what you want and what you don’t want? I’m your master, and you will obey me.”

No wonder the slaves sing,—

No surprise the slaves sing,—

“Ole Satan’s church is here below;
Up to God’s free church I hope to go.”










XIV. Another Link To Life.

I had not returned to my master’s house since the birth of my child. The old man raved to have me thus removed from his immediate power; but his wife vowed, by all that was good and great, she would kill me if I came back; and he did not doubt her word. Sometimes he would stay away for a season. Then he would come and renew the old threadbare discourse about his forbearance and my ingratitude. He labored, most unnecessarily, to convince me that I had lowered myself. The venomous old reprobate had no need of descanting on that theme. I felt humiliated enough. My unconscious babe was the ever-present witness of my shame. I listened with silent contempt when he talked about my having forfeited his good opinion; but I shed bitter tears that I was no longer worthy of being respected by the good and pure. Alas! slavery still held me in its poisonous grasp. There was no chance for me to be respectable. There was no prospect of being able to lead a better life.

I hadn't gone back to my master’s house since my child was born. The old man was furious about me being out of his control; but his wife swore, by everything good and great, that she would kill me if I returned, and he believed her. Sometimes he would stay away for a while. Then he would come back and restart the same tired conversation about his generosity and my ungratefulness. He tried, unnecessarily, to convince me that I had brought shame on myself. The bitter old man didn’t need to elaborate on that point. I already felt humiliated enough. My innocent baby was a constant reminder of my shame. I listened with silent disdain when he talked about how I had lost his good opinion; but I shed bitter tears because I felt unworthy of respect from the good and pure. Sadly, slavery still had a toxic hold on me. There was no way for me to gain respectability. There was no hope of being able to live a better life.

Sometimes, when my master found that I still refused to accept what he called his kind offers, he would threaten to sell my child. “Perhaps that will humble you,” said he.

Sometimes, when my master realized that I still wouldn't accept what he called his generous offers, he would threaten to sell my child. “Maybe that will humble you,” he said.

Humble me! Was I not already in the dust? But his threat lacerated my heart. I knew the law gave him power to fulfil it; for slaveholders have been cunning enough to enact that “the child shall follow the condition of the mother,” not of the father; thus taking care that licentiousness shall not interfere with avarice. This reflection made me clasp my innocent babe all the more firmly to my heart. Horrid visions passed through my mind when I thought of his liability to fall into the slave trader’s hands. I wept over him, and said, “O my child! perhaps they will leave you in some cold cabin to die, and then throw you into a hole, as if you were a dog.”

Humble me! Wasn't I already down and out? But his threat cut into my heart. I knew the law gave him the power to make it happen; because slaveholders were smart enough to establish that “the child will follow the condition of the mother,” not the father; ensuring that indulgence doesn't interfere with greed. This thought made me hold my innocent baby even tighter to my chest. Terrible visions flashed through my mind when I considered the possibility of him ending up in the hands of a slave trader. I cried over him and said, “Oh my child! Maybe they’ll leave you in some cold shack to die, and then toss you into a pit, like you were a dog.”

When Dr. Flint learned that I was again to be a mother, he was exasperated beyond measure. He rushed from the house, and returned with a pair of shears. I had a fine head of hair; and he often railed about my pride of arranging it nicely. He cut every hair close to my head, storming and swearing all the time. I replied to some of his abuse, and he struck me. Some months before, he had pitched me down stairs in a fit of passion; and the injury I received was so serious that I was unable to turn myself in bed for many days. He then said, “Linda, I swear by God I will never raise my hand against you again;” but I knew that he would forget his promise.

When Dr. Flint found out I was going to be a mother again, he was extremely angry. He stormed out of the house and came back with a pair of shears. I had beautiful long hair, and he often complained about how proud I was of keeping it nice. He chopped off all my hair close to my head, shouting and cursing the whole time. I responded to some of his insults, and he hit me. A few months earlier, he had thrown me down the stairs in a fit of rage, and the injury I suffered was so bad that I couldn't turn in bed for many days. He then said, “Linda, I swear to God I will never raise my hand against you again,” but I knew he would forget that promise.

After he discovered my situation, he was like a restless spirit from the pit. He came every day; and I was subjected to such insults as no pen can describe. I would not describe them if I could; they were too low, too revolting. I tried to keep them from my grandmother’s knowledge as much as I could. I knew she had enough to sadden her life, without having my troubles to bear. When she saw the doctor treat me with violence, and heard him utter oaths terrible enough to palsy a man’s tongue, she could not always hold her peace. It was natural and motherlike that she should try to defend me; but it only made matters worse.

After he found out about my situation, he acted like an angry spirit. He showed up every day, and I faced insults that no words could truly capture. Even if I could, I wouldn’t describe them; they were too degrading, too disgusting. I tried my best to keep my grandmother from knowing, as she already had enough sadness in her life without my struggles adding to it. When she saw the doctor treating me violently and heard him curse in ways that could shock anyone, she couldn’t always stay quiet. It was natural and instinctive for her to want to defend me, but that just made things worse.

When they told me my new-born babe was a girl, my heart was heavier than it had ever been before. Slavery is terrible for men; but it is far more terrible for women. Superadded to the burden common to all, they have wrongs, and sufferings, and mortifications peculiarly their own.

When they told me my newborn baby was a girl, my heart felt heavier than it ever had before. Slavery is awful for men, but it's even more terrible for women. On top of the common burden everyone faces, they have their own unique wrongs, sufferings, and humiliations.

Dr. Flint had sworn that he would make me suffer, to my last day, for this new crime against him, as he called it; and as long as he had me in his power he kept his word. On the fourth day after the birth of my babe, he entered my room suddenly, and commanded me to rise and bring my baby to him. The nurse who took care of me had gone out of the room to prepare some nourishment, and I was alone. There was no alternative. I rose, took up my babe, and crossed the room to where he sat. “Now stand there,” said he, “till I tell you to go back!” My child bore a strong resemblance to her father, and to the deceased Mrs. Sands, her grandmother. He noticed this; and while I stood before him, trembling with weakness, he heaped upon me and my little one every vile epithet he could think of. Even the grandmother in her grave did not escape his curses. In the midst of his vituperations I fainted at his feet. This recalled him to his senses. He took the baby from my arms, laid it on the bed, dashed cold water in my face, took me up, and shook me violently, to restore my consciousness before any one entered the room. Just then my grandmother came in, and he hurried out of the house. I suffered in consequence of this treatment; but I begged my friends to let me die, rather than send for the doctor. There was nothing I dreaded so much as his presence. My life was spared; and I was glad for the sake of my little ones. Had it not been for these ties to life, I should have been glad to be released by death, though I had lived only nineteen years.

Dr. Flint had promised that he would make me suffer for this new offense against him, as he called it, and as long as he had control over me, he kept that promise. On the fourth day after my baby was born, he suddenly entered my room and ordered me to get up and bring my baby to him. The nurse who had been taking care of me had stepped out to get some food, so I was alone. I had no choice. I got up, picked up my baby, and walked across the room to where he was sitting. “Now stand there,” he said, “until I tell you to go back!” My child looked a lot like her father and her late grandmother, Mrs. Sands. He noticed this, and while I stood before him, trembling with weakness, he showered me and my little one with every nasty name he could think of. Even the grandmother in her grave wasn’t spared from his curses. In the middle of his ranting, I fainted at his feet. This snapped him back to reality. He took the baby from my arms, placed her on the bed, splashed cold water on my face, picked me up, and shook me roughly to bring me back to my senses before anyone else came into the room. Just then, my grandmother walked in, and he hurried out of the house. I suffered from this treatment, but I begged my friends to let me die instead of calling the doctor. I dreaded his presence more than anything. My life was saved, and I was thankful for my little ones. If it weren't for those connections to life, I would have welcomed death, even though I had lived only nineteen years.

Always it gave me a pang that my children had no lawful claim to a name. Their father offered his; but, if I had wished to accept the offer, I dared not while my master lived. Moreover, I knew it would not be accepted at their baptism. A Christian name they were at least entitled to; and we resolved to call my boy for our dear good Benjamin, who had gone far away from us.

Always it bothered me that my children had no legal right to a name. Their father offered his, but even if I wanted to accept it, I couldn't while my master was alive. Besides, I knew it wouldn't be accepted during their baptism. They were at least entitled to a Christian name, and we decided to name my son after our dear good Benjamin, who had gone far away from us.

My grandmother belonged to the church; and she was very desirous of having the children christened. I knew Dr. Flint would forbid it, and I did not venture to attempt it. But chance favored me. He was called to visit a patient out of town, and was obliged to be absent during Sunday. “Now is the time,” said my grandmother; “we will take the children to church, and have them christened.”

My grandmother was a member of the church, and she really wanted to have the children baptized. I knew Dr. Flint would not allow it, so I didn’t dare to try. But luck was on my side. He had to go visit a patient out of town and would be away all Sunday. "Now's our chance," my grandmother said; "let's take the kids to church and get them baptized."

When I entered the church, recollections of my mother came over me, and I felt subdued in spirit. There she had presented me for baptism, without any reason to feel ashamed. She had been married, and had such legal rights as slavery allows to a slave. The vows had at least been sacred to her, and she had never violated them. I was glad she was not alive, to know under what different circumstances her grandchildren were presented for baptism. Why had my lot been so different from my mother’s? Her master had died when she was a child; and she remained with her mistress till she married. She was never in the power of any master; and thus she escaped one class of the evils that generally fall upon slaves.

When I walked into the church, memories of my mother flooded over me, and I felt a deep sense of sadness. This was where she had brought me for baptism, with nothing to be ashamed of. She had been married and had the limited legal rights that slavery allowed a slave. The vows had been meaningful to her, and she had never broken them. I was relieved she wasn’t alive to see the very different circumstances under which her grandchildren were baptized. Why was my life so different from my mother’s? Her master had passed away when she was young, and she stayed with her mistress until she got married. She was never under the control of any master; thus, she avoided some of the hardships that usually affected slaves.

When my baby was about to be christened, the former mistress of my father stepped up to me, and proposed to give it her Christian name. To this I added the surname of my father, who had himself no legal right to it; for my grandfather on the paternal side was a white gentleman. What tangled skeins are the genealogies of slavery! I loved my father; but it mortified me to be obliged to bestow his name on my children.

When my baby was about to be baptized, my father's former mistress approached me and offered to give it her Christian name. I then added my father's surname, even though he didn't have any legal claim to it; my paternal grandfather was a white gentleman. The family trees of slavery are so complicated! I loved my father, but it embarrassed me to have to pass on his name to my kids.

When we left the church, my father’s old mistress invited me to go home with her. She clasped a gold chain round my baby’s neck. I thanked her for this kindness; but I did not like the emblem. I wanted no chain to be fastened on my daughter, not even if its links were of gold. How earnestly I prayed that she might never feel the weight of slavery’s chain, whose iron entereth into the soul!

When we left the church, my dad's old girlfriend invited me to come home with her. She put a gold chain around my baby’s neck. I appreciated her kindness, but I didn’t like the symbol. I didn’t want any chain on my daughter, even if it was made of gold. I prayed so hard that she would never feel the burden of slavery's chain, whose iron seeps into the soul!










XV. Continued Persecutions.

My children grew finely; and Dr. Flint would often say to me, with an exulting smile. “These brats will bring me a handsome sum of money one of these days.”

My kids grew up well, and Dr. Flint would often say to me with a proud smile, "These kids are going to make me a nice amount of money someday."

I thought to myself that, God being my helper, they should never pass into his hands. It seemed to me I would rather see them killed than have them given up to his power. The money for the freedom of myself and my children could be obtained; but I derived no advantage from that circumstance. Dr. Flint loved money, but he loved power more. After much discussion, my friends resolved on making another trial. There was a slaveholder about to leave for Texas, and he was commissioned to buy me. He was to begin with nine hundred dollars, and go up to twelve. My master refused his offers. “Sir,” said he, “she don’t belong to me. She is my daughter’s property, and I have no right to sell her. I mistrust that you come from her paramour. If so, you may tell him that he cannot buy her for any money; neither can he buy her children.”

I thought to myself that, with God as my helper, they should never end up in his hands. I would rather see them killed than have them given over to his control. The money to secure my freedom and my children's could be raised; but that didn’t help me much. Dr. Flint loved money, but he loved power even more. After a lot of discussion, my friends decided to try again. There was a slaveholder who was about to leave for Texas, and he was asked to buy me. He was going to start with nine hundred dollars and go up to twelve. My master turned down his offers. “Sir,” he said, “she doesn’t belong to me. She is my daughter’s property, and I have no right to sell her. I suspect you are coming from her lover. If that's the case, you can tell him he cannot buy her for any amount; he can’t buy her children either.”

The doctor came to see me the next day, and my heart beat quicker as he entered. I never had seen the old man tread with so majestic a step. He seated himself and looked at me with withering scorn. My children had learned to be afraid of him. The little one would shut her eyes and hide her face on my shoulder whenever she saw him; and Benny, who was now nearly five years old, often inquired, “What makes that bad man come here so many times? Does he want to hurt us?” I would clasp the dear boy in my arms, trusting that he would be free before he was old enough to solve the problem. And now, as the doctor sat there so grim and silent, the child left his play and came and nestled up by me. At last my tormentor spoke. “So you are left in disgust, are you?” said he. “It is no more than I expected. You remember I told you years ago that you would be treated so. So he is tired of you? Ha! ha! ha! The virtuous madam don’t like to hear about it, does she? Ha! ha! ha!” There was a sting in his calling me virtuous madam. I no longer had the power of answering him as I had formerly done. He continued: “So it seems you are trying to get up another intrigue. Your new paramour came to me, and offered to buy you; but you may be assured you will not succeed. You are mine; and you shall be mine for life. There lives no human being that can take you out of slavery. I would have done it; but you rejected my kind offer.”

The doctor came to see me the next day, and my heart raced as he entered. I had never seen the old man walk with such a grand stride. He sat down and looked at me with disdain. My children had learned to fear him. The youngest would shut her eyes and hide her face on my shoulder whenever she saw him; and Benny, who was now almost five years old, often asked, “Why does that bad man come here so often? Does he want to hurt us?” I would hug the dear boy, hoping he would be free before he was old enough to figure it out. And now, as the doctor sat there so grim and silent, the child left his play and came to snuggle next to me. Finally, my tormentor spoke. “So you’re left in disgust, are you?” he said. “That’s exactly what I expected. Remember I told you years ago that you would be treated this way. So he’s tired of you? Ha! ha! ha! The virtuous madam doesn’t like hearing about it, does she? Ha! ha! ha!” His calling me virtuous madam stung. I no longer had the ability to respond to him as I once did. He went on: “So it seems you’re trying to stir up another scandal. Your new lover came to me and offered to buy you, but you can be sure you won’t succeed. You are mine, and you will be mine for life. There’s no one alive who can free you from this slavery. I would have done it, but you rejected my generous offer.”

I told him I did not wish to get up any intrigue; that I had never seen the man who offered to buy me.

I told him I didn't want to create any drama; that I had never met the guy who offered to buy me.

“Do you tell me I lie?” exclaimed he, dragging me from my chair. “Will you say again that you never saw that man?”

“Are you saying I'm lying?” he shouted, pulling me out of my chair. “Will you say again that you never saw that guy?”

I answered, “I do say so.”

I replied, "I really do say that."

He clinched my arm with a volley of oaths. Ben began to scream, and I told him to go to his grandmother.

He grabbed my arm and swore a bunch. Ben started yelling, and I told him to go to his grandma.

“Don’t you stir a step, you little wretch!” said he. The child drew nearer to me, and put his arms round me, as if he wanted to protect me. This was too much for my enraged master. He caught him up and hurled him across the room. I thought he was dead, and rushed towards him to take him up.

“Don’t you move an inch, you little brat!” he said. The child came closer to me and wrapped his arms around me, as if he wanted to shield me. This was too much for my furious master. He picked him up and threw him across the room. I thought he was dead and ran over to pick him up.

“Not yet!” exclaimed the doctor. “Let him lie there till he comes to.”

“Not yet!” the doctor exclaimed. “Let him lie there until he comes to.”

“Let me go! Let me go!” I screamed, “or I will raise the whole house.” I struggled and got away; but he clinched me again. Somebody opened the door, and he released me. I picked up my insensible child, and when I turned my tormentor was gone. Anxiously, I bent over the little form, so pale and still; and when the brown eyes at last opened, I don’t know whether I was very happy.

“Let me go! Let me go!” I shouted, “or I will make a scene!” I fought back and broke free, but he grabbed me again. Then someone opened the door, and he let me go. I picked up my unconscious child, and when I turned around, my tormentor was gone. I leaned over the small, pale body, and when the brown eyes finally opened, I can't say if I felt very happy.

All the doctor’s former persecutions were renewed. He came morning, noon, and night. No jealous lover ever watched a rival more closely than he watched me and the unknown slaveholder, with whom he accused me of wishing to get up an intrigue. When my grandmother was out of the way he searched every room to find him.

All the doctor’s previous tormenting behavior returned. He showed up morning, noon, and night. No jealous partner ever monitored a rival more intensely than he kept an eye on me and the unknown slaveholder, whom he accused me of trying to have an affair with. When my grandmother was out, he searched every room to find him.

In one of his visits, he happened to find a young girl, whom he had sold to a trader a few days previous. His statement was, that he sold her because she had been too familiar with the overseer. She had had a bitter life with him, and was glad to be sold. She had no mother, and no near ties. She had been torn from all her family years before. A few friends had entered into bonds for her safety, if the trader would allow her to spend with them the time that intervened between her sale and the gathering up of his human stock. Such a favor was rarely granted. It saved the trader the expense of board and jail fees, and though the amount was small, it was a weighty consideration in a slave-trader’s mind.

During one of his visits, he found a young girl he had sold to a trader just a few days earlier. He said he sold her because she had become too close with the overseer. She had suffered greatly with him and was relieved to be sold. She had no mother and no close connections; she had been ripped away from her family years ago. A few friends had made arrangements to ensure her safety, hoping the trader would let her spend the time between her sale and the collection of his human cargo with them. Such a favor was rarely granted. It saved the trader the costs of food and holding fees, and although the amount was small, it was a significant consideration for a slave trader.

Dr. Flint always had an aversion to meeting slaves after he had sold them. He ordered Rose out of the house; but he was no longer her master, and she took no notice of him. For once the crushed Rose was the conqueror. His gray eyes flashed angrily upon her; but that was the extent of his power. “How came this girl here?” he exclaimed. “What right had you to allow it, when you knew I had sold her?”

Dr. Flint always hated seeing slaves after he had sold them. He ordered Rose to leave the house, but he was no longer her master, and she ignored him. For once, the downtrodden Rose was the one in control. His gray eyes flashed with anger at her, but that was all he could do. “How did this girl get here?” he shouted. “What right did you have to allow it when you knew I had sold her?”

I answered, “This is my grandmother’s house, and Rose came to see her. I have no right to turn any body out of doors, that comes here for honest purposes.”

I replied, “This is my grandmother’s house, and Rose came to visit her. I have no right to kick anyone out who comes here for genuine reasons.”

He gave me the blow that would have fallen upon Rose if she had still been his slave. My grandmother’s attention had been attracted by loud voices, and she entered in time to see a second blow dealt. She was not a woman to let such an outrage, in her own house, go unrebuked. The doctor undertook to explain that I had been insolent. Her indignant feelings rose higher and higher, and finally boiled over in words. “Get out of my house!” she exclaimed. “Go home, and take care of your wife and children, and you will have enough to do, without watching my family.”

He hit me instead of Rose, like he would have done if she were still his slave. My grandmother heard the loud voices and came in just in time to see another hit. She wasn’t the kind of woman to let that kind of disrespect happen in her own house without saying anything. The doctor tried to say that I had been rude. Her anger kept rising until she couldn't hold it back anymore. “Get out of my house!” she shouted. “Go home, take care of your wife and kids, and you’ll have plenty to do without worrying about my family.”

He threw the birth of my children in her face, and accused her of sanctioning the life I was leading. She told him I was living with her by compulsion of his wife; that he needn’t accuse her, for he was the one to blame; he was the one who had caused all the trouble. She grew more and more excited as she went on. “I tell you what, Dr. Flint,” said she, “you ain’t got many more years to live, and you’d better be saying your prayers. It will take ’em all, and more too, to wash the dirt off your soul.”

He threw the fact that I had children in her face and accused her of allowing the life I was living. She told him that I was with her because of his wife’s pressure; that he shouldn’t blame her, because he was the one at fault; he was the one who had created all the chaos. She became more and more animated as she spoke. “Let me tell you something, Dr. Flint,” she said, “you don’t have many years left, and you’d better start praying. You’ll need all the prayers you can get to cleanse the dirt off your soul.”

“Do you know whom you are talking to?” he exclaimed.

“Do you know who you’re talking to?” he said.

She replied, “Yes, I know very well who I am talking to.”

She replied, “Yes, I know exactly who I'm talking to.”

He left the house in a great rage. I looked at my grandmother. Our eyes met. Their angry expression had passed away, but she looked sorrowful and weary—weary of incessant strife. I wondered that it did not lessen her love for me; but if it did she never showed it. She was always kind, always ready to sympathize with my troubles. There might have been peace and contentment in that humble home if it had not been for the demon Slavery.

He stormed out of the house in a huge rage. I glanced at my grandmother. Our eyes connected. Her anger had faded, but she looked sad and exhausted—tired of the constant fighting. I was surprised that it didn’t lessen her love for me; but if it did, she never let it show. She was always kind, always willing to empathize with my problems. There could have been peace and happiness in that simple home if it hadn’t been for the demon of Slavery.

The winter passed undisturbed by the doctor. The beautiful spring came; and when Nature resumes her loveliness, the human soul is apt to revive also. My drooping hopes came to life again with the flowers. I was dreaming of freedom again; more for my children’s sake than my own. I planned and I planned. Obstacles hit against plans. There seemed no way of overcoming them; and yet I hoped.

The winter went by quietly for the doctor. Beautiful spring arrived; and when Nature brings back her beauty, it often lifts the human spirit too. My fading hopes bloomed again with the flowers. I found myself dreaming of freedom again, more for my children's sake than for my own. I made plans and kept planning. Obstacles kept getting in the way of those plans. It felt like there was no way to get past them; and yet, I still held on to hope.

Back came the wily doctor. I was not at home when he called. A friend had invited me to a small party, and to gratify her I went. To my great consternation, a messenger came in haste to say that Dr. Flint was at my grandmother’s, and insisted on seeing me. They did not tell him where I was, or he would have come and raised a disturbance in my friend’s house. They sent me a dark wrapper; I threw it on and hurried home. My speed did not save me; the doctor had gone away in anger. I dreaded the morning, but I could not delay it; it came, warm and bright. At an early hour the doctor came and asked me where I had been last night. I told him. He did not believe me, and sent to my friend’s house to ascertain the facts. He came in the afternoon to assure me he was satisfied that I had spoken the truth. He seemed to be in a facetious mood, and I expected some jeers were coming. “I suppose you need some recreation,” said he, “but I am surprised at your being there, among those negroes. It was not the place for you. Are you allowed to visit such people?”

The clever doctor returned. I wasn’t home when he dropped by. A friend had invited me to a small party, and to make her happy, I went. To my shock, a messenger rushed in to say that Dr. Flint was at my grandmother’s, insisting on seeing me. They didn’t tell him where I was, or he would have come and caused a scene at my friend’s place. They sent me a dark wrap; I threw it on and hurried home. My quickness didn’t help; the doctor had left in anger. I feared the morning, but I couldn’t put it off; it arrived, warm and bright. Early on, the doctor came and asked where I had been the night before. I told him. He didn’t believe me and sent someone to check with my friend’s house to find out the truth. He came back in the afternoon to assure me he was convinced I was telling the truth. He seemed to be in a joking mood, and I braced for some teasing. “I guess you need some fun,” he said, “but I’m surprised to find you there, among those Black people. It wasn’t the right place for you. Are you allowed to visit people like that?”

I understood this covert fling at the white gentleman who was my friend; but I merely replied, “I went to visit my friends, and any company they keep is good enough for me.”

I got that this was a subtle jab at the white guy who was my friend; but I just replied, “I went to see my friends, and whoever they hang out with is fine by me.”

He went on to say, “I have seen very little of you of late, but my interest in you is unchanged. When I said I would have no more mercy on you I was rash. I recall my words. Linda, you desire freedom for yourself and your children, and you can obtain it only through me. If you agree to what I am about to propose, you and they shall be free. There must be no communication of any kind between you and their father. I will procure a cottage, where you and the children can live together. Your labor shall be light, such as sewing for my family. Think what is offered you, Linda—a home and freedom! Let the past be forgotten. If I have been harsh with you at times, your wilfulness drove me to it. You know I exact obedience from my own children, and I consider you as yet a child.”

He continued, “I haven’t seen much of you lately, but my feelings for you haven’t changed. When I said I would have no more compassion for you, I was being impulsive. I take back those words. Linda, you want freedom for yourself and your children, and the only way to achieve that is through me. If you agree to what I’m about to suggest, you and your children will be free. There can be no communication of any kind between you and their father. I’ll arrange for a cottage where you and the kids can live together. Your work will be light, like sewing for my family. Think about what I'm offering you, Linda—a home and freedom! Let’s forget the past. If I’ve been tough on you at times, it’s because your stubbornness pushed me to it. You know I demand obedience from my own children, and I see you as still being a child.”

He paused for an answer, but I remained silent.

He waited for a response, but I stayed quiet.

“Why don’t you speak?” said he. “What more do you wait for?”

“Why aren’t you talking?” he asked. “What are you waiting for?”

“Nothing, sir.”

“Nothing, sir.”

“Then you accept my offer?”

“So, do you accept my offer?”

“No, sir.”

"No, thank you."

His anger was ready to break loose; but he succeeded in curbing it, and replied, “You have answered without thought. But I must let you know there are two sides to my proposition; if you reject the bright side, you will be obliged to take the dark one. You must either accept my offer, or you and your children shall be sent to your young master’s plantation, there to remain till your young mistress is married; and your children shall fare like the rest of the negro children. I give you a week to consider of it.”

His anger was about to explode, but he managed to hold it back and replied, “You’ve answered without thinking. But I need you to understand that there are two sides to my proposal; if you turn down the good side, you’ll have to face the bad one. You can either accept my offer, or you and your kids will be sent to your young master’s plantation, where you’ll stay until your young mistress gets married; and your children will be treated like the other black children. I’m giving you a week to think about it.”

He was shrewd; but I knew he was not to be trusted. I told him I was ready to give my answer now.

He was clever, but I knew he couldn't be trusted. I told him I was ready to give my answer now.

“I will not receive it now,” he replied. “You act too much from impulse. Remember that you and your children can be free a week from to-day if you choose.”

“I won’t accept it right now,” he said. “You act too much on impulse. Remember that you and your kids can be free a week from today if you want.”

On what a monstrous chance hung the destiny of my children! I knew that my master’s offer was a snare, and that if I entered it escape would be impossible. As for his promise, I knew him so well that I was sure if he gave me free papers, they would be so managed as to have no legal value. The alternative was inevitable. I resolved to go to the plantation. But then I thought how completely I should be in his power, and the prospect was appalling. Even if I should kneel before him, and implore him to spare me, for the sake of my children, I knew he would spurn me with his foot, and my weakness would be his triumph.

On what a terrible chance depended the future of my kids! I knew that my master’s offer was a trap, and that if I fell for it, escape would be impossible. As for his promise, I knew him so well that I was sure if he gave me free papers, they would be set up in a way that made them worthless. The alternative was clear. I decided to go to the plantation. But then I thought about how completely I would be at his mercy, and the idea was horrifying. Even if I knelt before him and begged him to spare me for the sake of my kids, I knew he would kick me away, and my vulnerability would only give him power.

Before the week expired, I heard that young Mr. Flint was about to be married to a lady of his own stamp. I foresaw the position I should occupy in his establishment. I had once been sent to the plantation for punishment, and fear of the son had induced the father to recall me very soon. My mind was made up; I was resolved that I would foil my master and save my children, or I would perish in the attempt. I kept my plans to myself; I knew that friends would try to dissuade me from them, and I would not wound their feelings by rejecting their advice.

Before the week was up, I heard that young Mr. Flint was about to marry a woman of his own kind. I realized the role I would have in his household. I had once been sent to the plantation as punishment, and fear of his son made the father bring me back pretty quickly. I had made up my mind; I was determined to outsmart my master and save my children, or I would die trying. I kept my plans to myself; I knew friends would try to talk me out of them, and I didn’t want to hurt their feelings by ignoring their advice.

On the decisive day the doctor came, and said he hoped I had made a wise choice.

On the crucial day the doctor arrived, he expressed hope that I had made a good decision.

“I am ready to go to the plantation, sir,” I replied.

“I’m ready to go to the plantation, sir,” I replied.

“Have you thought how important your decision is to your children?” said he.

“Have you considered how important your decision is for your kids?” he said.

I told him I had.

I told him I did.

“Very well. Go to the plantation, and my curse go with you,” he replied. “Your boy shall be put to work, and he shall soon be sold; and your girl shall be raised for the purpose of selling well. Go your own ways!” He left the room with curses, not to be repeated.

“Alright. Head to the plantation, and my curse goes with you,” he replied. “Your boy will be put to work, and he’ll soon be sold; and your girl will be raised to sell well. Go your own ways!” He left the room muttering curses that shouldn’t be repeated.

As I stood rooted to the spot, my grandmother came and said, “Linda, child, what did you tell him?”

As I stood frozen in place, my grandmother approached and said, “Linda, dear, what did you tell him?”

I answered that I was going to the plantation.

I replied that I was heading to the plantation.

Must you go?” said she. “Can’t something be done to stop it?”

Do you have to go?” she asked. “Can’t we do something to stop it?”

I told her it was useless to try; but she begged me not to give up. She said she would go to the doctor, and remind him how long and how faithfully she had served in the family, and how she had taken her own baby from her breast to nourish his wife. She would tell him I had been out of the family so long they would not miss me; that she would pay them for my time, and the money would procure a woman who had more strength for the situation than I had. I begged her not to go; but she persisted in saying, “He will listen to me, Linda.” She went, and was treated as I expected. He coolly listened to what she said, but denied her request. He told her that what he did was for my good, that my feelings were entirely above my situation, and that on the plantation I would receive treatment that was suitable to my behavior.

I told her it was pointless to try; but she insisted I shouldn’t give up. She said she would go to the doctor and remind him how long and how faithfully she had served the family, and how she had taken her own baby from her breast to take care of his wife. She would tell him I had been away from the family for so long that they wouldn’t miss me; that she would pay them for my time, and the money would get someone stronger for the situation than I was. I begged her not to go; but she kept saying, “He will listen to me, Linda.” She went, and as I expected, she was treated poorly. He coldly listened to her but denied her request. He told her that what he was doing was for my own good, that my feelings were far above my situation, and that on the plantation I would get treatment appropriate to my behavior.

My grandmother was much cast down. I had my secret hopes; but I must fight my battle alone. I had a woman’s pride, and a mother’s love for my children; and I resolved that out of the darkness of this hour a brighter dawn should rise for them. My master had power and law on his side; I had a determined will. There is might in each.

My grandmother was really upset. I had my private hopes, but I had to face my struggles on my own. I had the pride of a woman and a mother’s love for my kids, and I decided that from this dark time, a brighter future would emerge for them. My master had power and the law backing him up; I had a strong will. Each has its own strength.










XVI. Scenes At The Plantation.

Early the next morning I left my grandmother’s with my youngest child. My boy was ill, and I left him behind. I had many sad thoughts as the old wagon jolted on. Hitherto, I had suffered alone; now, my little one was to be treated as a slave. As we drew near the great house, I thought of the time when I was formerly sent there out of revenge. I wondered for what purpose I was now sent. I could not tell. I resolved to obey orders so far as duty required; but within myself, I determined to make my stay as short as possible. Mr. Flint was waiting to receive us, and told me to follow him up stairs to receive orders for the day. My little Ellen was left below in the kitchen. It was a change for her, who had always been so carefully tended. My young master said she might amuse herself in the yard. This was kind of him, since the child was hateful to his sight. My task was to fit up the house for the reception of the bride. In the midst of sheets, tablecloths, towels, drapery, and carpeting, my head was as busy planning, as were my fingers with the needle. At noon I was allowed to go to Ellen. She had sobbed herself to sleep. I heard Mr. Flint say to a neighbor, “I’ve got her down here, and I’ll soon take the town notions out of her head. My father is partly to blame for her nonsense. He ought to have broke her in long ago.” The remark was made within my hearing, and it would have been quite as manly to have made it to my face. He had said things to my face which might, or might not, have surprised his neighbor if he had known of them. He was “a chip of the old block.”

Early the next morning, I left my grandmother's house with my youngest child. My boy was sick, and I had to leave him behind. I had a lot of sad thoughts as the old wagon bounced along. Until now, I had suffered alone; now, my little one was going to be treated like a servant. As we got closer to the big house, I remembered the time I was sent there out of spite. I wondered why I was being sent this time. I couldn't figure it out. I decided to follow orders as much as duty required, but inside, I resolved to make my stay as short as possible. Mr. Flint was waiting for us and told me to follow him upstairs to get my instructions for the day. My little Ellen was left downstairs in the kitchen. It was a big change for her, as she'd always been so well cared for. My young master said she could entertain herself in the yard. That was nice of him since the child was unpleasant to look at for him. My job was to prepare the house for the bride's arrival. While dealing with sheets, tablecloths, towels, drapery, and carpeting, my mind was just as busy planning as my hands were with the needle. At noon, I was allowed to see Ellen. She had cried herself to sleep. I heard Mr. Flint say to a neighbor, “I’ve got her down here, and I’ll soon get rid of her silly ideas. My father is partly to blame for her nonsense. He should have disciplined her a long time ago.” He made that comment within earshot, and it would have been just as manly to say it to my face. He had said things to my face that might have surprised his neighbor if he had known about them. He was “a chip off the old block.”

I resolved to give him no cause to accuse me of being too much of a lady, so far as work was concerned. I worked day and night, with wretchedness before me. When I lay down beside my child, I felt how much easier it would be to see her die than to see her master beat her about, as I daily saw him beat other little ones. The spirit of the mothers was so crushed by the lash, that they stood by, without courage to remonstrate. How much more must I suffer, before I should be “broke in” to that degree?

I made up my mind not to give him any reason to accuse me of being too much of a lady when it came to work. I worked day and night, facing misery head-on. When I lay down next to my child, I realized it would be easier to watch her die than to see her master beat her like I saw him beat other kids every day. The mothers were so beaten down by the whip that they stood by without the courage to speak up. How much more would I have to endure before I’d be "broken" to that extent?

I wished to appear as contented as possible. Sometimes I had an opportunity to send a few lines home; and this brought up recollections that made it difficult, for a time, to seem calm and indifferent to my lot. Notwithstanding my efforts, I saw that Mr. Flint regarded me with a suspicious eye. Ellen broke down under the trials of her new life. Separated from me, with no one to look after her, she wandered about, and in a few days cried herself sick. One day, she sat under the window where I was at work, crying that weary cry which makes a mother’s heart bleed. I was obliged to steel myself to bear it. After a while it ceased. I looked out, and she was gone. As it was near noon, I ventured to go down in search of her. The great house was raised two feet above the ground. I looked under it, and saw her about midway, fast asleep. I crept under and drew her out. As I held her in my arms, I thought how well it would be for her if she never waked up; and I uttered my thought aloud. I was startled to hear some one say, “Did you speak to me?” I looked up, and saw Mr. Flint standing beside me. He said nothing further, but turned, frowning, away. That night he sent Ellen a biscuit and a cup of sweetened milk. This generosity surprised me. I learned afterwards, that in the afternoon he had killed a large snake, which crept from under the house; and I supposed that incident had prompted his unusual kindness.

I tried to look as happy as I could. Sometimes I had the chance to write a few lines home, which brought back memories that made it hard for me to seem calm and uncaring about my situation. Despite my efforts, I noticed that Mr. Flint was watching me with suspicion. Ellen couldn’t handle the challenges of her new life. Separated from me and without anyone to take care of her, she wandered around and soon cried herself sick. One day, she sat under the window where I was working, letting out that heartbreaking cry that tears at a mother's heart. I had to toughen up to endure it. Eventually, it stopped. I looked outside, and she was gone. Since it was almost noon, I decided to go look for her. The big house was raised a couple of feet off the ground. I looked underneath and found her sleeping peacefully in the middle. I crawled under and pulled her out. As I held her in my arms, I thought how nice it would be for her if she never woke up, and I said it out loud. I was shocked to hear someone ask, “Did you say something to me?” I looked up and saw Mr. Flint standing next to me. He didn’t say anything else but turned away, frowning. That night, he sent Ellen a biscuit and a cup of sweetened milk. His generosity surprised me. I found out later that afternoon, he had killed a big snake that had come out from under the house, and I figured that incident had caused his unusual kindness.

The next morning the old cart was loaded with shingles for town. I put Ellen into it, and sent her to her grandmother. Mr. Flint said I ought to have asked his permission. I told him the child was sick, and required attention which I had no time to give. He let it pass; for he was aware that I had accomplished much work in a little time.

The next morning, the old cart was loaded with shingles for town. I put Ellen in it and sent her to her grandmother. Mr. Flint said I should have asked his permission. I told him the child was sick and needed attention that I didn’t have time to give. He let it go, as he knew I had completed a lot of work in a short time.

I had been three weeks on the plantation, when I planned a visit home. It must be at night, after every body was in bed. I was six miles from town, and the road was very dreary. I was to go with a young man, who, I knew, often stole to town to see his mother. One night, when all was quiet, we started. Fear gave speed to our steps, and we were not long in performing the journey. I arrived at my grandmother’s. Her bed room was on the first floor, and the window was open, the weather being warm. I spoke to her and she awoke. She let me in and closed the window, lest some late passer-by should see me. A light was brought, and the whole household gathered round me, some smiling and some crying. I went to look at my children, and thanked God for their happy sleep. The tears fell as I leaned over them. As I moved to leave, Benny stirred. I turned back, and whispered, “Mother is here.” After digging at his eyes with his little fist, they opened, and he sat up in bed, looking at me curiously. Having satisfied himself that it was I, he exclaimed, “O mother! you ain’t dead, are you? They didn’t cut off your head at the plantation, did they?”

I had been on the plantation for three weeks when I planned to visit home. It had to be at night, after everyone was in bed. I was six miles from town, and the road was pretty gloomy. I was going to go with a young guy who I knew often snuck into town to see his mom. One night, when everything was quiet, we set off. Fear pushed us to walk faster, and we didn't take long to make the trip. I arrived at my grandmother’s. Her bedroom was on the first floor, and the window was open because it was warm. I spoke to her, and she woke up. She let me in and closed the window so that a late passerby wouldn’t see me. A light was brought in, and the whole household gathered around me, some smiling and some crying. I went to check on my kids and thanked God for their peaceful sleep. Tears fell as I leaned over them. As I was about to leave, Benny stirred. I turned back and whispered, “Mommy is here.” After rubbing his eyes with his little fist, they opened, and he sat up in bed, looking at me with curiosity. Once he was sure it was me, he exclaimed, “Oh mom! You’re not dead, are you? They didn’t cut off your head at the plantation, did they?”

My time was up too soon, and my guide was waiting for me. I laid Benny back in his bed, and dried his tears by a promise to come again soon. Rapidly we retraced our steps back to the plantation. About half way we were met by a company of four patrols. Luckily we heard their horse’s hoofs before they came in sight, and we had time to hide behind a large tree. They passed, hallooing and shouting in a manner that indicated a recent carousal. How thankful we were that they had not their dogs with them! We hastened our footsteps, and when we arrived on the plantation we heard the sound of the hand-mill. The slaves were grinding their corn. We were safely in the house before the horn summoned them to their labor. I divided my little parcel of food with my guide, knowing that he had lost the chance of grinding his corn, and must toil all day in the field.

My time was up too soon, and my guide was waiting for me. I laid Benny back in his bed and dried his tears with a promise to come again soon. We quickly retraced our steps back to the plantation. About halfway there, we were met by a group of four patrols. Luckily, we heard their horses’ hooves before they came into view, giving us time to hide behind a large tree. They passed by, yelling and shouting in a way that suggested they had been partying recently. How grateful we were that they didn’t have their dogs with them! We picked up our pace, and when we got to the plantation, we heard the sound of the hand-mill. The slaves were grinding their corn. We got inside the house just before the horn called them to work. I shared my small food supply with my guide, knowing he had missed the chance to grind his corn and would have to work all day in the field.

Mr. Flint often took an inspection of the house, to see that no one was idle. The entire management of the work was trusted to me, because he knew nothing about it; and rather than hire a superintendent he contented himself with my arrangements. He had often urged upon his father the necessity of having me at the plantation to take charge of his affairs, and make clothes for the slaves; but the old man knew him too well to consent to that arrangement.

Mr. Flint often checked in on the house to make sure no one was slacking off. He left the entire management of the work to me since he didn’t know much about it; instead of hiring a supervisor, he was satisfied with my plans. He had frequently insisted to his father that I should be at the plantation to oversee his business and make clothes for the slaves, but the old man knew him well enough not to agree to that arrangement.

When I had been working a month at the plantation, the great aunt of Mr. Flint came to make him a visit. This was the good old lady who paid fifty dollars for my grandmother, for the purpose of making her free, when she stood on the auction block. My grandmother loved this old lady, whom we all called Miss Fanny. She often came to take tea with us. On such occasions the table was spread with a snow-white cloth, and the china cups and silver spoons were taken from the old-fashioned buffet. There were hot muffins, tea rusks, and delicious sweetmeats. My grandmother kept two cows, and the fresh cream was Miss Fanny’s delight. She invariably declared that it was the best in town. The old ladies had cosey times together. They would work and chat, and sometimes, while talking over old times, their spectacles would get dim with tears, and would have to be taken off and wiped. When Miss Fanny bade us good by, her bag was filled with grandmother’s best cakes, and she was urged to come again soon.

When I had been working a month at the plantation, Mr. Flint's great aunt came to visit him. This was the kind old lady who paid fifty dollars for my grandmother to set her free when she was being auctioned off. My grandmother adored this lady, whom we all called Miss Fanny. She often came to have tea with us. On those occasions, the table was covered with a crisp white cloth, and we used the china cups and silver spoons from the old-fashioned sideboard. There were warm muffins, tea rusks, and delicious sweets. My grandmother had two cows, and the fresh cream was Miss Fanny’s favorite. She always insisted it was the best in town. The two old ladies enjoyed their time together. They would work and chat, and sometimes, reminiscing about the past, their glasses would get foggy with tears and they would have to take them off to wipe them. When Miss Fanny said goodbye, her bag was filled with my grandmother’s best cakes, and we encouraged her to come back soon.

There had been a time when Dr. Flint’s wife came to take tea with us, and when her children were also sent to have a feast of “Aunt Marthy’s” nice cooking. But after I became an object of her jealousy and spite, she was angry with grandmother for giving a shelter to me and my children. She would not even speak to her in the street. This wounded my grandmother’s feelings, for she could not retain ill will against the woman whom she had nourished with her milk when a babe. The doctor’s wife would gladly have prevented our intercourse with Miss Fanny if she could have done it, but fortunately she was not dependent on the bounty of the Flints. She had enough to be independent; and that is more than can ever be gained from charity, however lavish it may be.

There was a time when Dr. Flint’s wife would come over for tea, and she would send her kids to enjoy “Aunt Marthy’s” delicious cooking. But once I became the target of her jealousy and resentment, she got upset with my grandmother for giving me and my kids a place to stay. She wouldn’t even talk to her on the street. This hurt my grandmother because she couldn’t hold a grudge against someone she had once nursed as a baby. The doctor’s wife would have loved to stop our connection with Miss Fanny if she could, but luckily, she wasn’t relying on the Flints’ generosity. She had enough to be self-sufficient, which is worth more than any charity, no matter how generous it may be.

Miss Fanny was endeared to me by many recollections, and I was rejoiced to see her at the plantation. The warmth of her large, loyal heart made the house seem pleasanter while she was in it. She staid a week, and I had many talks with her. She said her principal object in coming was to see how I was treated, and whether any thing could be done for me. She inquired whether she could help me in any way. I told her I believed not. She condoled with me in her own peculiar way; saying she wished that I and all my grandmother’s family were at rest in our graves, for not until then should she feel any peace about us. The good old soul did not dream that I was planning to bestow peace upon her, with regard to myself and my children; not by death, but by securing our freedom.

Miss Fanny was close to my heart because of so many memories, and I was glad to see her at the plantation. The warmth of her kind, loyal heart made the house feel cozier while she was there. She stayed for a week, and we had many conversations. She said her main reason for coming was to check on how I was being treated and see if there was anything she could do to help me. I told her I didn’t think there was. She expressed her sympathy in her own unique way, saying she wished that I and all my grandmother's family were peacefully resting in our graves because she wouldn’t feel at ease about us until then. The sweet old woman had no idea that I was planning to bring her peace regarding myself and my children—not through death, but by securing our freedom.

Again and again I had traversed those dreary twelve miles, to and from the town; and all the way, I was meditating upon some means of escape for myself and my children. My friends had made every effort that ingenuity could devise to effect our purchase, but all their plans had proved abortive. Dr. Flint was suspicious, and determined not to loosen his grasp upon us. I could have made my escape alone; but it was more for my helpless children than for myself that I longed for freedom. Though the boon would have been precious to me, above all price, I would not have taken it at the expense of leaving them in slavery. Every trial I endured, every sacrifice I made for their sakes, drew them closer to my heart, and gave me fresh courage to beat back the dark waves that rolled and rolled over me in a seemingly endless night of storms.

Again and again, I walked those dreary twelve miles, back and forth to town, always thinking about how to escape for myself and my children. My friends had tried everything they could think of to help us buy our freedom, but all their plans had failed. Dr. Flint was suspicious and determined not to let go of us. I could have escaped on my own, but it was my helpless children, more than myself, that I wanted to free. Even though that freedom would have been incredibly valuable to me, I wouldn’t have taken it if it meant leaving them in slavery. Every hardship I faced and every sacrifice I made for their sake brought us closer together and gave me the strength to fight against the overwhelming storms that constantly threatened me.

The six weeks were nearly completed, when Mr. Flint’s bride was expected to take possession of her new home. The arrangements were all completed, and Mr. Flint said I had done well. He expected to leave home on Saturday, and return with his bride the following Wednesday. After receiving various orders from him, I ventured to ask permission to spend Sunday in town. It was granted; for which favor I was thankful. It was the first I had ever asked of him, and I intended it should be the last. It needed more than one night to accomplish the project I had in view; but the whole of Sunday would give me an opportunity. I spent the Sabbath with my grandmother. A calmer, more beautiful day never came down out of heaven. To me it was a day of conflicting emotions. Perhaps it was the last day I should ever spend under that dear, old sheltering roof! Perhaps these were the last talks I should ever have with the faithful old friend of my whole life! Perhaps it was the last time I and my children should be together! Well, better so, I thought, than that they should be slaves. I knew the doom that awaited my fair baby in slavery, and I determined to save her from it, or perish in the attempt. I went to make this vow at the graves of my poor parents, in the burying-ground of the slaves. “There the wicked cease from troubling, and there the weary be at rest. There the prisoners rest together; they hear not the voice of the oppressor; the servant is free from his master.” I knelt by the graves of my parents, and thanked God, as I had often done before, that they had not lived to witness my trials, or to mourn over my sins. I had received my mother’s blessing when she died; and in many an hour of tribulation I had seemed to hear her voice, sometimes chiding me, sometimes whispering loving words into my wounded heart. I have shed many and bitter tears, to think that when I am gone from my children they cannot remember me with such entire satisfaction as I remembered my mother.

The six weeks were almost up, and Mr. Flint's wife was set to move into her new home. Everything was arranged, and Mr. Flint said I had done a good job. He planned to leave on Saturday and return with his bride the following Wednesday. After receiving various instructions from him, I took a chance and asked if I could spend Sunday in town. He agreed, and I was grateful for that. It was the first time I had ever asked him for something, and I intended for it to be the last. It would take more than one night to pull off what I had in mind, but having all of Sunday would give me a chance. I spent Sunday with my grandmother. It was a calm, beautiful day, like none I had seen before. For me, it was a day filled with mixed feelings. It might be the last day I would ever spend under that beloved, old roof! It could be the last conversations I would have with my faithful lifelong friend! Maybe it was the last time I’d be with my children! Well, I thought, it’s better this way than for them to be enslaved. I knew what fate awaited my sweet little girl in slavery, and I was determined to save her from it, even if it cost me my life. I went to make this vow at my parents' graves in the slave burial ground. “There the wicked cease from troubling, and there the weary are at rest. There the prisoners rest together; they don’t hear the voice of the oppressor; the servant is free from his master.” I knelt by my parents’ graves and thanked God, as I often had, that they didn’t have to witness my struggles or mourn my wrongdoings. I had received my mother’s blessing when she died, and in many moments of hardship, I felt like I could hear her voice—sometimes scolding me, sometimes softly comforting my aching heart. I have shed many bitter tears, thinking that when I’m gone, my children won’t remember me with the same complete satisfaction that I remember my mother.

The graveyard was in the woods, and twilight was coming on. Nothing broke the death-like stillness except the occasional twitter of a bird. My spirit was overawed by the solemnity of the scene. For more than ten years I had frequented this spot, but never had it seemed to me so sacred as now. A black stump, at the head of my mother’s grave, was all that remained of a tree my father had planted. His grave was marked by a small wooden board, bearing his name, the letters of which were nearly obliterated. I knelt down and kissed them, and poured forth a prayer to God for guidance and support in the perilous step I was about to take. As I passed the wreck of the old meeting house, where, before Nat Turner’s time, the slaves had been allowed to meet for worship, I seemed to hear my father’s voice come from it, bidding me not to tarry till I reached freedom or the grave. I rushed on with renovated hopes. My trust in God had been strengthened by that prayer among the graves.

The graveyard was in the woods, and twilight was setting in. The only sounds breaking the eerie silence were the occasional chirps of birds. I felt overwhelmed by the seriousness of the scene. I had visited this place for over ten years, but it had never felt so sacred as it did now. A black stump at the head of my mother’s grave was all that remained of a tree my father had planted. His grave was marked by a small wooden board with his name, though the letters were nearly faded. I knelt down and kissed it, then poured out a prayer to God for guidance and support in the risky step I was about to take. As I passed the ruins of the old meeting house, where, before Nat Turner’s time, the slaves were allowed to gather for worship, I thought I heard my father’s voice coming from it, urging me not to delay until I reached freedom or the grave. I rushed forward with renewed hope. My trust in God had been strengthened by that prayer among the graves.

My plan was to conceal myself at the house of a friend, and remain there a few weeks till the search was over. My hope was that the doctor would get discouraged, and, for fear of losing my value, and also of subsequently finding my children among the missing, he would consent to sell us; and I knew somebody would buy us. I had done all in my power to make my children comfortable during the time I expected to be separated from them. I was packing my things, when grandmother came into the room, and asked what I was doing. “I am putting my things in order,” I replied. I tried to look and speak cheerfully; but her watchful eye detected something beneath the surface. She drew me towards her, and asked me to sit down. She looked earnestly at me, and said, “Linda, do you want to kill your old grandmother? Do you mean to leave your little, helpless children? I am old now, and cannot do for your babies as I once did for you.”

My plan was to hide out at a friend's house for a few weeks until the search was over. I hoped the doctor would get discouraged, fearing he might lose my value and later find my kids among the missing, so he’d agree to sell us. I knew someone would buy us. I had done everything I could to make my kids comfortable while I expected to be apart from them. I was packing my things when my grandmother came into the room and asked what I was doing. “I’m organizing my things,” I replied. I tried to look and sound cheerful, but her keen eyes sensed something was off. She pulled me towards her and asked me to sit down. She looked at me intently and said, “Linda, do you want to kill your old grandmother? Are you really going to leave your little, helpless children? I’m old now and can’t care for your babies like I once did for you.”

I replied, that if I went away, perhaps their father would be able to secure their freedom.

I replied that if I left, maybe their dad would be able to get them their freedom.

“Ah, my child,” said she, “don’t trust too much to him. Stand by your own children, and suffer with them till death. Nobody respects a mother who forsakes her children; and if you leave them, you will never have a happy moment. If you go, you will make me miserable the short time I have to live. You would be taken and brought back, and your sufferings would be dreadful. Remember poor Benjamin. Do give it up, Linda. Try to bear a little longer. Things may turn out better than we expect.”

“Ah, my child,” she said, “don’t put too much trust in him. Stand by your own children, and suffer alongside them until the end. Nobody respects a mother who abandons her kids; if you leave them, you’ll never have a happy moment. If you go, you’ll make me miserable for the little time I have left. You would be taken and brought back, and your suffering would be terrible. Remember poor Benjamin. Please let it go, Linda. Try to hold on a little longer. Things might turn out better than we expect.”

My courage failed me, in view of the sorrow I should bring on that faithful, loving old heart. I promised that I would try longer, and that I would take nothing out of her house without her knowledge.

My courage let me down when I thought about the sadness I would cause that loyal, loving old heart. I promised that I would keep trying and that I wouldn’t take anything from her house without her knowing.

Whenever the children climbed on my knee, or laid their heads on my lap, she would say, “Poor little souls! what would you do without a mother? She don’t love you as I do.” And she would hug them to her own bosom, as if to reproach me for my want of affection; but she knew all the while that I loved them better than my life. I slept with her that night, and it was the last time. The memory of it haunted me for many a year.

Whenever the kids climbed on my lap or laid their heads on me, she would say, “Poor little souls! What would you do without a mom? She doesn't love you like I do.” And she would hold them close to her chest, as if to blame me for not showing enough affection; but she knew all along that I loved them more than anything. I slept with her that night, and it was the last time. The memory of it haunted me for many years.

On Monday I returned to the plantation, and busied myself with preparations for the important day. Wednesday came. It was a beautiful day, and the faces of the slaves were as bright as the sunshine. The poor creatures were merry. They were expecting little presents from the bride, and hoping for better times under her administration. I had no such hopes for them. I knew that the young wives of slaveholders often thought their authority and importance would be best established and maintained by cruelty; and what I had heard of young Mrs. Flint gave me no reason to expect that her rule over them would be less severe than that of the master and overseer. Truly, the colored race are the most cheerful and forgiving people on the face of the earth. That their masters sleep in safety is owing to their superabundance of heart; and yet they look upon their sufferings with less pity than they would bestow on those of a horse or a dog.

On Monday, I went back to the plantation and focused on getting ready for the big day. Wednesday arrived. It was a gorgeous day, and the slaves' faces were as bright as the sunshine. The poor souls were cheerful. They were looking forward to small gifts from the bride and hoping for better days ahead under her leadership. I didn’t share those hopes for them. I knew that young wives of slave owners often believed their authority would be best established and kept through cruelty; and what I’d heard about young Mrs. Flint gave me no reason to think her control over them would be any less harsh than that of the master and overseer. Truly, the colored race are the most cheerful and forgiving people on the planet. The reason their masters feel safe is because of their overwhelming kindness; yet they view their own suffering with less compassion than they would give to the pain of a horse or a dog.

I stood at the door with others to receive the bridegroom and bride. She was a handsome, delicate-looking girl, and her face flushed with emotion at sight of her new home. I thought it likely that visions of a happy future were rising before her. It made me sad; for I knew how soon clouds would come over her sunshine. She examined every part of the house, and told me she was delighted with the arrangements I had made. I was afraid old Mrs. Flint had tried to prejudice her against me, and I did my best to please her.

I stood at the door with others to welcome the bride and groom. She was a beautiful, delicate-looking girl, and her face lit up with emotion at the sight of her new home. I imagined she was envisioning a happy future ahead of her. It made me sad because I knew how quickly clouds would overshadow her happiness. She checked out every part of the house and told me she loved the arrangements I had made. I worried that old Mrs. Flint had tried to turn her against me, so I did my best to make her happy.

All passed off smoothly for me until dinner time arrived. I did not mind the embarrassment of waiting on a dinner party, for the first time in my life, half so much as I did the meeting with Dr. Flint and his wife, who would be among the guests. It was a mystery to me why Mrs. Flint had not made her appearance at the plantation during all the time I was putting the house in order. I had not met her, face to face, for five years, and I had no wish to see her now. She was a praying woman, and, doubtless, considered my present position a special answer to her prayers. Nothing could please her better than to see me humbled and trampled upon. I was just where she would have me—in the power of a hard, unprincipled master. She did not speak to me when she took her seat at table; but her satisfied, triumphant smile, when I handed her plate, was more eloquent than words. The old doctor was not so quiet in his demonstrations. He ordered me here and there, and spoke with peculiar emphasis when he said “your mistress.” I was drilled like a disgraced soldier. When all was over, and the last key turned, I sought my pillow, thankful that God had appointed a season of rest for the weary.

Everything went pretty smoothly for me until dinner time. I didn’t mind the awkwardness of serving at a dinner party for the first time in my life nearly as much as I did the thought of seeing Dr. Flint and his wife, who would be among the guests. I couldn’t understand why Mrs. Flint hadn’t shown up at the plantation while I was getting the house ready. I hadn't seen her in person for five years, and I really didn’t want to now. She was a devout woman and probably saw my current situation as a direct answer to her prayers. Nothing would make her happier than to see me humiliated and oppressed. I was exactly where she wanted me—under the control of a cruel, unscrupulous master. She didn’t say a word to me when she sat down at the table, but the satisfied, triumphant smile she gave me when I served her plate spoke volumes. The old doctor was more vocal about his authority. He barked orders at me and emphasized the word “your mistress” with a special tone. I felt like a disgraced soldier being drilled. When it was all over and the last key had been turned, I went to bed, grateful that God had set aside a time for the weary to rest.

The next day my new mistress began her housekeeping. I was not exactly appointed maid of all work; but I was to do whatever I was told. Monday evening came. It was always a busy time. On that night the slaves received their weekly allowance of food. Three pounds of meat, a peck of corn, and perhaps a dozen herring were allowed to each man. Women received a pound and a half of meat, a peck of corn, and the same number of herring. Children over twelve years old had half the allowance of the women. The meat was cut and weighed by the foreman of the field hands, and piled on planks before the meat house. Then the second foreman went behind the building, and when the first foreman called out, “Who takes this piece of meat?” he answered by calling somebody’s name. This method was resorted to as a means of preventing partiality in distributing the meat. The young mistress came out to see how things were done on her plantation, and she soon gave a specimen of her character. Among those in waiting for their allowance was a very old slave, who had faithfully served the Flint family through three generations. When he hobbled up to get his bit of meat, the mistress said he was too old to have any allowance; that when niggers were too old to work, they ought to be fed on grass. Poor old man! He suffered much before he found rest in the grave.

The next day, my new mistress started managing the household. I wasn't exactly the maid of all work, but I was expected to do whatever I was told. Monday evening arrived. It was always a hectic time. That night, the enslaved people received their weekly food rations. Each man got three pounds of meat, a peck of corn, and maybe a dozen herring. Women received a pound and a half of meat, a peck of corn, and the same number of herring. Children over twelve years old got half of what the women received. The meat was cut and weighed by the foreman of the field hands and stacked on planks in front of the meat house. Then the second foreman went behind the building, and when the first foreman called out, “Who takes this piece of meat?” he answered by calling someone's name. This method was used to prevent favoritism in distributing the meat. The young mistress came out to see how things were done on her plantation and quickly showed what kind of person she was. Among those waiting for their rations was a very old enslaved man who had faithfully served the Flint family for three generations. When he hobbled up to get his share of meat, the mistress said he was too old to receive anything; that when Black people got too old to work, they should be fed grass. Poor old man! He endured a lot before he finally found peace in the grave.

My mistress and I got along very well together. At the end of a week, old Mrs. Flint made us another visit, and was closeted a long time with her daughter-in-law. I had my suspicions what was the subject of the conference. The old doctor’s wife had been informed that I could leave the plantation on one condition, and she was very desirous to keep me there. If she had trusted me, as I deserved to be trusted by her, she would have had no fears of my accepting that condition. When she entered her carriage to return home, she said to young Mrs. Flint, “Don’t neglect to send for them as quick as possible.” My heart was on the watch all the time, and I at once concluded that she spoke of my children. The doctor came the next day, and as I entered the room to spread the tea table, I heard him say, “Don’t wait any longer. Send for them to-morrow.” I saw through the plan. They thought my children’s being there would fetter me to the spot, and that it was a good place to break us all in to abject submission to our lot as slaves. After the doctor left, a gentleman called, who had always manifested friendly feelings towards my grandmother and her family. Mr. Flint carried him over the plantation to show him the results of labor performed by men and women who were unpaid, miserably clothed, and half famished. The cotton crop was all they thought of. It was duly admired, and the gentleman returned with specimens to show his friends. I was ordered to carry water to wash his hands. As I did so, he said, “Linda, how do you like your new home?” I told him I liked it as well as I expected. He replied, “They don’t think you are contented, and to-morrow they are going to bring your children to be with you. I am sorry for you, Linda. I hope they will treat you kindly.” I hurried from the room, unable to thank him. My suspicions were correct. My children were to be brought to the plantation to be “broke in.”

My mistress and I got along really well. At the end of the week, old Mrs. Flint visited us again and spent a long time with her daughter-in-law. I had a feeling about what they were discussing. The old doctor’s wife had been told that I could leave the plantation under one condition, and she really wanted to keep me there. If she had trusted me like she should have, she wouldn’t have worried about me accepting that condition. As she got into her carriage to go home, she told young Mrs. Flint, “Don’t forget to send for them as soon as possible.” I was on high alert and immediately thought she was talking about my children. The next day, the doctor came, and as I walked in to set up the tea table, I heard him say, “Don’t wait any longer. Send for them tomorrow.” I understood their plan. They believed that having my children there would tie me to the place and that it was a good way to make us all submit completely to our lives as slaves. After the doctor left, a gentleman who had always shown kindness to my grandmother and her family came by. Mr. Flint took him around the plantation to show off the results of work done by people who were unpaid, poorly dressed, and starving. All they cared about was the cotton crop. It was admired, and the gentleman left with samples to show his friends. I was told to bring water to wash his hands. While I did, he asked, “Linda, how do you like your new home?” I said I liked it as much as I expected. He replied, “They don’t think you’re happy, and tomorrow they’re bringing your children to be with you. I’m sorry for you, Linda. I hope they’ll treat you well.” I rushed out of the room, unable to thank him. My suspicions were right. My children were being brought to the plantation to be “broken in.”

To this day I feel grateful to the gentleman who gave me this timely information. It nerved me to immediate action.

To this day, I’m grateful to the man who gave me this important information. It pushed me to take action right away.










XVII. The Flight.

Mr. Flint was hard pushed for house servants, and rather than lose me he had restrained his malice. I did my work faithfully, though not, of course, with a willing mind. They were evidently afraid I should leave them. Mr. Flint wished that I should sleep in the great house instead of the servants’ quarters. His wife agreed to the proposition, but said I mustn’t bring my bed into the house, because it would scatter feathers on her carpet. I knew when I went there that they would never think of such a thing as furnishing a bed of any kind for me and my little one. I therefore carried my own bed, and now I was forbidden to use it. I did as I was ordered. But now that I was certain my children were to be put in their power, in order to give them a stronger hold on me, I resolved to leave them that night. I remembered the grief this step would bring upon my dear old grandmother; and nothing less than the freedom of my children would have induced me to disregard her advice. I went about my evening work with trembling steps. Mr. Flint twice called from his chamber door to inquire why the house was not locked up. I replied that I had not done my work. “You have had time enough to do it,” said he. “Take care how you answer me!”

Mr. Flint was in desperate need of household help, and rather than lose me, he kept his hostility in check. I did my work diligently, although not happily. They were clearly worried I would leave them. Mr. Flint wanted me to sleep in the main house instead of the staff quarters. His wife agreed, but said I couldn't bring my bed inside because it would leave feathers on her carpet. I knew that once I got there, they wouldn't think of providing any kind of bed for me and my little one. So, I brought my own bed, and now I was told I couldn't use it. I followed their orders. But now that I was sure my children would be put in their control to strengthen their hold on me, I decided to leave that night. I thought about the sadness this decision would cause my dear old grandmother; nothing less than the freedom of my children would make me ignore her advice. I went about my evening tasks with shaky steps. Mr. Flint called from his bedroom twice to ask why the house wasn't locked up. I said I hadn't finished my work. “You've had enough time to do it,” he said. “Watch how you answer me!”

I shut all the windows, locked all the doors, and went up to the third story, to wait till midnight. How long those hours seemed, and how fervently I prayed that God would not forsake me in this hour of utmost need! I was about to risk every thing on the throw of a die; and if I failed, O what would become of me and my poor children? They would be made to suffer for my fault.

I closed all the windows, locked all the doors, and went up to the third floor to wait until midnight. Those hours dragged on so slowly, and I prayed desperately that God wouldn't abandon me in this moment of greatest need! I was about to gamble everything on a chance; and if I failed, oh, what would happen to me and my poor children? They would have to suffer because of my mistake.

At half past twelve I stole softly down stairs. I stopped on the second floor, thinking I heard a noise. I felt my way down into the parlor, and looked out of the window. The night was so intensely dark that I could see nothing. I raised the window very softly and jumped out. Large drops of rain were falling, and the darkness bewildered me. I dropped on my knees, and breathed a short prayer to God for guidance and protection. I groped my way to the road, and rushed towards the town with almost lightning speed. I arrived at my grandmother’s house, but dared not see her. She would say, “Linda, you are killing me;” and I knew that would unnerve me. I tapped softly at the window of a room, occupied by a woman, who had lived in the house several years. I knew she was a faithful friend, and could be trusted with my secret. I tapped several times before she heard me. At last she raised the window, and I whispered, “Sally, I have run away. Let me in, quick.” She opened the door softly, and said in low tones, “For God’s sake, don’t. Your grandmother is trying to buy you and de chillern. Mr. Sands was here last week. He tole her he was going away on business, but he wanted her to go ahead about buying you and de chillern, and he would help her all he could. Don’t run away, Linda. Your grandmother is all bowed down wid trouble now.”

At twelve-thirty, I quietly made my way downstairs. I paused on the second floor, thinking I heard a noise. I carefully walked down to the parlor and peeked out the window. The night was so pitch black that I couldn’t see a thing. I quietly raised the window and jumped out. Large raindrops were falling, and the darkness disoriented me. I dropped to my knees and said a quick prayer to God for guidance and protection. I felt my way to the road and sprinted towards town with almost lightning speed. I reached my grandmother’s house but didn’t have the courage to see her. She would say, “Linda, you’re killing me,” and I knew that would shake me. I gently tapped on the window of a room occupied by a woman who had lived there for several years. I knew she was a loyal friend and could keep my secret. I knocked several times before she finally heard me. Eventually, she opened the window, and I whispered, “Sally, I’ve run away. Let me in, quick.” She softly opened the door and said in a low voice, “For God’s sake, don’t. Your grandmother is trying to buy you and the children. Mr. Sands was here last week. He told her he was going away on business, but he wanted her to go ahead with buying you and the children, and he would help her as much as he could. Don’t run away, Linda. Your grandmother is really weighed down with trouble right now.”

I replied, “Sally, they are going to carry my children to the plantation to-morrow; and they will never sell them to any body so long as they have me in their power. Now, would you advise me to go back?”

I responded, “Sally, they’re going to take my kids to the plantation tomorrow; and they won’t sell them to anyone as long as they have me under their control. So, do you think I should go back?”

“No, chile, no,” answered she. “When dey finds you is gone, dey won’t want de plague ob de chillern; but where is you going to hide? Dey knows ebery inch ob dis house.”

“No, child, no,” she replied. “When they find out you’re gone, they won’t want the trouble of the kids; but where are you going to hide? They know every inch of this house.”

I told her I had a hiding-place, and that was all it was best for her to know. I asked her to go into my room as soon as it was light, and take all my clothes out of my trunk, and pack them in hers; for I knew Mr. Flint and the constable would be there early to search my room. I feared the sight of my children would be too much for my full heart; but I could not go out into the uncertain future without one last look. I bent over the bed where lay my little Benny and baby Ellen. Poor little ones! fatherless and motherless! Memories of their father came over me. He wanted to be kind to them; but they were not all to him, as they were to my womanly heart. I knelt and prayed for the innocent little sleepers. I kissed them lightly, and turned away.

I told her I had a hiding place, and that was really all she needed to know. I asked her to go into my room as soon as it was light and take all my clothes out of my trunk and pack them in hers, because I knew Mr. Flint and the cop would be there early to search my room. I worried that seeing my kids would be too much for me, but I couldn’t face the uncertain future without one last look. I leaned over the bed where my little Benny and baby Ellen were sleeping. Poor little ones! Without a father and a mother! Memories of their dad flooded my mind. He wanted to be good to them, but they didn’t mean as much to him as they did to my tender heart. I knelt and prayed for the innocent little sleepers. I kissed them softly and turned away.

As I was about to open the street door, Sally laid her hand on my shoulder, and said, “Linda, is you gwine all alone? Let me call your uncle.”

As I was about to open the front door, Sally placed her hand on my shoulder and said, “Linda, are you going out all alone? Let me call your uncle.”

“No, Sally,” I replied, “I want no one to be brought into trouble on my account.”

“No, Sally,” I replied, “I don’t want anyone to get into trouble because of me.”

I went forth into the darkness and rain. I ran on till I came to the house of the friend who was to conceal me.

I stepped out into the dark and rain. I ran until I reached the house of the friend who was going to hide me.

Early the next morning Mr. Flint was at my grandmother’s inquiring for me. She told him she had not seen me, and supposed I was at the plantation. He watched her face narrowly, and said, “Don’t you know any thing about her running off?” She assured him that she did not. He went on to say, “Last night she ran off without the least provocation. We had treated her very kindly. My wife liked her. She will soon be found and brought back. Are her children with you?” When told that they were, he said, “I am very glad to hear that. If they are here, she cannot be far off. If I find out that any of my niggers have had any thing to do with this damned business, I’ll give ’em five hundred lashes.” As he started to go to his father’s, he turned round and added, persuasively, “Let her be brought back, and she shall have her children to live with her.”

Early the next morning, Mr. Flint was at my grandmother’s asking for me. She told him she hadn’t seen me and figured I was at the plantation. He watched her closely and said, “Don’t you know anything about her running away?” She assured him she didn’t. He continued, “Last night she took off without any reason. We treated her very kindly. My wife liked her. She’ll be found and brought back soon. Are her kids with you?” When she confirmed they were, he replied, “I’m really glad to hear that. If they’re here, she can’t be too far away. If I find out that any of my slaves had anything to do with this terrible situation, I’ll give them five hundred lashes.” As he was about to head to his father’s place, he turned around and added, “Bring her back, and she can have her kids with her.”

The tidings made the old doctor rave and storm at a furious rate. It was a busy day for them. My grandmother’s house was searched from top to bottom. As my trunk was empty, they concluded I had taken my clothes with me. Before ten o’clock every vessel northward bound was thoroughly examined, and the law against harboring fugitives was read to all on board. At night a watch was set over the town. Knowing how distressed my grandmother would be, I wanted to send her a message; but it could not be done. Every one who went in or out of her house was closely watched. The doctor said he would take my children, unless she became responsible for them; which of course she willingly did. The next day was spent in searching. Before night, the following advertisement was posted at every corner, and in every public place for miles round:—

The news made the old doctor go wild and lose his temper. It was a hectic day for them. My grandmother’s house was searched from top to bottom. Since my trunk was empty, they figured I had taken my clothes with me. By ten o'clock, every vessel heading north was thoroughly checked, and the law against harboring fugitives was read to everyone on board. At night, a watch was set over the town. Knowing how upset my grandmother would be, I wanted to send her a message, but it couldn't be done. Everyone who went in or out of her house was closely monitored. The doctor said he would take my children unless she agreed to be responsible for them, which she gladly did. The next day was spent searching. Before nightfall, the following advertisement was posted at every corner and in every public place for miles around:—

$300 Reward! Ran away from the subscriber, an intelligent, bright, mulatto girl, named Linda, 21 years of age. Five feet four inches high. Dark eyes, and black hair inclined to curl; but it can be made straight. Has a decayed spot on a front tooth. She can read and write, and in all probability will try to get to the Free States. All persons are forbidden, under penalty of the law, to harbor or employ said slave. $150 will be given to whoever takes her in the state, and $300 if taken out of the state and delivered to me, or lodged in jail.

$300 Reward! A smart, bright, mixed-race girl named Linda has run away from the subscriber. She is 21 years old, five feet four inches tall, with dark eyes and black hair that has a slight curl but can be straightened. She has a decayed spot on a front tooth. She can read and write, and it's very likely she'll try to escape to the Free States. Anyone who shelters or employs this individual will face legal consequences. A reward of $150 will be offered for her capture within the state, and $300 if she is taken out of the state and returned to me or placed in jail.

Dr. Flint.”

Dr. Flint.










XVIII. Months Of Peril.

The search for me was kept up with more perseverance than I had anticipated. I began to think that escape was impossible. I was in great anxiety lest I should implicate the friend who harbored me. I knew the consequences would be frightful; and much as I dreaded being caught, even that seemed better than causing an innocent person to suffer for kindness to me. A week had passed in terrible suspense, when my pursuers came into such close vicinity that I concluded they had tracked me to my hiding-place. I flew out of the house, and concealed myself in a thicket of bushes. There I remained in an agony of fear for two hours. Suddenly, a reptile of some kind seized my leg. In my fright, I struck a blow which loosened its hold, but I could not tell whether I had killed it; it was so dark, I could not see what it was; I only knew it was something cold and slimy. The pain I felt soon indicated that the bite was poisonous. I was compelled to leave my place of concealment, and I groped my way back into the house. The pain had become intense, and my friend was startled by my look of anguish. I asked her to prepare a poultice of warm ashes and vinegar, and I applied it to my leg, which was already much swollen. The application gave me some relief, but the swelling did not abate. The dread of being disabled was greater than the physical pain I endured. My friend asked an old woman, who doctored among the slaves, what was good for the bite of a snake or a lizard. She told her to steep a dozen coppers in vinegar, over night, and apply the cankered vinegar to the inflamed part.1

The search for me continued with more determination than I had expected. I started to think that escape was impossible. I was really anxious about implicating the friend who was hiding me. I knew the consequences would be terrible; and as much as I dreaded being caught, that seemed better than causing an innocent person to suffer for trying to help me. A week passed in intense suspense when my pursuers got so close that I figured they had tracked me to my hiding spot. I ran out of the house and hid in a bushy thicket. I stayed there for two hours in a state of panic. Suddenly, some kind of reptile bit my leg. In my fear, I hit it, which made it let go, but I couldn’t tell if I had killed it; it was too dark to see what it was, only that it was cold and slimy. The pain quickly indicated that the bite was poisonous. I had to leave my hiding place and made my way back into the house. The pain had intensified, and my friend was shocked by the look of agony on my face. I asked her to make a poultice of warm ashes and vinegar, which I applied to my leg, already swelling significantly. The poultice provided some relief, but the swelling didn’t go down. The fear of being incapacitated was worse than the physical pain I felt. My friend asked an old woman who treated the slaves what was good for the bite of a snake or a lizard. She advised her to soak a dozen coppers in vinegar overnight and apply the soiled vinegar to the inflamed area.1


1 The poison of a snake is a powerful acid, and is counteracted by powerful alkalies, such as potash, ammonia, &c. The Indians are accustomed to apply wet ashes, or plunge the limb into strong lie. White men, employed to lay out railroads in snaky places, often carry ammonia with them as an antidote.—Editor.

I had succeeded in cautiously conveying some messages to my relatives. They were harshly threatened, and despairing of my having a chance to escape, they advised me to return to my master, ask his forgiveness, and let him make an example of me. But such counsel had no influence with me. When I started upon this hazardous undertaking, I had resolved that, come what would, there should be no turning back. “Give me liberty, or give me death,” was my motto. When my friend contrived to make known to my relatives the painful situation I had been in for twenty-four hours, they said no more about my going back to my master. Something must be done, and that speedily; but where to turn for help, they knew not. God in his mercy raised up “a friend in need.”

I had managed to cautiously share some messages with my relatives. They were seriously threatened, and fearing that I had no chance to escape, they suggested I go back to my master, ask for his forgiveness, and let him punish me as an example. But that advice didn’t sway me. When I embarked on this risky endeavor, I had made up my mind that there would be no turning back, no matter what happened. “Give me liberty, or give me death,” was my motto. When my friend managed to let my relatives know about the difficult situation I had been in for twenty-four hours, they stopped urging me to return to my master. Something needed to be done quickly, but they didn’t know where to turn for help. Thankfully, God in His mercy raised up “a friend in need.”

Among the ladies who were acquainted with my grandmother, was one who had known her from childhood, and always been very friendly to her. She had also known my mother and her children, and felt interested for them. At this crisis of affairs she called to see my grandmother, as she not unfrequently did. She observed the sad and troubled expression of her face, and asked if she knew where Linda was, and whether she was safe. My grandmother shook her head, without answering. “Come, Aunt Martha,” said the kind lady, “tell me all about it. Perhaps I can do something to help you.” The husband of this lady held many slaves, and bought and sold slaves. She also held a number in her own name; but she treated them kindly, and would never allow any of them to be sold. She was unlike the majority of slaveholders’ wives. My grandmother looked earnestly at her. Something in the expression of her face said “Trust me!” and she did trust her. She listened attentively to the details of my story, and sat thinking for a while. At last she said, “Aunt Martha, I pity you both. If you think there is any chance of Linda’s getting to the Free States, I will conceal her for a time. But first you must solemnly promise that my name shall never be mentioned. If such a thing should become known, it would ruin me and my family. No one in my house must know of it, except the cook. She is so faithful that I would trust my own life with her; and I know she likes Linda. It is a great risk; but I trust no harm will come of it. Get word to Linda to be ready as soon as it is dark, before the patrols are out. I will send the housemaids on errands, and Betty shall go to meet Linda.” The place where we were to meet was designated and agreed upon. My grandmother was unable to thank the lady for this noble deed; overcome by her emotions, she sank on her knees and sobbed like a child.

Among the women who knew my grandmother was one who had been friends with her since childhood. She also knew my mother and her children, and cared about them. During this difficult time, she came to visit my grandmother, as she often did. She noticed the sad and troubled look on her face and asked if she knew where Linda was and if she was safe. My grandmother shook her head without responding. “Come on, Aunt Martha,” said the kind lady, “tell me everything. Maybe I can help you.” This lady’s husband owned many slaves and bought and sold them. She also owned a few herself, but she treated them well and would never allow any to be sold. She was different from most wives of slaveholders. My grandmother looked at her intently. Something in her expression said, “Trust me!” and she did trust her. She listened closely to the details of my story and sat in thought for a while. Finally, she said, “Aunt Martha, I feel for both of you. If you think there's any chance of Linda getting to the Free States, I’ll hide her for a while. But first, you must promise me that my name will never be mentioned. If this ever gets out, it would ruin me and my family. No one in my house can know about this except the cook. She's so loyal that I’d trust my life with her, and I know she cares for Linda. It’s a big risk, but I hope nothing bad will happen. Let Linda know to be ready as soon as it’s dark, before the patrols start. I’ll send the housemaids on errands, and Betty will go to meet Linda.” The place where we were to meet was decided and agreed upon. My grandmother couldn’t find the words to thank the lady for this brave act; overwhelmed with emotion, she fell to her knees and cried like a child.

I received a message to leave my friend’s house at such an hour, and go to a certain place where a friend would be waiting for me. As a matter of prudence no names were mentioned. I had no means of conjecturing who I was to meet, or where I was going. I did not like to move thus blindfolded, but I had no choice. It would not do for me to remain where I was. I disguised myself, summoned up courage to meet the worst, and went to the appointed place. My friend Betty was there; she was the last person I expected to see. We hurried along in silence. The pain in my leg was so intense that it seemed as if I should drop; but fear gave me strength. We reached the house and entered unobserved. Her first words were: “Honey, now you is safe. Dem devils ain’t coming to search dis house. When I get you into missis’ safe place, I will bring some nice hot supper. I specs you need it after all dis skeering.” Betty’s vocation led her to think eating the most important thing in life. She did not realize that my heart was too full for me to care much about supper.

I got a message telling me to leave my friend's house at a specific time and head to a certain location where a friend would be waiting for me. Out of caution, no names were mentioned. I had no idea who I was going to meet or where I was headed. I didn't like moving around blind like this, but I had no other choice. Staying where I was wasn't an option. I put on a disguise, gathered my courage to face whatever was coming, and headed to the meeting place. My friend Betty was there, and she was the last person I expected to see. We moved quickly in silence. The pain in my leg was so intense that I felt like I might collapse, but fear kept me going. We arrived at the house and slipped in unnoticed. Her first words were, “Honey, now you're safe. Those guys aren’t coming to search this house. When I get you into the missis’ safe place, I’ll bring some nice hot supper. I bet you need it after all this scary stuff.” Betty’s job made her think that eating was the most important thing in life. She didn't realize that my heart was too full for me to care much about dinner.

The mistress came to meet us, and led me up stairs to a small room over her own sleeping apartment. “You will be safe here, Linda,” said she; “I keep this room to store away things that are out of use. The girls are not accustomed to be sent to it, and they will not suspect any thing unless they hear some noise. I always keep it locked, and Betty shall take care of the key. But you must be very careful, for my sake as well as your own; and you must never tell my secret; for it would ruin me and my family. I will keep the girls busy in the morning, that Betty may have a chance to bring your breakfast; but it will not do for her to come to you again till night. I will come to see you sometimes. Keep up your courage. I hope this state of things will not last long.” Betty came with the “nice hot supper,” and the mistress hastened down stairs to keep things straight till she returned. How my heart overflowed with gratitude! Words choked in my throat; but I could have kissed the feet of my benefactress. For that deed of Christian womanhood, may God forever bless her!

The mistress came to meet us and took me upstairs to a small room above her own bedroom. “You’ll be safe here, Linda,” she said. “I use this room to store things that aren’t needed. The girls aren’t used to being sent here, so they won’t suspect anything unless they hear noise. I always keep it locked, and Betty will take care of the key. But you need to be very careful, for both our sakes, and you must never share my secret; it would ruin me and my family. I’ll keep the girls busy in the morning so that Betty can bring you breakfast, but she can’t come back to you until night. I’ll come to see you sometimes. Stay strong. I hope this won’t last long.” Betty brought the “nice hot supper,” and the mistress hurried downstairs to keep everything in order until she returned. My heart was overflowing with gratitude! I could barely find the words; I could have kissed the feet of my benefactress. For that act of kindness, may God bless her forever!

I went to sleep that night with the feeling that I was for the present the most fortunate slave in town. Morning came and filled my little cell with light. I thanked the heavenly Father for this safe retreat. Opposite my window was a pile of feather beds. On the top of these I could lie perfectly concealed, and command a view of the street through which Dr. Flint passed to his office. Anxious as I was, I felt a gleam of satisfaction when I saw him. Thus far I had outwitted him, and I triumphed over it. Who can blame slaves for being cunning? They are constantly compelled to resort to it. It is the only weapon of the weak and oppressed against the strength of their tyrants.

I went to sleep that night feeling like I was the luckiest slave in town. Morning came and filled my small room with light. I thanked God for this safe hiding place. Opposite my window was a pile of feather beds. I could lie on top of them completely hidden and see the street through which Dr. Flint walked to his office. As anxious as I was, I felt a rush of satisfaction when I saw him. So far, I had outsmarted him, and I felt triumphant. Who can blame slaves for being clever? They have to use their wits all the time. It's the only weapon the weak and oppressed have against the power of their oppressors.

I was daily hoping to hear that my master had sold my children; for I knew who was on the watch to buy them. But Dr. Flint cared even more for revenge than he did for money. My brother William, and the good aunt who had served in his family twenty years, and my little Benny, and Ellen, who was a little over two years old, were thrust into jail, as a means of compelling my relatives to give some information about me. He swore my grandmother should never see one of them again till I was brought back. They kept these facts from me for several days. When I heard that my little ones were in a loathsome jail, my first impulse was to go to them. I was encountering dangers for the sake of freeing them, and must I be the cause of their death? The thought was agonizing. My benefactress tried to soothe me by telling me that my aunt would take good care of the children while they remained in jail. But it added to my pain to think that the good old aunt, who had always been so kind to her sister’s orphan children, should be shut up in prison for no other crime than loving them. I suppose my friends feared a reckless movement on my part, knowing, as they did, that my life was bound up in my children. I received a note from my brother William. It was scarcely legible, and ran thus: “Wherever you are, dear sister, I beg of you not to come here. We are all much better off than you are. If you come, you will ruin us all. They would force you to tell where you had been, or they would kill you. Take the advice of your friends; if not for the sake of me and your children, at least for the sake of those you would ruin.”

I was constantly hoping to hear that my master had sold my children because I knew who was waiting to buy them. But Dr. Flint was more interested in revenge than making money. My brother William, the kind aunt who had worked for him for twenty years, my little Benny, and Ellen, who was just over two years old, were thrown in jail as a way to force my relatives to give him information about me. He swore that my grandmother would never see any of them again until I was brought back. They kept this from me for several days. When I found out that my little ones were stuck in a disgusting jail, my first instinct was to go to them. I was risking everything to free them, and I didn’t want to be the reason for their deaths. That thought was tormenting. My benefactress tried to comfort me, saying that my aunt would take good care of the kids while they were in jail. But it hurt me more to think that my kind old aunt, who had always been so good to her sister’s orphaned children, was locked up just for loving them. I guess my friends were worried I would make a reckless move, knowing my life was tied to my children. I got a note from my brother William. It was barely readable and said: “Wherever you are, dear sister, please don’t come here. We are all much better off than you are. If you come, you will ruin us all. They would force you to reveal where you’ve been, or they would kill you. Listen to your friends; if not for me and your children, then at least for those you would put at risk.”

Poor William! He also must suffer for being my brother. I took his advice and kept quiet. My aunt was taken out of jail at the end of a month, because Mrs. Flint could not spare her any longer. She was tired of being her own housekeeper. It was quite too fatiguing to order her dinner and eat it too. My children remained in jail, where brother William did all he could for their comfort. Betty went to see them sometimes, and brought me tidings. She was not permitted to enter the jail; but William would hold them up to the grated window while she chatted with them. When she repeated their prattle, and told me how they wanted to see their ma, my tears would flow. Old Betty would exclaim, “Lors, chile! what’s you crying ’bout? Dem young uns vil kill you dead. Don’t be so chick’n hearted! If you does, you vil nebber git thro’ dis world.”

Poor William! He also has to suffer for being my brother. I took his advice and stayed quiet. My aunt was released from jail after a month because Mrs. Flint couldn't keep her there any longer. She was tired of being her own housekeeper. It was way too exhausting to order her dinner and eat it too. My kids stayed in jail, where brother William did everything he could to make them comfortable. Betty went to visit them sometimes and brought me news. She wasn't allowed to go inside the jail, but William would hold them up to the barred window while she talked with them. When she repeated their chatter and told me how much they wanted to see their mom, I would tear up. Old Betty would exclaim, “Lord, child! What are you crying about? Those little ones will kill you dead. Don’t be so chicken-hearted! If you are, you’ll never get through this world.”

Good old soul! She had gone through the world childless. She had never had little ones to clasp their arms round her neck; she had never seen their soft eyes looking into hers; no sweet little voices had called her mother; she had never pressed her own infants to her heart, with the feeling that even in fetters there was something to live for. How could she realize my feelings? Betty’s husband loved children dearly, and wondered why God had denied them to him. He expressed great sorrow when he came to Betty with the tidings that Ellen had been taken out of jail and carried to Dr. Flint’s. She had the measles a short time before they carried her to jail, and the disease had left her eyes affected. The doctor had taken her home to attend to them. My children had always been afraid of the doctor and his wife. They had never been inside of their house. Poor little Ellen cried all day to be carried back to prison. The instincts of childhood are true. She knew she was loved in the jail. Her screams and sobs annoyed Mrs. Flint. Before night she called one of the slaves, and said, “Here, Bill, carry this brat back to the jail. I can’t stand her noise. If she would be quiet I should like to keep the little minx. She would make a handy waiting-maid for my daughter by and by. But if she staid here, with her white face, I suppose I should either kill her or spoil her. I hope the doctor will sell them as far as wind and water can carry them. As for their mother, her ladyship will find out yet what she gets by running away. She hasn’t so much feeling for her children as a cow has for its calf. If she had, she would have come back long ago, to get them out of jail, and save all this expense and trouble. The good-for-nothing hussy! When she is caught, she shall stay in jail, in irons, for one six months, and then be sold to a sugar plantation. I shall see her broke in yet. What do you stand there for, Bill? Why don’t you go off with the brat? Mind, now, that you don’t let any of the niggers speak to her in the street!”

Good old soul! She had lived her life without children. She had never had little ones to wrap their arms around her neck; she had never seen soft eyes looking into hers; no sweet little voices had called her mom; she had never held her own babies to her heart, with the feeling that even in chains, there was something to live for. How could she understand my feelings? Betty’s husband loved kids deeply and wondered why God had denied them to him. He was very upset when he came to Betty with the news that Ellen had been taken out of jail and brought to Dr. Flint’s. She had the measles a little while before being taken to jail, and the illness had left her eyes damaged. The doctor had taken her home to take care of them. My children had always been scared of the doctor and his wife. They had never been inside their house. Poor little Ellen cried all day to be taken back to prison. The instincts of childhood are real. She knew she was loved in jail. Her screams and cries bothered Mrs. Flint. By evening, she called one of the slaves and said, “Here, Bill, take this brat back to jail. I can’t stand her noise. If she would be quiet, I’d like to keep the little nuisance. She’d make a useful waiting maid for my daughter someday. But if she stays here, with her white face, I’ll either end up killing her or ruining her. I hope the doctor sells them as far away as possible. As for their mother, she’ll find out what she gets for running away. She doesn’t care for her kids as much as a cow cares for its calf. If she did, she would have come back a long time ago to get them out of jail and avoid all this expense and trouble. That good-for-nothing hussy! When she’s caught, she’ll stay in jail, in chains, for six months, and then be sold to a sugar plantation. I’ll see to it that she’s broken in. What are you standing there for, Bill? Why don’t you take the brat away? Just make sure none of the black people talk to her in the street!”

When these remarks were reported to me, I smiled at Mrs. Flint’s saying that she should either kill my child or spoil her. I thought to myself there was very little danger of the latter. I have always considered it as one of God’s special providences that Ellen screamed till she was carried back to jail.

When I heard these comments, I chuckled at Mrs. Flint’s claim that she would either kill my child or ruin her. I thought to myself that the chances of the latter happening were pretty slim. I’ve always viewed it as one of God’s unique blessings that Ellen screamed until she was taken back to jail.

That same night Dr. Flint was called to a patient, and did not return till near morning. Passing my grandmother’s, he saw a light in the house, and thought to himself, “Perhaps this has something to do with Linda.” He knocked, and the door was opened. “What calls you up so early?” said he. “I saw your light, and I thought I would just stop and tell you that I have found out where Linda is. I know where to put my hands on her, and I shall have her before twelve o’clock.” When he had turned away, my grandmother and my uncle looked anxiously at each other. They did not know whether or not it was merely one of the doctor’s tricks to frighten them. In their uncertainty, they thought it was best to have a message conveyed to my friend Betty. Unwilling to alarm her mistress, Betty resolved to dispose of me herself. She came to me, and told me to rise and dress quickly. We hurried down stairs, and across the yard, into the kitchen. She locked the door, and lifted up a plank in the floor. A buffalo skin and a bit of carpet were spread for me to lie on, and a quilt thrown over me. “Stay dar,” said she, “till I sees if dey know ’bout you. Dey say dey vil put thar hans on you afore twelve o’clock. If dey did know whar you are, dey won’t know now. Dey’ll be disapinted dis time. Dat’s all I got to say. If dey comes rummagin ’mong my tings, dey’ll get one bressed sarssin from dis ’ere nigger.” In my shallow bed I had but just room enough to bring my hands to my face to keep the dust out of my eyes; for Betty walked over me twenty times in an hour, passing from the dresser to the fireplace. When she was alone, I could hear her pronouncing anathemas over Dr. Flint and all his tribe, every now and then saying, with a chuckling laugh, “Dis nigger’s too cute for ’em dis time.” When the housemaids were about, she had sly ways of drawing them out, that I might hear what they would say. She would repeat stories she had heard about my being in this, or that, or the other place. To which they would answer, that I was not fool enough to be staying round there; that I was in Philadelphia or New York before this time. When all were abed and asleep, Betty raised the plank, and said, “Come out, chile; come out. Dey don’t know nottin ’bout you. ’Twas only white folks’ lies, to skeer de niggers.”

That same night, Dr. Flint was called to a patient and didn’t return until near morning. As he passed my grandmother’s house, he saw a light inside and thought, “Maybe this has something to do with Linda.” He knocked, and the door was opened. “What are you doing up so early?” he asked. “I saw your light and thought I’d stop by to tell you that I found out where Linda is. I know how to get to her, and I’ll have her before noon.” After he left, my grandmother and my uncle exchanged worried glances. They weren’t sure if it was just one of the doctor’s tricks to scare them. Unsure of what to do, they decided it was best to send a message to my friend Betty. Not wanting to alarm her mistress, Betty decided to handle it herself. She came to me and told me to get up and get dressed quickly. We rushed downstairs and across the yard into the kitchen. She locked the door and lifted a plank in the floor. A buffalo skin and a piece of carpet were laid out for me to lie on, with a quilt thrown over me. “Stay here,” she said, “until I see if they know about you. They say they’ll find you before noon. If they *did* know where you were, they won’t know *now*. They’ll be disappointed this time. That’s all I have to say. If they come rummaging through *my* things, they’ll get one blessed surprise from this here black.” In my cramped bed, I barely had enough room to cover my face to keep the dust out of my eyes because Betty walked over me twenty times in an hour, going from the dresser to the fireplace. When she was alone, I could hear her cursing Dr. Flint and all his people, occasionally laughing to herself, “This black’s too clever for them this time.” When the housemaids were around, she had sneaky ways of getting them to talk so I could hear what they’d say. She would repeat stories she’d heard about me being in different places. They would respond that I wasn’t foolish enough to hang around there; that I was already in Philadelphia or New York by this time. When everyone was in bed and asleep, Betty raised the plank and said, “Come out, child; come out. They don’t know anything about you. It was just white folks’ lies to scare the blacks.”

Some days after this adventure I had a much worse fright. As I sat very still in my retreat above stairs, cheerful visions floated through my mind. I thought Dr. Flint would soon get discouraged, and would be willing to sell my children, when he lost all hopes of making them the means of my discovery. I knew who was ready to buy them. Suddenly I heard a voice that chilled my blood. The sound was too familiar to me, it had been too dreadful, for me not to recognize at once my old master. He was in the house, and I at once concluded he had come to seize me. I looked round in terror. There was no way of escape. The voice receded. I supposed the constable was with him, and they were searching the house. In my alarm I did not forget the trouble I was bringing on my generous benefactress. It seemed as if I were born to bring sorrow on all who befriended me, and that was the bitterest drop in the bitter cup of my life. After a while I heard approaching footsteps; the key was turned in my door. I braced myself against the wall to keep from falling. I ventured to look up, and there stood my kind benefactress alone. I was too much overcome to speak, and sunk down upon the floor.

A few days after this ordeal, I experienced an even worse scare. As I sat quietly in my room upstairs, happy thoughts filled my mind. I figured that Dr. Flint would soon get disheartened and would be willing to sell my children once he realized they wouldn't help him find me. I knew who was ready to buy them. Suddenly, I heard a voice that made my blood run cold. It was all too familiar; it had been so terrifying that I recognized my old master immediately. He was in the house, and I quickly concluded he had come to capture me. I looked around in panic. There was no way to escape. The voice faded away. I assumed the constable was with him and that they were searching the place. In my fright, I didn't forget the trouble I was causing my generous benefactress. It felt like I was destined to bring sadness to everyone who tried to help me, and that was the hardest part of my already bitter life. After a while, I heard footsteps approaching; the key turned in my door. I braced myself against the wall to keep from collapsing. I dared to look up, and there was my kind benefactress standing alone. I was too overwhelmed to say anything and sank down onto the floor.

“I thought you would hear your master’s voice,” she said; “and knowing you would be terrified, I came to tell you there is nothing to fear. You may even indulge in a laugh at the old gentleman’s expense. He is so sure you are in New York, that he came to borrow five hundred dollars to go in pursuit of you. My sister had some money to loan on interest. He has obtained it, and proposes to start for New York to-night. So, for the present, you see you are safe. The doctor will merely lighten his pocket hunting after the bird he has left behind.”

“I thought you would hear your master’s voice,” she said, “and knowing you would be scared, I came to tell you there’s nothing to worry about. You can even have a laugh at the old man's expense. He’s so convinced that you’re in New York that he came to borrow five hundred dollars to look for you. My sister had some money available to lend with interest. He got it, and he plans to leave for New York tonight. So, for now, you can see that you’re safe. The doctor will just be losing his money searching for the person he left behind.”










XIX. The Children Sold.

The Doctor came back from New York, of course without accomplishing his purpose. He had expended considerable money, and was rather disheartened. My brother and the children had now been in jail two months, and that also was some expense. My friends thought it was a favorable time to work on his discouraged feelings. Mr. Sands sent a speculator to offer him nine hundred dollars for my brother William, and eight hundred for the two children. These were high prices, as slaves were then selling; but the offer was rejected. If it had been merely a question of money, the doctor would have sold any boy of Benny’s age for two hundred dollars; but he could not bear to give up the power of revenge. But he was hard pressed for money, and he revolved the matter in his mind. He knew that if he could keep Ellen till she was fifteen, he could sell her for a high price; but I presume he reflected that she might die, or might be stolen away. At all events, he came to the conclusion that he had better accept the slave-trader’s offer. Meeting him in the street, he inquired when he would leave town. “To-day, at ten o’clock,” he replied. “Ah, do you go so soon?” said the doctor; “I have been reflecting upon your proposition, and I have concluded to let you have the three negroes if you will say nineteen hundred dollars.” After some parley, the trader agreed to his terms. He wanted the bill of sale drawn up and signed immediately, as he had a great deal to attend to during the short time he remained in town. The doctor went to the jail and told William he would take him back into his service if he would promise to behave himself; but he replied that he would rather be sold. “And you shall be sold, you ungrateful rascal!” exclaimed the doctor. In less than an hour the money was paid, the papers were signed, sealed, and delivered, and my brother and children were in the hands of the trader.

The Doctor returned from New York, of course without achieving his goal. He had spent a significant amount of money and felt quite discouraged. My brother and the kids had now been in jail for two months, which was also costly. My friends thought it was a good time to work on his downcast mood. Mr. Sands sent a buyer to offer him nine hundred dollars for my brother William and eight hundred for the two kids. These were high prices compared to what slaves were selling for at the time, but the offer was turned down. If it had just been about money, the doctor would have sold any boy the age of Benny for two hundred dollars; but he couldn’t stand to let go of the chance for revenge. However, he was in a tight spot financially, and he pondered over the situation. He realized that if he could keep Ellen until she turned fifteen, he could sell her for a higher price; but I guess he thought about the possibility of her dying or getting stolen. In any case, he decided it would be best to accept the trader’s offer. When he met him on the street, he asked when he planned to leave town. “Today, at ten o’clock,” he replied. “Ah, are you leaving so soon?" said the doctor; “I have been considering your proposal, and I’ve decided to let you have the three black people if you can agree to nineteen hundred dollars.” After some negotiation, the trader accepted his terms. He wanted the bill of sale prepared and signed right away, as he had a lot to do during his brief time left in town. The doctor went to the jail and told William he would take him back into his service if he promised to behave; but William said he would prefer to be sold. “And you *will* be sold, you ungrateful rascal!” shouted the doctor. In less than an hour, the money was paid, the documents were signed, sealed, and delivered, and my brother and the children were in the trader’s possession.

It was a hurried transaction; and after it was over, the doctor’s characteristic caution returned. He went back to the speculator, and said, “Sir, I have come to lay you under obligations of a thousand dollars not to sell any of those negroes in this state.” “You come too late,” replied the trader; “our bargain is closed.” He had, in fact, already sold them to Mr. Sands, but he did not mention it. The doctor required him to put irons on “that rascal, Bill,” and to pass through the back streets when he took his gang out of town. The trader was privately instructed to concede to his wishes. My good old aunt went to the jail to bid the children good by, supposing them to be the speculator’s property, and that she should never see them again. As she held Benny in her lap, he said, “Aunt Nancy, I want to show you something.” He led her to the door and showed her a long row of marks, saying, “Uncle Will taught me to count. I have made a mark for every day I have been here, and it is sixty days. It is a long time; and the speculator is going to take me and Ellen away. He’s a bad man. It’s wrong for him to take grandmother’s children. I want to go to my mother.”

It was a rushed deal, and once it was over, the doctor’s typical caution kicked in again. He went back to the trader and said, “Sir, I need to ask you to promise me that you won’t sell any of those Black people in this state for a thousand dollars.” “You’re too late,” replied the trader; “we’ve already finalized our deal.” In reality, he had already sold them to Mr. Sands, but he didn’t mention that. The doctor insisted that he put handcuffs on “that troublemaker, Bill,” and take back streets when he moved his group out of town. The trader was privately told to comply with his requests. My good old aunt went to the jail to say goodbye to the children, thinking they were the trader’s property and that she’d never see them again. As she held Benny in her lap, he said, “Aunt Nancy, I want to show you something.” He led her to the door and pointed to a long row of marks, saying, “Uncle Will taught me how to count. I’ve made a mark for every day I’ve been here, and it’s sixty days. That’s a long time, and the trader is going to take me and Ellen away. He’s a bad man. It’s wrong for him to take my grandmother’s children. I want to go to my mother.”

My grandmother was told that the children would be restored to her, but she was requested to act as if they were really to be sent away. Accordingly, she made up a bundle of clothes and went to the jail. When she arrived, she found William handcuffed among the gang, and the children in the trader’s cart. The scene seemed too much like reality. She was afraid there might have been some deception or mistake. She fainted, and was carried home.

My grandmother was told that the kids would be returned to her, but she was asked to pretend as if they were actually being sent away. So, she packed a bag of clothes and went to the jail. When she got there, she found William handcuffed with the group, and the kids in the trader’s cart. The situation felt too real. She was worried there might have been some trick or mix-up. She fainted and was taken home.

When the wagon stopped at the hotel, several gentlemen came out and proposed to purchase William, but the trader refused their offers, without stating that he was already sold. And now came the trying hour for that drove of human beings, driven away like cattle, to be sold they knew not where. Husbands were torn from wives, parents from children, never to look upon each other again this side the grave. There was wringing of hands and cries of despair.

When the wagon pulled up at the hotel, several men stepped out and offered to buy William, but the trader declined their offers without mentioning that he was already sold. And now came the difficult moment for that group of people, herded together like cattle, to be sold without knowing where they were going. Husbands were separated from wives, parents from children, never to see each other again in this life. There were hands wringing and cries of anguish.

Dr. Flint had the supreme satisfaction of seeing the wagon leave town, and Mrs. Flint had the gratification of supposing that my children were going “as far as wind and water would carry them.” According to agreement, my uncle followed the wagon some miles, until they came to an old farm house. There the trader took the irons from William, and as he did so, he said, “You are a damned clever fellow. I should like to own you myself. Them gentlemen that wanted to buy you said you was a bright, honest chap, and I must git you a good home. I guess your old master will swear to-morrow, and call himself an old fool for selling the children. I reckon he’ll never git their mammy back agin. I expect she’s made tracks for the north. Good by, old boy. Remember, I have done you a good turn. You must thank me by coaxing all the pretty gals to go with me next fall. That’s going to be my last trip. This trading in niggers is a bad business for a fellow that’s got any heart. Move on, you fellows!” And the gang went on, God alone knows where.

Dr. Flint felt a great sense of satisfaction watching the wagon leave town, and Mrs. Flint was pleased to think that my children were going “as far as wind and water would take them.” According to the plan, my uncle followed the wagon for several miles until they reached an old farmhouse. There, the trader removed the shackles from William and remarked, “You’re a clever guy. I’d love to own you myself. Those gentlemen who wanted to buy you said you were a bright, honest fellow, and I want to get you a good home. I bet your old master will curse himself tomorrow, calling himself a fool for selling the kids. I doubt he’ll ever get their mother back. I expect she’s headed north. Goodbye, kid. Remember, I did you a favor. You can thank me by getting all the pretty girls to come with me next fall. That’ll be my last trip. This trade in people is a rough business for someone with a heart. Move along, guys!” And the group moved on, God knows where.

Much as I despise and detest the class of slave-traders, whom I regard as the vilest wretches on earth, I must do this man the justice to say that he seemed to have some feeling. He took a fancy to William in the jail, and wanted to buy him. When he heard the story of my children, he was willing to aid them in getting out of Dr. Flint’s power, even without charging the customary fee.

As much as I hate and loathe the group of slave traders, who I see as the most terrible people on earth, I have to give this man some credit for showing a little compassion. He liked William while he was in jail and wanted to buy him. When he heard the story about my children, he was willing to help them escape from Dr. Flint's control, even without asking for the usual payment.

My uncle procured a wagon and carried William and the children back to town. Great was the joy in my grandmother’s house! The curtains were closed, and the candles lighted. The happy grandmother cuddled the little ones to her bosom. They hugged her, and kissed her, and clapped their hands, and shouted. She knelt down and poured forth one of her heartfelt prayers of thanksgiving to God. The father was present for a while; and though such a “parental relation” as existed between him and my children takes slight hold of the hearts or consciences of slaveholders, it must be that he experienced some moments of pure joy in witnessing the happiness he had imparted.

My uncle got a wagon and took William and the kids back to town. There was so much joy in my grandmother's house! The curtains were drawn, and the candles were lit. The happy grandmother hugged the little ones to her chest. They embraced her, kissed her, clapped their hands, and cheered. She knelt down and offered one of her heartfelt prayers of gratitude to God. The father was present for a bit; and although the "parental connection" he had with my children hardly affects the feelings or morals of slaveholders, he must have felt some moments of pure joy seeing the happiness he had brought.

I had no share in the rejoicings of that evening. The events of the day had not come to my knowledge. And now I will tell you something that happened to me; though you will, perhaps, think it illustrates the superstition of slaves. I sat in my usual place on the floor near the window, where I could hear much that was said in the street without being seen. The family had retired for the night, and all was still. I sat there thinking of my children, when I heard a low strain of music. A band of serenaders were under the window, playing “Home, sweet home.” I listened till the sounds did not seem like music, but like the moaning of children. It seemed as if my heart would burst. I rose from my sitting posture, and knelt. A streak of moonlight was on the floor before me, and in the midst of it appeared the forms of my two children. They vanished; but I had seen them distinctly. Some will call it a dream, others a vision. I know not how to account for it, but it made a strong impression on my mind, and I felt certain something had happened to my little ones.

I didn’t join in the celebrations that evening. I hadn’t heard about the day’s events. Now, I’ll share something that happened to me; you might think it shows the superstition of slaves. I was sitting in my usual spot on the floor by the window, where I could listen to what was happening outside without being noticed. The family had gone to bed, and everything was quiet. I was thinking about my kids when I heard a soft tune. A group of serenaders was under the window, playing “Home, sweet home.” I listened until the music transformed into the sounds of children crying. It felt like my heart was going to break. I got up from where I was sitting and knelt down. A beam of moonlight illuminated the floor in front of me, and in the middle of it, I saw the shapes of my two children. They disappeared, but I saw them clearly. Some might say it was a dream, others a vision. I can’t explain it, but it left a strong impact on me, and I felt certain something had happened to my little ones.

I had not seen Betty since morning. Now I heard her softly turning the key. As soon as she entered, I clung to her, and begged her to let me know whether my children were dead, or whether they were sold; for I had seen their spirits in my room, and I was sure something had happened to them. “Lor, chile,” said she, putting her arms round me, “you’s got de high-sterics. I’ll sleep wid you to-night, ’cause you’ll make a noise, and ruin missis. Something has stirred you up mightily. When you is done cryin, I’ll talk wid you. De chillern is well, and mighty happy. I seed ’em myself. Does dat satisfy you? Dar, chile, be still! Somebody vill hear you.” I tried to obey her. She lay down, and was soon sound asleep; but no sleep would come to my eyelids.

I hadn't seen Betty since morning. Now I heard her gently turning the key. As soon as she came in, I grabbed onto her and begged her to tell me whether my children were dead or sold; I had seen their spirits in my room, and I was sure something had happened to them. “Oh dear,” she said, wrapping her arms around me, “you're just in a panic. I’ll sleep with you tonight because you’ll make noise and wake up the mistress. Something has really upset you. When you’re done crying, I’ll talk to you. The kids are fine and really happy. I saw them myself. Does that make you feel better? Now, please be quiet! Someone will hear you.” I tried to follow her advice. She lay down and quickly fell asleep, but I couldn’t close my eyes.

At dawn, Betty was up and off to the kitchen. The hours passed on, and the vision of the night kept constantly recurring to my thoughts. After a while I heard the voices of two women in the entry. In one of them I recognized the housemaid. The other said to her, “Did you know Linda Brent’s children was sold to the speculator yesterday. They say ole massa Flint was mighty glad to see ’em drove out of town; but they say they’ve come back agin. I ’spect it’s all their daddy’s doings. They say he’s bought William too. Lor! how it will take hold of ole massa Flint! I’m going roun’ to aunt Marthy’s to see ’bout it.”

At dawn, Betty got up and headed to the kitchen. Time went by, and the events of the night kept running through my mind. After a while, I heard the voices of two women in the hallway. I recognized one as the housemaid. The other one said to her, “Did you hear that Linda Brent’s kids were sold to the speculator yesterday? They say old man Flint was really happy to see them driven out of town, but now they say they’re back again. I guess it’s all because of their dad. They say he bought William too. Wow! That’s going to hit old man Flint hard! I’m going to go over to Aunt Marthy’s to find out more about it.”

I bit my lips till the blood came to keep from crying out. Were my children with their grandmother, or had the speculator carried them off? The suspense was dreadful. Would Betty never come, and tell me the truth about it? At last she came, and I eagerly repeated what I had overheard. Her face was one broad, bright smile. “Lor, you foolish ting!” said she. “I’se gwine to tell you all ’bout it. De gals is eating thar breakfast, and missus tole me to let her tell you; but, poor creeter! t’aint right to keep you waitin’, and I’se gwine to tell you. Brudder, chillern, all is bought by de daddy! I’se laugh more dan nuff, tinking ’bout ole massa Flint. Lor, how he vill swar! He’s got ketched dis time, any how; but I must be getting out o’ dis, or dem gals vill come and ketch me.”

I bit my lips until they bled to hold back my cries. Were my kids with their grandmother, or had the speculator taken them away? The uncertainty was unbearable. Would Betty ever come and tell me the truth? Finally, she arrived, and I eagerly repeated what I had overheard. Her face was one big, bright smile. “Oh, you silly thing!” she said. “I’m going to tell you all about it. The girls are eating their breakfast, and the lady told me to let her explain it to you; but, poor thing! It’s not fair to keep you waiting, so I’m going to tell you. Brother, the children were all bought by their father! I’ve laughed so much just thinking about old Master Flint. Oh, how he will swear! He’s really in trouble this time, anyway; but I need to get out of here, or those girls will come and catch me.”

Betty went off laughing; and I said to myself, “Can it be true that my children are free? I have not suffered for them in vain. Thank God!”

Betty walked away laughing, and I thought to myself, “Is it possible that my kids are free? I haven’t suffered for nothing. Thank God!”

Great surprise was expressed when it was known that my children had returned to their grandmother’s. The news spread through the town, and many a kind word was bestowed on the little ones.

Great surprise was shown when it became known that my children had returned to their grandmother's. The news spread through the town, and many kind words were given to the little ones.

Dr. Flint went to my grandmother’s to ascertain who was the owner of my children, and she informed him. “I expected as much,” said he. “I am glad to hear it. I have had news from Linda lately, and I shall soon have her. You need never expect to see her free. She shall be my slave as long as I live, and when I am dead she shall be the slave of my children. If I ever find out that you or Phillip had anything to do with her running off I’ll kill him. And if I meet William in the street, and he presumes to look at me, I’ll flog him within an inch of his life. Keep those brats out of my sight!”

Dr. Flint went to my grandmother's place to find out who owned my kids, and she told him. "I figured as much," he replied. "I'm glad to hear it. I recently got news about Linda, and I'll have her soon. You should never expect to see her free. She will be my slave for as long as I live, and when I die, she will be my children's slave. If I ever find out that you or Phillip had anything to do with her running away, I’ll kill him. And if I see William in the street and he dares to look at me, I’ll beat him to within an inch of his life. Keep those kids out of my sight!”

As he turned to leave, my grandmother said something to remind him of his own doings. He looked back upon her, as if he would have been glad to strike her to the ground.

As he turned to leave, my grandmother said something to remind him of his own actions. He glanced back at her, as if he would have been happy to knock her to the ground.

I had my season of joy and thanksgiving. It was the first time since my childhood that I had experienced any real happiness. I heard of the old doctor’s threats, but they no longer had the same power to trouble me. The darkest cloud that hung over my life had rolled away. Whatever slavery might do to me, it could not shackle my children. If I fell a sacrifice, my little ones were saved. It was well for me that my simple heart believed all that had been promised for their welfare. It is always better to trust than to doubt.

I had my season of joy and gratitude. It was the first time since I was a child that I felt any real happiness. I heard about the old doctor’s threats, but they no longer bothered me. The darkest cloud that hung over my life had lifted. No matter what slavery might do to me, it couldn’t trap my children. If I had to make a sacrifice, my little ones would be safe. It was good for me that my naive heart believed everything that had been promised for their well-being. It’s always better to trust than to doubt.










XX. New Perils.

The doctor, more exasperated than ever, again tried to revenge himself on my relatives. He arrested uncle Phillip on the charge of having aided my flight. He was carried before a court, and swore truly that he knew nothing of my intention to escape, and that he had not seen me since I left my master’s plantation. The doctor then demanded that he should give bail for five hundred dollars that he would have nothing to do with me. Several gentlemen offered to be security for him; but Mr. Sands told him he had better go back to jail, and he would see that he came out without giving bail.

The doctor, more frustrated than ever, tried once again to get back at my relatives. He arrested Uncle Phillip for supposedly helping me escape. Phillip was taken to court and honestly testified that he had no idea I was planning to run away and that he hadn’t seen me since I left my master’s plantation. The doctor then insisted that he pay a bail of five hundred dollars to prove that he was not involved with me. Several gentlemen offered to stand as guarantors for him, but Mr. Sands told him he was better off going back to jail, and he would make sure Phillip got out without needing to pay bail.

The news of his arrest was carried to my grandmother, who conveyed it to Betty. In the kindness of her heart, she again stowed me away under the floor; and as she walked back and forth, in the performance of her culinary duties, she talked apparently to herself, but with the intention that I should hear what was going on. I hoped that my uncle’s imprisonment would last but few days; still I was anxious. I thought it likely Dr. Flint would do his utmost to taunt and insult him, and I was afraid my uncle might lose control of himself, and retort in some way that would be construed into a punishable offence; and I was well aware that in court his word would not be taken against any white man’s. The search for me was renewed. Something had excited suspicions that I was in the vicinity. They searched the house I was in. I heard their steps and their voices. At night, when all were asleep, Betty came to release me from my place of confinement. The fright I had undergone, the constrained posture, and the dampness of the ground, made me ill for several days. My uncle was soon after taken out of prison; but the movements of all my relatives, and of all our friends, were very closely watched.

The news of his arrest reached my grandmother, who told Betty. Out of kindness, she hid me again under the floor. As she went back and forth doing her cooking, she spoke as if to herself, but intended for me to hear what was happening. I hoped my uncle's imprisonment would be short; still, I felt anxious. I worried that Dr. Flint would try hard to provoke and insult him, and I was scared my uncle might lose his temper and respond in a way that could be seen as a punishable offense. I knew that in court, his word wouldn’t hold up against any white man's. The search for me started up again. Something made them suspicious that I was nearby. They searched the house I was in. I could hear their footsteps and voices. At night, when everyone was asleep, Betty came to let me out of my hiding place. The fear I felt, the awkward position I had to stay in, and the dampness of the ground made me sick for several days. My uncle was released from prison soon after, but the movements of all my relatives and friends were being watched closely.

We all saw that I could not remain where I was much longer. I had already staid longer than was intended, and I knew my presence must be a source of perpetual anxiety to my kind benefactress. During this time, my friends had laid many plans for my escape, but the extreme vigilance of my persecutors made it impossible to carry them into effect.

We all knew I couldn't stay where I was for much longer. I had already been there longer than intended, and I realized my presence must be a constant source of worry for my kind benefactor. During this time, my friends had come up with several plans for my escape, but the intense watchfulness of my pursuers made it impossible to put any of them into action.

One morning I was much startled by hearing somebody trying to get into my room. Several keys were tried, but none fitted. I instantly conjectured it was one of the housemaids; and I concluded she must either have heard some noise in the room, or have noticed the entrance of Betty. When my friend came, at her usual time, I told her what had happened. “I knows who it was,” said she. “’Pend upon it, ’twas dat Jenny. Dat nigger allers got de debble in her.” I suggested that she might have seen or heard something that excited her curiosity.

One morning, I was really startled by someone trying to get into my room. Several keys were tried, but none worked. I immediately thought it was one of the housemaids; I figured she must have either heard a noise in the room or noticed Betty coming in. When my friend arrived at her usual time, I told her what had happened. “I know who it was,” she said. “Just you wait, it was that Jenny. That girl always has trouble following her.” I suggested that maybe she had seen or heard something that piqued her curiosity.

“Tut! tut! chile!” exclaimed Betty, “she ain’t seen notin’, nor hearn notin’. She only ’spects someting. Dat’s all. She wants to fine out who hab cut and make my gownd. But she won’t nebber know. Dat’s sartin. I’ll git missis to fix her.”

“Tut! Tut! Kid!” exclaimed Betty, “she hasn’t seen anything, nor heard anything. She just suspects something. That’s all. She wants to find out who cut and made my dress. But she’ll never know. That’s for sure. I’ll get Missis to handle her.”

I reflected a moment, and said, “Betty, I must leave here to-night.”

I paused for a moment and said, “Betty, I need to leave here tonight.”

“Do as you tink best, poor chile,” she replied. “I’se mighty ’fraid dat ’ere nigger vill pop on you some time.”

“Do what you think is best, poor child,” she replied. “I’m really afraid that black man is going to show up on you sometime.”

She reported the incident to her mistress, and received orders to keep Jenny busy in the kitchen till she could see my uncle Phillip. He told her he would send a friend for me that very evening. She told him she hoped I was going to the north, for it was very dangerous for me to remain any where in the vicinity. Alas, it was not an easy thing, for one in my situation, to go to the north. In order to leave the coast quite clear for me, she went into the country to spend the day with her brother, and took Jenny with her. She was afraid to come and bid me good by, but she left a kind message with Betty. I heard her carriage roll from the door, and I never again saw her who had so generously befriended the poor, trembling fugitive! Though she was a slaveholder, to this day my heart blesses her!

She told her mistress about the incident and got instructions to keep Jenny busy in the kitchen until she could talk to my Uncle Phillip. He mentioned that he would send a friend to get me that very evening. She expressed her hope that I would be heading north because it was too dangerous for me to stay anywhere nearby. Sadly, it wasn’t easy for someone in my situation to go north. To ensure I could leave without any problems, she went to the countryside to spend the day with her brother, taking Jenny with her. She was too scared to come and say goodbye, but she left a kind message for Betty. I heard her carriage leave from the door, and I never saw again the woman who had so generously helped the frightened fugitive! Even though she was a slave owner, I still cherish her in my heart!

I had not the slightest idea where I was going. Betty brought me a suit of sailor’s clothes,—jacket, trowsers, and tarpaulin hat. She gave me a small bundle, saying I might need it where I was going. In cheery tones, she exclaimed, “I’se so glad you is gwine to free parts! Don’t forget ole Betty. P’raps I’ll come ’long by and by.”

I had no idea where I was headed. Betty gave me a sailor's outfit—a jacket, pants, and a tarpaulin hat. She handed me a small bundle, saying I might need it wherever I was going. In a cheerful voice, she said, “I’m so glad you’re going to free places! Don’t forget old Betty. Maybe I’ll come by later.”

I tried to tell her how grateful I felt for all her kindness, but she interrupted me. “I don’t want no tanks, honey. I’se glad I could help you, and I hope de good Lord vill open de path for you. I’se gwine wid you to de lower gate. Put your hands in your pockets, and walk ricketty, like de sailors.”

I tried to tell her how thankful I was for all her kindness, but she cut me off. “I don’t need any thanks, honey. I’m just happy I could help you, and I hope the good Lord paves the way for you. I’m going with you to the lower gate. Put your hands in your pockets and walk wobbly, like the sailors.”

I performed to her satisfaction. At the gate I found Peter, a young colored man, waiting for me. I had known him for years. He had been an apprentice to my father, and had always borne a good character. I was not afraid to trust to him. Betty bade me a hurried good by, and we walked off. “Take courage, Linda,” said my friend Peter. “I’ve got a dagger, and no man shall take you from me, unless he passes over my dead body.”

I performed to her satisfaction. At the gate, I found Peter, a young Black man, waiting for me. I had known him for years. He had been an apprentice to my father and had always had a good reputation. I wasn’t afraid to trust him. Betty quickly said goodbye, and we walked off. “Stay strong, Linda,” my friend Peter said. “I’ve got a dagger, and no one is going to take you from me unless they go over my dead body.”

It was a long time since I had taken a walk out of doors, and the fresh air revived me. It was also pleasant to hear a human voice speaking to me above a whisper. I passed several people whom I knew, but they did not recognize me in my disguise. I prayed internally that, for Peter’s sake, as well as my own, nothing might occur to bring out his dagger. We walked on till we came to the wharf. My aunt Nancy’s husband was a seafaring man, and it had been deemed necessary to let him into our secret. He took me into his boat, rowed out to a vessel not far distant, and hoisted me on board. We three were the only occupants of the vessel. I now ventured to ask what they proposed to do with me. They said I was to remain on board till near dawn, and then they would hide me in Snaky Swamp, till my uncle Phillip had prepared a place of concealment for me. If the vessel had been bound north, it would have been of no avail to me, for it would certainly have been searched. About four o’clock, we were again seated in the boat, and rowed three miles to the swamp. My fear of snakes had been increased by the venomous bite I had received, and I dreaded to enter this hiding-place. But I was in no situation to choose, and I gratefully accepted the best that my poor, persecuted friends could do for me.

It had been a long time since I’d taken a walk outside, and the fresh air refreshed me. It was also nice to hear a human voice speaking to me above a whisper. I passed by several people I knew, but they didn’t recognize me in my disguise. I silently prayed that, for Peter’s sake as well as my own, nothing would happen that would force him to use his dagger. We kept walking until we reached the wharf. My Aunt Nancy’s husband was a sailor, and we had to let him in on our secret. He took me into his boat, rowed out to a nearby ship, and lifted me onboard. The three of us were the only ones on the vessel. I finally asked what they planned to do with me. They said I would stay on board until close to dawn, and then they would hide me in Snaky Swamp until my Uncle Phillip had arranged a safe place for me. If the ship had been heading north, it wouldn’t have helped me, because it would definitely have been searched. Around four o’clock, we were back in the boat and rowed three miles to the swamp. My fear of snakes had grown after the venomous bite I had suffered, and I was scared to enter this hiding spot. But I didn’t have the luxury of choice, so I gratefully accepted the best my poor, harried friends could do for me.

Peter landed first, and with a large knife cut a path through bamboos and briers of all descriptions. He came back, took me in his arms, and carried me to a seat made among the bamboos. Before we reached it, we were covered with hundreds of mosquitos. In an hour’s time they had so poisoned my flesh that I was a pitiful sight to behold. As the light increased, I saw snake after snake crawling round us. I had been accustomed to the sight of snakes all my life, but these were larger than any I had ever seen. To this day I shudder when I remember that morning. As evening approached, the number of snakes increased so much that we were continually obliged to thrash them with sticks to keep them from crawling over us. The bamboos were so high and so thick that it was impossible to see beyond a very short distance. Just before it became dark we procured a seat nearer to the entrance of the swamp, being fearful of losing our way back to the boat. It was not long before we heard the paddle of oars, and the low whistle, which had been agreed upon as a signal. We made haste to enter the boat, and were rowed back to the vessel. I passed a wretched night; for the heat of the swamp, the mosquitos, and the constant terror of snakes, had brought on a burning fever. I had just dropped asleep, when they came and told me it was time to go back to that horrid swamp. I could scarcely summon courage to rise. But even those large, venomous snakes were less dreadful to my imagination than the white men in that community called civilized. This time Peter took a quantity of tobacco to burn, to keep off the mosquitos. It produced the desired effect on them, but gave me nausea and severe headache. At dark we returned to the vessel. I had been so sick during the day, that Peter declared I should go home that night, if the devil himself was on patrol. They told me a place of concealment had been provided for me at my grandmother’s. I could not imagine how it was possible to hide me in her house, every nook and corner of which was known to the Flint family. They told me to wait and see. We were rowed ashore, and went boldly through the streets, to my grandmother’s. I wore my sailor’s clothes, and had blackened my face with charcoal. I passed several people whom I knew. The father of my children came so near that I brushed against his arm; but he had no idea who it was.

Peter arrived first and used a large knife to cut a path through the bamboo and thorny plants. He came back, picked me up, and carried me to a seat made among the bamboos. Before we got there, we were swarmed by hundreds of mosquitoes. Within an hour, they had bitten me so badly that I was a pitiful sight. As it got lighter, I noticed snake after snake crawling around us. I had seen snakes all my life, but these were bigger than any I had ever encountered. To this day, I shudder when I think about that morning. As evening approached, the number of snakes grew so much that we had to keep hitting them away with sticks to prevent them from crawling over us. The bamboos were so tall and thick that we could barely see beyond a short distance. Just before it got dark, we found a spot closer to the entrance of the swamp, worried about getting lost on the way back to the boat. It wasn’t long before we heard the sound of paddles and the low whistle we had agreed upon as a signal. We hurried to get into the boat and were rowed back to the vessel. I had a miserable night; the heat of the swamp, the mosquitoes, and the constant fear of snakes had given me a burning fever. I had just fallen asleep when they came and told me it was time to go back to that awful swamp. I could hardly find the courage to get up. But even those large, venomous snakes were less terrifying to me than the white men in that so-called civilized community. This time Peter brought some tobacco to burn to keep the mosquitoes away. It worked for them but made me feel nauseous and gave me a terrible headache. At dark, we returned to the vessel. I was so sick during the day that Peter insisted I should go home that night, even if it meant facing the devil himself. They told me they had found a hiding place for me at my grandmother’s. I couldn’t imagine how they would hide me in her house, every nook and cranny of which was known to the Flint family. They told me to wait and see. We were rowed ashore and walked boldly through the streets to my grandmother’s. I wore my sailor outfit and had blackened my face with charcoal. I passed by several people I knew. The father of my children came so close that I brushed against his arm, but he had no idea who I was.

“You must make the most of this walk,” said my friend Peter, “for you may not have another very soon.”

"You should really enjoy this walk," my friend Peter said, "because you might not get another chance anytime soon."

I thought his voice sounded sad. It was kind of him to conceal from me what a dismal hole was to be my home for a long, long time.

I thought his voice sounded sad. It was nice of him to hide from me how miserable this place would be as my home for a long, long time.










XXI. The Loophole Of Retreat.

A small shed had been added to my grandmother’s house years ago. Some boards were laid across the joists at the top, and between these boards and the roof was a very small garret, never occupied by any thing but rats and mice. It was a pent roof, covered with nothing but shingles, according to the southern custom for such buildings. The garret was only nine feet long and seven wide. The highest part was three feet high, and sloped down abruptly to the loose board floor. There was no admission for either light or air. My uncle Phillip, who was a carpenter, had very skilfully made a concealed trap-door, which communicated with the storeroom. He had been doing this while I was waiting in the swamp. The storeroom opened upon a piazza. To this hole I was conveyed as soon as I entered the house. The air was stifling; the darkness total. A bed had been spread on the floor. I could sleep quite comfortably on one side; but the slope was so sudden that I could not turn on the other without hitting the roof. The rats and mice ran over my bed; but I was weary, and I slept such sleep as the wretched may, when a tempest has passed over them. Morning came. I knew it only by the noises I heard; for in my small den day and night were all the same. I suffered for air even more than for light. But I was not comfortless. I heard the voices of my children. There was joy and there was sadness in the sound. It made my tears flow. How I longed to speak to them! I was eager to look on their faces; but there was no hole, no crack, through which I could peep. This continued darkness was oppressive. It seemed horrible to sit or lie in a cramped position day after day, without one gleam of light. Yet I would have chosen this, rather than my lot as a slave, though white people considered it an easy one; and it was so compared with the fate of others. I was never cruelly over-worked; I was never lacerated with the whip from head to foot; I was never so beaten and bruised that I could not turn from one side to the other; I never had my heel-strings cut to prevent my running away; I was never chained to a log and forced to drag it about, while I toiled in the fields from morning till night; I was never branded with hot iron, or torn by bloodhounds. On the contrary, I had always been kindly treated, and tenderly cared for, until I came into the hands of Dr. Flint. I had never wished for freedom till then. But though my life in slavery was comparatively devoid of hardships, God pity the woman who is compelled to lead such a life!

A small shed had been added to my grandmother’s house years ago. Some boards were laid across the joists at the top, and between these boards and the roof was a very small attic, never occupied by anything but rats and mice. It had a slanted roof, covered only with shingles, following the southern style for such buildings. The attic was only nine feet long and seven feet wide. The highest part was three feet high, and it sloped down sharply to the loose board floor. There was no light or air getting in. My uncle Phillip, who was a carpenter, had skillfully made a hidden trapdoor that connected to the storeroom. He had been working on this while I waited in the swamp. The storeroom opened onto a porch. I was taken to this hole as soon as I entered the house. The air was stifling; the darkness was complete. A bed had been laid out on the floor. I could sleep quite comfortably on one side, but the slope was so steep that I couldn’t turn to the other side without hitting the roof. The rats and mice ran over my bed; but I was exhausted, and I slept the kind of sleep that the miserable experience after a storm. Morning came. I knew it only by the sounds I heard; for in my small den, day and night felt the same. I craved air even more than light. But I wasn’t without comfort. I could hear my children’s voices. The sound brought both joy and sadness. It made me cry. How I longed to speak to them! I was eager to see their faces, but there was no hole or crack through which I could peek. This endless darkness was suffocating. It felt terrible to sit or lie in a cramped position day after day, without any hint of light. Yet I would have chosen this over my life as a slave, even if white people saw it as easy; and it was so compared to the fate of others. I was never cruelly overworked; I was never whipped from head to toe; I was never beaten so badly that I couldn’t turn from one side to the other; I was never subjected to having my heel tendons cut to prevent my escape; I was never chained to a log and forced to drag it around while I toiled in the fields from morning till night; I was never branded with a hot iron or pursued by bloodhounds. On the contrary, I had always been treated kindly and cared for, until I came into the hands of Dr. Flint. I hadn’t wished for freedom until then. But even though my life in slavery was relatively free of hardships, God pity the woman who has to live such a life!

My food was passed up to me through the trap-door my uncle had contrived; and my grandmother, my uncle Phillip, and aunt Nancy would seize such opportunities as they could, to mount up there and chat with me at the opening. But of course this was not safe in the daytime. It must all be done in darkness. It was impossible for me to move in an erect position, but I crawled about my den for exercise. One day I hit my head against something, and found it was a gimlet. My uncle had left it sticking there when he made the trap-door. I was as rejoiced as Robinson Crusoe could have been at finding such a treasure. It put a lucky thought into my head. I said to myself, “Now I will have some light. Now I will see my children.” I did not dare to begin my work during the daytime, for fear of attracting attention. But I groped round; and having found the side next the street, where I could frequently see my children, I stuck the gimlet in and waited for evening. I bored three rows of holes, one above another; then I bored out the interstices between. I thus succeeded in making one hole about an inch long and an inch broad. I sat by it till late into the night, to enjoy the little whiff of air that floated in. In the morning I watched for my children. The first person I saw in the street was Dr. Flint. I had a shuddering, superstitious feeling that it was a bad omen. Several familiar faces passed by. At last I heard the merry laugh of children, and presently two sweet little faces were looking up at me, as though they knew I was there, and were conscious of the joy they imparted. How I longed to tell them I was there!

My food was handed up to me through the trap door my uncle had made; my grandmother, uncle Phillip, and aunt Nancy would take the chance to climb up and talk to me at the opening. But, of course, this wasn't safe during the day. It all had to happen in the dark. I couldn't move around standing up, but I crawled around my space for exercise. One day, I bumped my head against something and realized it was a gimlet. My uncle had left it there when he made the trap door. I was as thrilled as Robinson Crusoe would have been to find such a treasure. It sparked a great idea in my head. I thought to myself, “Now I can have some light. Now I can see my children.” I didn't dare start my work during the day for fear of drawing attention. But I felt around and found the side facing the street, where I could often see my kids, so I stuck the gimlet in and waited for evening. I drilled three rows of holes, one above the other; then I drilled out the spaces in between. I managed to create one hole about an inch long and an inch wide. I sat by it late into the night, enjoying the small breeze that came through. In the morning, I watched for my children. The first person I saw on the street was Dr. Flint. A shudder ran through me, and I felt it was a bad sign. Several familiar faces passed by. Finally, I heard the happy laughter of children, and soon two sweet little faces were looking up at me, as if they knew I was there and felt the joy they brought me. How I longed to tell them I was there!

My condition was now a little improved. But for weeks I was tormented by hundreds of little red insects, fine as a needle’s point, that pierced through my skin, and produced an intolerable burning. The good grandmother gave me herb teas and cooling medicines, and finally I got rid of them. The heat of my den was intense, for nothing but thin shingles protected me from the scorching summer’s sun. But I had my consolations. Through my peeping-hole I could watch the children, and when they were near enough, I could hear their talk. Aunt Nancy brought me all the news she could hear at Dr. Flint’s. From her I learned that the doctor had written to New York to a colored woman, who had been born and raised in our neighborhood, and had breathed his contaminating atmosphere. He offered her a reward if she could find out any thing about me. I know not what was the nature of her reply; but he soon after started for New York in haste, saying to his family that he had business of importance to transact. I peeped at him as he passed on his way to the steamboat. It was a satisfaction to have miles of land and water between us, even for a little while; and it was a still greater satisfaction to know that he believed me to be in the Free States. My little den seemed less dreary than it had done. He returned, as he did from his former journey to New York, without obtaining any satisfactory information. When he passed our house next morning, Benny was standing at the gate. He had heard them say that he had gone to find me, and he called out, “Dr. Flint, did you bring my mother home? I want to see her.” The doctor stamped his foot at him in a rage, and exclaimed, “Get out of the way, you little damned rascal! If you don’t, I’ll cut off your head.”

My condition had improved a bit. But for weeks I was tormented by hundreds of tiny red bugs, sharp as a needle, that pierced my skin and caused unbearable burning. My kind grandmother gave me herbal teas and cooling medicines, and finally, I managed to get rid of them. The heat in my little hideout was intense, since only thin shingles shielded me from the blazing summer sun. But I had my comforts. Through my peep-hole, I could watch the kids, and when they were close enough, I could hear their conversations. Aunt Nancy brought me all the news she could gather from Dr. Flint's house. From her, I learned that the doctor had written to a woman of color in New York, someone born and raised in our neighborhood, who had been influenced by his toxic presence. He offered her a reward for any information about me. I don’t know what her response was, but shortly after, he rushed off to New York, telling his family he had important business to take care of. I peeked at him as he passed on his way to the steamboat. It felt good to have miles of land and water between us, even for a little while; and it felt even better knowing he thought I was in the Free States. My little hideout seemed less gloomy than before. He returned just like he had after his last trip to New York, without any useful information. The next morning, as he passed our house, Benny was standing at the gate. He had heard them say the doctor had gone to find me, and he shouted, “Dr. Flint, did you bring my mother home? I want to see her.” The doctor angrily stomped his foot at him and shouted, “Get out of the way, you little damn brat! If you don't, I’ll cut off your head.”

Benny ran terrified into the house, saying, “You can’t put me in jail again. I don’t belong to you now.” It was well that the wind carried the words away from the doctor’s ear. I told my grandmother of it, when we had our next conference at the trap-door; and begged of her not to allow the children to be impertinent to the irascible old man.

Benny ran into the house, scared, saying, “You can’t put me in jail again. I’m not yours anymore.” It was a good thing the wind carried his words away from the doctor. I told my grandmother about it during our next meeting at the trap-door and asked her not to let the kids be rude to the grumpy old man.

Autumn came, with a pleasant abatement of heat. My eyes had become accustomed to the dim light, and by holding my book or work in a certain position near the aperture I contrived to read and sew. That was a great relief to the tedious monotony of my life. But when winter came, the cold penetrated through the thin shingle roof, and I was dreadfully chilled. The winters there are not so long, or so severe, as in northern latitudes; but the houses are not built to shelter from cold, and my little den was peculiarly comfortless. The kind grandmother brought me bed-clothes and warm drinks. Often I was obliged to lie in bed all day to keep comfortable; but with all my precautions, my shoulders and feet were frostbitten. O, those long, gloomy days, with no object for my eye to rest upon, and no thoughts to occupy my mind, except the dreary past and the uncertain future! I was thankful when there came a day sufficiently mild for me to wrap myself up and sit at the loophole to watch the passers by. Southerners have the habit of stopping and talking in the streets, and I heard many conversations not intended to meet my ears. I heard slave-hunters planning how to catch some poor fugitive. Several times I heard allusions to Dr. Flint, myself, and the history of my children, who, perhaps, were playing near the gate. One would say, “I wouldn’t move my little finger to catch her, as old Flint’s property.” Another would say, “I’ll catch any nigger for the reward. A man ought to have what belongs to him, if he is a damned brute.” The opinion was often expressed that I was in the Free States. Very rarely did any one suggest that I might be in the vicinity. Had the least suspicion rested on my grandmother’s house, it would have been burned to the ground. But it was the last place they thought of. Yet there was no place, where slavery existed, that could have afforded me so good a place of concealment.

Autumn arrived, bringing a pleasant break from the heat. My eyes got used to the dim light, and by holding my book or work in a specific position near the opening, I managed to read and sew. That was a big relief from the dull monotony of my life. But when winter came, the cold seeped through the thin shingle roof, and I was terribly chilled. Winters there aren’t as long or as harsh as in northern regions; however, the houses aren’t built to keep out the cold, and my little room was especially uncomfortable. My kind grandmother brought me blankets and warm drinks. Often, I had to stay in bed all day to stay warm, but despite all my efforts, my shoulders and feet ended up frostbitten. Oh, those long, gloomy days, with nothing for my eyes to rest on and no thoughts to fill my mind except the bleak past and the uncertain future! I was grateful for any day that was mild enough for me to bundle up and sit by the loophole to watch the people passing by. Southerners tend to stop and chat in the streets, and I overheard many conversations not meant for me. I heard slave-hunters planning how to catch some poor runaway. Several times, I heard references to Dr. Flint, myself, and the story of my children, who might have been playing near the gate. One would say, “I wouldn’t lift a finger to catch her, as old Flint’s property.” Another said, “I’ll catch any black for the reward. A man should get what’s his, even if he is a damned brute.” It was often said that I was in the Free States. Very rarely did anyone suggest that I could be close by. If anyone had even suspected my grandmother's house, it would have been burned to the ground. But it was the last place they considered. Still, there was no place where slavery existed that could have offered me a better hiding spot.

Dr. Flint and his family repeatedly tried to coax and bribe my children to tell something they had heard said about me. One day the doctor took them into a shop, and offered them some bright little silver pieces and gay handkerchiefs if they would tell where their mother was. Ellen shrank away from him, and would not speak; but Benny spoke up, and said, “Dr. Flint, I don’t know where my mother is. I guess she’s in New York; and when you go there again, I wish you’d ask her to come home, for I want to see her; but if you put her in jail, or tell her you’ll cut her head off, I’ll tell her to go right back.”

Dr. Flint and his family kept trying to persuade and bribe my kids to reveal something they had overheard about me. One day, the doctor took them into a store and offered them shiny silver coins and colorful handkerchiefs if they would tell him where their mother was. Ellen backed away from him and refused to say anything, but Benny spoke up and said, “Dr. Flint, I don’t know where my mom is. I think she’s in New York; and when you go there again, I wish you’d ask her to come home because I want to see her. But if you put her in jail or threaten her, I’ll tell her to stay away.”










XXII. Christmas Festivities.

Christmas was approaching. Grandmother brought me materials, and I busied myself making some new garments and little playthings for my children. Were it not that hiring day is near at hand, and many families are fearfully looking forward to the probability of separation in a few days, Christmas might be a happy season for the poor slaves. Even slave mothers try to gladden the hearts of their little ones on that occasion. Benny and Ellen had their Christmas stockings filled. Their imprisoned mother could not have the privilege of witnessing their surprise and joy. But I had the pleasure of peeping at them as they went into the street with their new suits on. I heard Benny ask a little playmate whether Santa Claus brought him any thing. “Yes,” replied the boy; “but Santa Claus ain’t a real man. It’s the children’s mothers that put things into the stockings.” “No, that can’t be,” replied Benny, “for Santa Claus brought Ellen and me these new clothes, and my mother has been gone this long time.”

Christmas was coming up. Grandmother gave me supplies, and I kept myself busy making new clothes and little toys for my kids. If it weren't for hiring day coming soon, and many families anxiously anticipating the likelihood of being separated in a few days, Christmas could be a joyful time for the poor slaves. Even slave mothers try to bring happiness to their little ones on that day. Benny and Ellen had their Christmas stockings filled. Their imprisoned mother couldn’t enjoy seeing their surprise and joy. But I had the joy of watching them as they stepped into the street in their new outfits. I heard Benny ask a little friend if Santa Claus brought him anything. “Yeah,” the boy replied, “but Santa Claus isn’t a real man. It’s the kids’ moms who put stuff in the stockings.” “No, that can’t be,” Benny said, “because Santa Claus brought Ellen and me these new clothes, and my mom has been gone for a long time.”

How I longed to tell him that his mother made those garments, and that many a tear fell on them while she worked!

How I wished I could tell him that his mom made those clothes, and that many tears fell on them while she worked!

Every child rises early on Christmas morning to see the Johnkannaus. Without them, Christmas would be shorn of its greatest attraction. They consist of companies of slaves from the plantations, generally of the lower class. Two athletic men, in calico wrappers, have a net thrown over them, covered with all manner of bright-colored stripes. Cows’ tails are fastened to their backs, and their heads are decorated with horns. A box, covered with sheepskin, is called the gumbo box. A dozen beat on this, while others strike triangles and jawbones, to which bands of dancers keep time. For a month previous they are composing songs, which are sung on this occasion. These companies, of a hundred each, turn out early in the morning, and are allowed to go round till twelve o’clock, begging for contributions. Not a door is left unvisited where there is the least chance of obtaining a penny or a glass of rum. They do not drink while they are out, but carry the rum home in jugs, to have a carousal. These Christmas donations frequently amount to twenty or thirty dollars. It is seldom that any white man or child refuses to give them a trifle. If he does, they regale his ears with the following song:—

Every kid gets up early on Christmas morning to see the Johnkannaus. Without them, Christmas would lose its biggest appeal. They’re made up of groups of slaves from the plantations, usually from the lower class. Two strong men, wearing calico wraps, have a net draped over them, covered in all sorts of bright stripes. Cow tails are attached to their backs, and their heads are adorned with horns. A box, covered in sheepskin, is called the gumbo box. A dozen people hit it while others play triangles and jawbones, and groups of dancers keep the beat. For a month beforehand, they’re writing songs to sing on this day. These groups of about a hundred go out early in the morning and can roam around until noon, asking for donations. No door is left unknocked where there’s a chance of getting a penny or a glass of rum. They don’t drink while they’re out, but take the rum home in jugs to have a party. These Christmas donations often add up to twenty or thirty dollars. It’s rare for any white person or child to refuse to give them a little something. If they do, they treat him to this song:—

“Poor massa, so dey say;
Down in de heel, so dey say;
Got no money, so dey say;
Not one shillin, so dey say;
God A’mighty bress you, so dey say.”

Christmas is a day of feasting, both with white and colored people. Slaves, who are lucky enough to have a few shillings, are sure to spend them for good eating; and many a turkey and pig is captured, without saying, “By your leave, sir.” Those who cannot obtain these, cook a ’possum, or a raccoon, from which savory dishes can be made. My grandmother raised poultry and pigs for sale; and it was her established custom to have both a turkey and a pig roasted for Christmas dinner.

Christmas is a day for feasting, enjoyed by everyone. Slaves fortunate enough to have a few coins are sure to spend them on a good meal; many a turkey and pig is taken without asking for permission. Those who can’t get these might cook a possum or a raccoon, which can be turned into tasty dishes. My grandmother raised chickens and pigs to sell, and it was her tradition to have both a turkey and a pig roasted for Christmas dinner.

On this occasion, I was warned to keep extremely quiet, because two guests had been invited. One was the town constable, and the other was a free colored man, who tried to pass himself off for white, and who was always ready to do any mean work for the sake of currying favor with white people. My grandmother had a motive for inviting them. She managed to take them all over the house. All the rooms on the lower floor were thrown open for them to pass in and out; and after dinner, they were invited up stairs to look at a fine mocking bird my uncle had just brought home. There, too, the rooms were all thrown open, that they might look in. When I heard them talking on the piazza, my heart almost stood still. I knew this colored man had spent many nights hunting for me. Every body knew he had the blood of a slave father in his veins; but for the sake of passing himself off for white, he was ready to kiss the slaveholders’ feet. How I despised him! As for the constable, he wore no false colors. The duties of his office were despicable, but he was superior to his companion, inasmuch as he did not pretend to be what he was not. Any white man, who could raise money enough to buy a slave, would have considered himself degraded by being a constable; but the office enabled its possessor to exercise authority. If he found any slave out after nine o’clock, he could whip him as much as he liked; and that was a privilege to be coveted. When the guests were ready to depart, my grandmother gave each of them some of her nice pudding, as a present for their wives. Through my peep-hole I saw them go out of the gate, and I was glad when it closed after them. So passed the first Christmas in my den.

On this occasion, I was told to be really quiet because two guests were invited. One was the town constable, and the other was a free Black man who tried to pass as white and was always eager to do any shady work to win favor with white people. My grandmother had her reasons for inviting them. She took them all over the house. All the rooms on the lower floor were open for them to walk in and out; after dinner, they were invited upstairs to see a beautiful mockingbird my uncle had just brought home. Again, the rooms were all open for them to look into. When I heard them talking on the porch, my heart almost stopped. I knew this Black man had spent many nights searching for me. Everyone knew he had the blood of a slave father in him, but to pass as white, he was willing to kiss the feet of slaveholders. I despised him! As for the constable, he showed his true colors. The duties of his job were despicable, but he was better than his companion because he didn’t pretend to be something he wasn’t. Any white man who could raise enough money to buy a slave would have felt degraded to be a constable; but the job allowed him to wield authority. If he found any slave out after nine o’clock, he could whip him as much as he wanted; and that was a coveted privilege. When the guests were ready to leave, my grandmother gave each of them some of her delicious pudding as a gift for their wives. Through my peephole, I saw them leave through the gate, and I was glad when it closed behind them. That was how my first Christmas in my den went.










XXIII. Still In Prison.

When spring returned, and I took in the little patch of green the aperture commanded, I asked myself how many more summers and winters I must be condemned to spend thus. I longed to draw in a plentiful draught of fresh air, to stretch my cramped limbs, to have room to stand erect, to feel the earth under my feet again. My relatives were constantly on the lookout for a chance of escape; but none offered that seemed practicable, and even tolerably safe. The hot summer came again, and made the turpentine drop from the thin roof over my head.

When spring came back, and I looked at the small patch of green visible from the window, I wondered how many more summers and winters I would have to spend like this. I yearned to take a deep breath of fresh air, to stretch my stiff limbs, to have space to stand up straight, to feel the ground beneath my feet once more. My relatives were always searching for a chance to escape, but nothing seemed feasible or even relatively safe. The hot summer returned, causing the turpentine to drip from the flimsy roof above me.

During the long nights I was restless for want of air, and I had no room to toss and turn. There was but one compensation; the atmosphere was so stifled that even mosquitos would not condescend to buzz in it. With all my detestation of Dr. Flint, I could hardly wish him a worse punishment, either in this world or that which is to come, than to suffer what I suffered in one single summer. Yet the laws allowed him to be out in the free air, while I, guiltless of crime, was pent up here, as the only means of avoiding the cruelties the laws allowed him to inflict upon me! I don’t know what kept life within me. Again and again, I thought I should die before long; but I saw the leaves of another autumn whirl through the air, and felt the touch of another winter. In summer the most terrible thunder storms were acceptable, for the rain came through the roof, and I rolled up my bed that it might cool the hot boards under it. Later in the season, storms sometimes wet my clothes through and through, and that was not comfortable when the air grew chilly. Moderate storms I could keep out by filling the chinks with oakum.

During the long nights, I was restless from lack of fresh air, and there wasn’t enough space to move around. The only upside was that the air was so thick even mosquitoes didn’t bother buzzing around. Despite my deep hatred for Dr. Flint, I could hardly wish him a worse punishment, either in this life or the next, than what I endured in just one summer. Yet the laws allowed him to be outside in the fresh air while I, innocent of any crime, was trapped here, as the only way to escape the cruelty the laws permitted him to inflict on me! I’m not sure how I managed to keep going. Time and again, I thought I would die soon; yet I saw the leaves of another autumn swirling through the air and felt the chill of another winter. In summer, even the most terrifying thunderstorms were welcome because the rain came through the roof, and I would roll up my bed to cool off the hot floor beneath me. Later in the season, storms sometimes soaked me completely, which was uncomfortable when the air turned cold. I could block moderate storms by stuffing the gaps with pieces of old rope.

But uncomfortable as my situation was, I had glimpses of things out of doors, which made me thankful for my wretched hiding-place. One day I saw a slave pass our gate, muttering, “It’s his own, and he can kill it if he will.” My grandmother told me that woman’s history. Her mistress had that day seen her baby for the first time, and in the lineaments of its fair face she saw a likeness to her husband. She turned the bondwoman and her child out of doors, and forbade her ever to return. The slave went to her master, and told him what had happened. He promised to talk with her mistress, and make it all right. The next day she and her baby were sold to a Georgia trader.

But as uncomfortable as my situation was, I caught glimpses of things outside that made me grateful for my miserable hiding place. One day, I saw a slave pass our gate, murmuring, “It’s his own, and he can kill it if he wants.” My grandmother told me her story. That day, her mistress had seen her baby for the first time, and in the features of its fair face, she saw a resemblance to her husband. She kicked the bondwoman and her child outside and ordered her never to come back. The slave went to her master and told him what had happened. He promised to speak with her mistress and make it right. The next day, she and her baby were sold to a trader from Georgia.

Another time I saw a woman rush wildly by, pursued by two men. She was a slave, the wet nurse of her mistress’s children. For some trifling offence her mistress ordered her to be stripped and whipped. To escape the degradation and the torture, she rushed to the river, jumped in, and ended her wrongs in death.

Another time, I saw a woman running frantically, chased by two men. She was a slave, the wet nurse for her mistress’s children. For some minor offense, her mistress commanded that she be stripped and whipped. To escape the humiliation and the pain, she ran to the river, jumped in, and ended her suffering in death.

Senator Brown, of Mississippi, could not be ignorant of many such facts as these, for they are of frequent occurrence in every Southern State. Yet he stood up in the Congress of the United States, and declared that slavery was “a great moral, social, and political blessing; a blessing to the master, and a blessing to the slave!”

Senator Brown from Mississippi couldn't possibly be unaware of many facts like these, as they happen all the time in every Southern State. Still, he stood up in the U.S. Congress and claimed that slavery was “a great moral, social, and political blessing; a blessing to the master, and a blessing to the slave!”

I suffered much more during the second winter than I did during the first. My limbs were benumbed by inaction, and the cold filled them with cramp. I had a very painful sensation of coldness in my head; even my face and tongue stiffened, and I lost the power of speech. Of course it was impossible, under the circumstances, to summon any physician. My brother William came and did all he could for me. Uncle Phillip also watched tenderly over me; and poor grandmother crept up and down to inquire whether there were any signs of returning life. I was restored to consciousness by the dashing of cold water in my face, and found myself leaning against my brother’s arm, while he bent over me with streaming eyes. He afterwards told me he thought I was dying, for I had been in an unconscious state sixteen hours. I next became delirious, and was in great danger of betraying myself and my friends. To prevent this, they stupefied me with drugs. I remained in bed six weeks, weary in body and sick at heart. How to get medical advice was the question. William finally went to a Thompsonian doctor, and described himself as having all my pains and aches. He returned with herbs, roots, and ointment. He was especially charged to rub on the ointment by a fire; but how could a fire be made in my little den? Charcoal in a furnace was tried, but there was no outlet for the gas, and it nearly cost me my life. Afterwards coals, already kindled, were brought up in an iron pan, and placed on bricks. I was so weak, and it was so long since I had enjoyed the warmth of a fire, that those few coals actually made me weep. I think the medicines did me some good; but my recovery was very slow. Dark thoughts passed through my mind as I lay there day after day. I tried to be thankful for my little cell, dismal as it was, and even to love it, as part of the price I had paid for the redemption of my children. Sometimes I thought God was a compassionate Father, who would forgive my sins for the sake of my sufferings. At other times, it seemed to me there was no justice or mercy in the divine government. I asked why the curse of slavery was permitted to exist, and why I had been so persecuted and wronged from youth upward. These things took the shape of mystery, which is to this day not so clear to my soul as I trust it will be hereafter.

I suffered much more during the second winter than I did during the first. My limbs were numb from inactivity, and the cold caused cramps. I felt intense coldness in my head; even my face and tongue became stiff, and I lost the ability to speak. Given the situation, it was impossible to call a doctor. My brother William came and did everything he could for me. Uncle Phillip also kept a close watch over me, and poor grandmother kept coming up and down to check if there were any signs of me getting better. I regained consciousness when cold water was splashed on my face, and I found myself leaning against my brother’s arm while he looked down at me with tears in his eyes. He later told me he thought I was dying since I had been unconscious for sixteen hours. Then I became delirious and was in serious danger of revealing my identity and that of my friends. To prevent this, they knocked me out with drugs. I stayed in bed for six weeks, feeling exhausted and heartbroken. The challenge was figuring out how to get medical advice. William eventually went to a Thompsonian doctor and described my pains and aches as his own. He returned with herbs, roots, and ointment. He was specifically instructed to apply the ointment by a fire, but how could a fire be made in my tiny space? They tried using charcoal in a furnace, but there was no way for the gas to escape, and it almost cost me my life. Later, they brought up preheated coals in an iron pan and set them on bricks. I was so weak, having not felt the warmth of a fire in so long, that those few coals brought me to tears. I think the medicines helped a bit, but my recovery was very slow. Dark thoughts flooded my mind as I lay there day after day. I tried to be thankful for my little cell, as dreary as it was, and even to love it as part of the price I had paid for the freedom of my children. Sometimes I believed that God was a compassionate Father who would forgive my sins because of my suffering. Other times, it felt like there was no justice or mercy in divine governance. I questioned why the curse of slavery was allowed to exist and why I had been so persecuted and wronged since childhood. These questions morphed into mysteries that still aren’t clear to me, though I hope they will be in the future.

In the midst of my illness, grandmother broke down under the weight of anxiety and toil. The idea of losing her, who had always been my best friend and a mother to my children, was the sorest trial I had yet had. O, how earnestly I prayed that she might recover! How hard it seemed, that I could not tend upon her, who had so long and so tenderly watched over me!

In the middle of my illness, my grandmother fell apart from all the stress and worry. The thought of losing her, my best friend and a mother figure to my kids, was the hardest thing I had ever faced. Oh, how desperately I prayed for her to get better! It felt so difficult that I couldn’t care for her, after she had taken such good care of me for so long!

One day the screams of a child nerved me with strength to crawl to my peeping-hole, and I saw my son covered with blood. A fierce dog, usually kept chained, had seized and bitten him. A doctor was sent for, and I heard the groans and screams of my child while the wounds were being sewed up. O, what torture to a mother’s heart, to listen to this and be unable to go to him!

One day, the screams of a child gave me the strength to crawl to my peep hole, and I saw my son covered in blood. A fierce dog, usually kept on a chain, had grabbed and bitten him. A doctor was called, and I heard my child's groans and screams while the wounds were being stitched up. Oh, what torture for a mother’s heart to listen to this and be unable to go to him!

But childhood is like a day in spring, alternately shower and sunshine. Before night Benny was bright and lively, threatening the destruction of the dog; and great was his delight when the doctor told him the next day that the dog had bitten another boy and been shot. Benny recovered from his wounds; but it was long before he could walk.

But childhood is like a spring day, full of both rain and sunshine. Before nightfall, Benny was cheerful and full of energy, talking about how he wanted to get rid of the dog; and he was thrilled when the doctor told him the next day that the dog had bitten another boy and had been shot. Benny healed from his injuries, but it took a long time before he could walk again.

When my grandmother’s illness became known, many ladies, who were her customers, called to bring her some little comforts, and to inquire whether she had every thing she wanted. Aunt Nancy one night asked permission to watch with her sick mother, and Mrs. Flint replied, “I don’t see any need of your going. I can’t spare you.” But when she found other ladies in the neighborhood were so attentive, not wishing to be outdone in Christian charity, she also sallied forth, in magnificent condescension, and stood by the bedside of her who had loved her in her infancy, and who had been repaid by such grievous wrongs. She seemed surprised to find her so ill, and scolded uncle Phillip for not sending for Dr. Flint. She herself sent for him immediately, and he came. Secure as I was in my retreat, I should have been terrified if I had known he was so near me. He pronounced my grandmother in a very critical situation, and said if her attending physician wished it, he would visit her. Nobody wished to have him coming to the house at all hours, and we were not disposed to give him a chance to make out a long bill.

When my grandmother's illness became known, many of her customers came to bring her some little comforts and to check if she had everything she needed. One night, Aunt Nancy asked if she could stay with her sick mother, and Mrs. Flint replied, “I don’t see why you need to go. I can’t lose you.” But when she noticed other ladies in the neighborhood being so attentive, not wanting to be outdone in kindness, she also stepped in with an air of superiority and stood by the bed of the woman who had cared for her in her childhood and had endured such terrible wrongs. She seemed taken aback to find her so ill and scolded Uncle Phillip for not calling Dr. Flint. She sent for him herself right away, and he came. Even though I felt secure in my hiding spot, I would have been terrified if I had known he was so close. He declared my grandmother to be in a very serious condition and said that if her regular doctor wanted him to, he would come by to see her. Nobody wanted him showing up at our house at all hours, and we weren't inclined to give him a reason to rack up a hefty bill.

As Mrs. Flint went out, Sally told her the reason Benny was lame was, that a dog had bitten him. “I’m glad of it,” replied she. “I wish he had killed him. It would be good news to send to his mother. Her day will come. The dogs will grab her yet.” With these Christian words she and her husband departed, and, to my great satisfaction, returned no more.

As Mrs. Flint was leaving, Sally informed her that Benny was lame because a dog had bitten him. “I’m glad to hear that,” she responded. “I wish the dog had killed him. That would be good news to share with his mother. Her day will come. The dogs will get her yet.” With these kind words, she and her husband left, and to my great relief, they never came back.

I heard from uncle Phillip, with feelings of unspeakable joy and gratitude, that the crisis was passed and grandmother would live. I could now say from my heart, “God is merciful. He has spared me the anguish of feeling that I caused her death.”

I heard from Uncle Phillip, filled with indescribable joy and gratitude, that the crisis was over and Grandma would be okay. I could now honestly say, “God is merciful. He has saved me from the pain of thinking that I caused her death.”










XXIV. The Candidate For Congress.

The summer had nearly ended, when Dr. Flint made a third visit to New York, in search of me. Two candidates were running for Congress, and he returned in season to vote. The father of my children was the Whig candidate. The doctor had hitherto been a stanch Whig; but now he exerted all his energies for the defeat of Mr. Sands. He invited large parties of men to dine in the shade of his trees, and supplied them with plenty of rum and brandy. If any poor fellow drowned his wits in the bowl, and, in the openness of his convivial heart, proclaimed that he did not mean to vote the Democratic ticket, he was shoved into the street without ceremony.

The summer was almost over when Dr. Flint made a third trip to New York to look for me. Two candidates were running for Congress, and he returned just in time to vote. The father of my children was the Whig candidate. Until then, the doctor had been a loyal Whig, but now he used all his energy to try to defeat Mr. Sands. He hosted large dinner parties in the shade of his trees and provided plenty of rum and brandy. If any poor guy got too drunk and, in his drunken honesty, announced that he wasn't planning to vote for the Democratic ticket, he was unceremoniously kicked out onto the street.

The doctor expended his liquor in vain. Mr. Sands was elected; an event which occasioned me some anxious thoughts. He had not emancipated my children, and if he should die they would be at the mercy of his heirs. Two little voices, that frequently met my ear, seemed to plead with me not to let their father depart without striving to make their freedom secure. Years had passed since I had spoken to him. I had not even seen him since the night I passed him, unrecognized, in my disguise of a sailor. I supposed he would call before he left, to say something to my grandmother concerning the children, and I resolved what course to take.

The doctor wasted his drink for nothing. Mr. Sands was elected; an event that gave me some worried thoughts. He hadn’t freed my children, and if he were to die, they would be left at the mercy of his heirs. Two little voices that often reached my ears seemed to urge me not to let their father leave without trying to secure their freedom. Years had gone by since I last spoke to him. I hadn’t even seen him since the night I passed by him, unrecognized, in my disguise as a sailor. I figured he would come by before he left to talk to my grandmother about the kids, and I was determined about what to do next.

The day before his departure for Washington I made arrangements, towards evening, to get from my hiding-place into the storeroom below. I found myself so stiff and clumsy that it was with great difficulty I could hitch from one resting place to another. When I reached the storeroom my ankles gave way under me, and I sank exhausted on the floor. It seemed as if I could never use my limbs again. But the purpose I had in view roused all the strength I had. I crawled on my hands and knees to the window, and, screened behind a barrel, I waited for his coming. The clock struck nine, and I knew the steamboat would leave between ten and eleven. My hopes were failing. But presently I heard his voice, saying to some one, “Wait for me a moment. I wish to see aunt Martha.” When he came out, as he passed the window, I said, “Stop one moment, and let me speak for my children.” He started, hesitated, and then passed on, and went out of the gate. I closed the shutter I had partially opened, and sank down behind the barrel. I had suffered much; but seldom had I experienced a keener pang than I then felt. Had my children, then, become of so little consequence to him? And had he so little feeling for their wretched mother that he would not listen a moment while she pleaded for them? Painful memories were so busy within me, that I forgot I had not hooked the shutter, till I heard some one opening it. I looked up. He had come back. “Who called me?” said he, in a low tone. “I did,” I replied. “Oh, Linda,” said he, “I knew your voice; but I was afraid to answer, lest my friend should hear me. Why do you come here? Is it possible you risk yourself in this house? They are mad to allow it. I shall expect to hear that you are all ruined.” I did not wish to implicate him, by letting him know my place of concealment; so I merely said, “I thought you would come to bid grandmother good by, and so I came here to speak a few words to you about emancipating my children. Many changes may take place during the six months you are gone to Washington, and it does not seem right for you to expose them to the risk of such changes. I want nothing for myself; all I ask is, that you will free my children, or authorize some friend to do it, before you go.”

The day before he left for Washington, I set up plans, in the evening, to get from my hiding spot to the storeroom below. I was so stiff and clumsy that it was really hard to move from one resting place to another. When I finally reached the storeroom, my ankles buckled under me, and I collapsed on the floor, completely exhausted. It felt like I might never be able to use my legs again. But my purpose pushed all my remaining strength to the forefront. I crawled on my hands and knees to the window, and, hiding behind a barrel, I waited for him to arrive. The clock struck nine, and I knew the steamboat was leaving between ten and eleven. My hope was fading. But soon I heard his voice saying to someone, “Wait for me a moment. I want to see Aunt Martha.” When he came out and passed the window, I called, “Stop for a moment, and let me talk for my children.” He jumped back, hesitated, and then moved on out of the gate. I closed the shutter I had partially opened and sank back down behind the barrel. I had endured a lot; but I rarely felt a sharper pain than in that moment. Had my children become so unimportant to him? Did he have so little compassion for their miserable mother that he wouldn’t even pause to listen as she begged for them? Painful memories swirled in my mind, and I forgot I hadn’t secured the shutter until I heard someone opening it. I looked up. He had come back. “Who called me?” he asked in a low voice. “I did,” I responded. “Oh, Linda,” he said, “I recognized your voice; but I was afraid to answer in case my friend heard me. Why are you here? Are you really risking yourself in this house? They’re crazy to let you do that. I expect to hear that you’ve all drawn attention.” I didn’t want to put him at risk by revealing my hiding place, so I simply said, “I thought you’d come to say goodbye to grandmother, so I came here to talk to you about freeing my children. A lot can change in the six months you’re away in Washington, and it doesn’t seem right for you to put them at risk for such changes. I want nothing for myself; all I ask is that you either free my children or let a friend do it before you leave.”

He promised he would do it, and also expressed a readiness to make any arrangements whereby I could be purchased.

He promised he would do it and also showed a willingness to make any arrangements to facilitate my purchase.

I heard footsteps approaching, and closed the shutter hastily. I wanted to crawl back to my den, without letting the family know what I had done; for I knew they would deem it very imprudent. But he stepped back into the house, to tell my grandmother that he had spoken with me at the storeroom window, and to beg of her not to allow me to remain in the house over night. He said it was the height of madness for me to be there; that we should certainly all be ruined. Luckily, he was in too much of a hurry to wait for a reply, or the dear old woman would surely have told him all.

I heard footsteps coming closer, so I quickly closed the shutter. I wanted to sneak back to my spot without letting the family know what I had done, since I knew they would think it was very unwise. But he stepped back into the house to tell my grandmother that he had talked to me at the storeroom window and asked her not to let me stay in the house overnight. He said it was pure madness for me to be there and that we would all be doomed. Fortunately, he was in too much of a hurry to wait for a response, or the dear old woman would have definitely told him everything.

I tried to go back to my den, but found it more difficult to go up than I had to come down. Now that my mission was fulfilled, the little strength that had supported me through it was gone, and I sank helpless on the floor. My grandmother, alarmed at the risk I had run, came into the storeroom in the dark, and locked the door behind her. “Linda,” she whispered, “where are you?”

I tried to return to my room, but going up was tougher than coming down. Now that my mission was complete, the little strength that had helped me was gone, and I collapsed helplessly on the floor. My grandmother, worried about the danger I had faced, came into the storeroom in the dark and locked the door behind her. “Linda,” she whispered, “where are you?”

“I am here by the window,” I replied. “I couldn’t have him go away without emancipating the children. Who knows what may happen?”

“I’m here by the window,” I replied. “I couldn’t let him leave without freeing the children. Who knows what could happen?”

“Come, come, child,” said she, “it won’t do for you to stay here another minute. You’ve done wrong; but I can’t blame you, poor thing!”

“Come on, kid,” she said, “you can’t stay here another minute. You’ve made a mistake, but I can’t blame you, poor thing!”

I told her I could not return without assistance, and she must call my uncle. Uncle Phillip came, and pity prevented him from scolding me. He carried me back to my dungeon, laid me tenderly on the bed, gave me some medicine, and asked me if there was any thing more he could do. Then he went away, and I was left with my own thoughts—starless as the midnight darkness around me.

I told her that I couldn't go back without help, and she needed to call my uncle. Uncle Phillip came, and feeling sorry for me kept him from scolding me. He carried me back to my room, gently laid me on the bed, gave me some medicine, and asked if there was anything else he could do. Then he left, and I was alone with my thoughts—dark and empty like the midnight sky around me.

My friends feared I should become a cripple for life; and I was so weary of my long imprisonment that, had it not been for the hope of serving my children, I should have been thankful to die; but, for their sakes, I was willing to bear on.

My friends were afraid I would be a cripple for life, and I was so tired of my long confinement that if it weren't for the hope of helping my kids, I would have been grateful to just die. But for their sake, I was willing to keep going.










XXV. Competition In Cunning.

Dr. Flint had not given me up. Every now and then he would say to my grandmother that I would yet come back, and voluntarily surrender myself; and that when I did, I could be purchased by my relatives, or any one who wished to buy me. I knew his cunning nature too well not to perceive that this was a trap laid for me; and so all my friends understood it. I resolved to match my cunning against his cunning. In order to make him believe that I was in New York, I resolved to write him a letter dated from that place. I sent for my friend Peter, and asked him if he knew any trustworthy seafaring person, who would carry such a letter to New York, and put it in the post office there. He said he knew one that he would trust with his own life to the ends of the world. I reminded him that it was a hazardous thing for him to undertake. He said he knew it, but he was willing to do any thing to help me. I expressed a wish for a New York paper, to ascertain the names of some of the streets. He run his hand into his pocket, and said, “Here is half a one, that was round a cap I bought of a pedler yesterday.” I told him the letter would be ready the next evening. He bade me good by, adding, “Keep up your spirits, Linda; brighter days will come by and by.”

Dr. Flint hadn’t given up on me. Every now and then, he would tell my grandmother that I would come back and turn myself in voluntarily, and that when I did, my relatives or anyone else who wanted to buy me could do so. I knew too well how cunning he was to not see that this was a trap set for me, and all my friends understood it too. I decided to outsmart him. To make him think I was in New York, I planned to write him a letter dated from there. I asked my friend Peter if he knew any trustworthy sailor who could deliver the letter to New York and drop it in the post office. He said he knew someone he would trust with his life anywhere. I reminded him it was a risky thing to do. He acknowledged the risk but was willing to do anything to help me. I mentioned I needed a New York newspaper to find out some street names. He reached into his pocket and said, “Here’s half a one that was wrapped around a cap I bought from a peddler yesterday.” I told him the letter would be ready the next evening. He said goodbye and added, “Keep your chin up, Linda; brighter days will come eventually.”

My uncle Phillip kept watch over the gate until our brief interview was over. Early the next morning, I seated myself near the little aperture to examine the newspaper. It was a piece of the New York Herald; and, for once, the paper that systematically abuses the colored people, was made to render them a service. Having obtained what information I wanted concerning streets and numbers, I wrote two letters, one to my grandmother, the other to Dr. Flint. I reminded him how he, a gray-headed man, had treated a helpless child, who had been placed in his power, and what years of misery he had brought upon her. To my grandmother, I expressed a wish to have my children sent to me at the north, where I could teach them to respect themselves, and set them a virtuous example; which a slave mother was not allowed to do at the south. I asked her to direct her answer to a certain street in Boston, as I did not live in New York, though I went there sometimes. I dated these letters ahead, to allow for the time it would take to carry them, and sent a memorandum of the date to the messenger. When my friend came for the letters, I said, “God bless and reward you, Peter, for this disinterested kindness. Pray be careful. If you are detected, both you and I will have to suffer dreadfully. I have not a relative who would dare to do it for me.” He replied, “You may trust to me, Linda. I don’t forget that your father was my best friend, and I will be a friend to his children so long as God lets me live.”

My uncle Phillip watched over the gate until our short meeting was done. Early the next morning, I sat by the small opening to look at the newspaper. It was a piece from the New York Herald; and, for once, the paper that usually criticizes people of color actually did them a service. After getting the information I needed about streets and numbers, I wrote two letters—one to my grandmother and the other to Dr. Flint. I reminded him how he, an old man, had mistreated a vulnerable child who had been entrusted to his care and the years of suffering he caused her. To my grandmother, I expressed my desire to have my children sent to me up north, where I could teach them to value themselves and set a good example; which a slave mother wasn’t allowed to do in the south. I asked her to send her reply to a specific street in Boston, since I didn’t live in New York, although I visited sometimes. I dated the letters ahead to account for the time it would take to deliver them and passed a note of the date to the messenger. When my friend came for the letters, I said, “God bless and reward you, Peter, for your selfless kindness. Please be careful. If you get caught, both of us will suffer greatly. I don’t have a relative who would dare do this for me.” He replied, “You can trust me, Linda. I won’t forget that your father was my best friend, and I will support his children for as long as God lets me live.”

It was necessary to tell my grandmother what I had done, in order that she might be ready for the letter, and prepared to hear what Dr. Flint might say about my being at the north. She was sadly troubled. She felt sure mischief would come of it. I also told my plan to aunt Nancy, in order that she might report to us what was said at Dr. Flint’s house. I whispered it to her through a crack, and she whispered back, “I hope it will succeed. I shan’t mind being a slave all my life, if I can only see you and the children free.”

I had to tell my grandmother what I did so she would be prepared for the letter and ready to hear what Dr. Flint might say about me being up north. She was really worried. She was convinced that trouble would come from it. I also shared my plan with Aunt Nancy so she could let us know what was said at Dr. Flint’s house. I whispered it to her through a crack, and she whispered back, “I hope it works. I won’t mind being a slave my whole life if I can just see you and the kids free.”

I had directed that my letters should be put into the New York post office on the 20th of the month. On the evening of the 24th my aunt came to say that Dr. Flint and his wife had been talking in a low voice about a letter he had received, and that when he went to his office he promised to bring it when he came to tea. So I concluded I should hear my letter read the next morning. I told my grandmother Dr. Flint would be sure to come, and asked her to have him sit near a certain door, and leave it open, that I might hear what he said. The next morning I took my station within sound of that door, and remained motionless as a statue. It was not long before I heard the gate slam, and the well-known footsteps enter the house. He seated himself in the chair that was placed for him, and said, “Well, Martha, I’ve brought you a letter from Linda. She has sent me a letter, also. I know exactly where to find her; but I don’t choose to go to Boston for her. I had rather she would come back of her own accord, in a respectable manner. Her uncle Phillip is the best person to go for her. With him, she would feel perfectly free to act. I am willing to pay his expenses going and returning. She shall be sold to her friends. Her children are free; at least I suppose they are; and when you obtain her freedom, you’ll make a happy family. I suppose, Martha, you have no objection to my reading to you the letter Linda has written to you.”

I had instructed that my letters should be sent to the New York post office on the 20th of the month. On the evening of the 24th, my aunt came to tell me that Dr. Flint and his wife had been quietly discussing a letter he had received, and that he promised to bring it when he came to tea. So, I assumed I would hear my letter read the next morning. I told my grandmother that Dr. Flint would definitely come and asked her to have him sit near a certain door and leave it open so I could hear what he said. The next morning, I positioned myself close enough to that door and stayed still as a statue. It wasn't long before I heard the gate slam and the familiar footsteps enter the house. He sat down in the chair that was prepared for him and said, “Well, Martha, I’ve brought you a letter from Linda. She has also sent me a letter. I know exactly where to find her, but I prefer not to go to Boston for her. I would rather she come back on her own, in a respectable way. Her uncle Phillip is the best person to go for her. With him, she would feel completely free to act. I’m willing to cover his expenses for going and coming back. She shall be sold to her friends. Her children are free; at least I assume they are; and when you obtain her freedom, you’ll create a happy family. I assume, Martha, you have no objection to my reading the letter Linda has written to you.”

He broke the seal, and I heard him read it. The old villain! He had suppressed the letter I wrote to grandmother, and prepared a substitute of his own, the purport of which was as follows:—

He broke the seal, and I heard him read it. That old villain! He had hidden the letter I wrote to Grandma and made his own version, which said the following:—

“Dear Grandmother: I have long wanted to write to you; but the disgraceful manner in which I left you and my children made me ashamed to do it. If you knew how much I have suffered since I ran away, you would pity and forgive me. I have purchased freedom at a dear rate. If any arrangement could be made for me to return to the south without being a slave, I would gladly come. If not, I beg of you to send my children to the north. I cannot live any longer without them. Let me know in time, and I will meet them in New York or Philadelphia, whichever place best suits my uncle’s convenience. Write as soon as possible to your unhappy daughter, Linda.”

“It is very much as I expected it would be,” said the old hypocrite, rising to go. “You see the foolish girl has repented of her rashness, and wants to return. We must help her to do it, Martha. Talk with Phillip about it. If he will go for her, she will trust to him, and come back. I should like an answer to-morrow. Good morning, Martha.”

“It’s exactly what I thought it would be,” said the old hypocrite, getting ready to leave. “You see, the foolish girl has regretted her impulsiveness and wants to come back. We need to help her do that, Martha. Talk to Phillip about it. If he goes for her, she’ll trust him and return. I’d like an answer by tomorrow. Good morning, Martha.”

As he stepped out on the piazza, he stumbled over my little girl. “Ah, Ellen, is that you?” he said, in his most gracious manner. “I didn’t see you. How do you do?”

As he stepped out onto the piazza, he tripped over my little girl. “Oh, Ellen, is that you?” he said, in his most polite way. “I didn’t see you. How are you?”

“Pretty well, sir,” she replied. “I heard you tell grandmother that my mother is coming home. I want to see her.”

“Pretty well, sir,” she replied. “I heard you tell grandma that my mom is coming home. I want to see her.”

“Yes, Ellen, I am going to bring her home very soon,” rejoined he; “and you shall see her as much as you like, you little curly-headed nigger.”

“Yes, Ellen, I’m going to bring her home really soon,” he replied; “and you can see her as much as you want, you little curly-headed cutie.”

This was as good as a comedy to me, who had heard it all; but grandmother was frightened and distressed, because the doctor wanted my uncle to go for me.

This was like a comedy to me, having heard it all before; but my grandmother was scared and worried because the doctor wanted my uncle to come for me.

The next evening Dr. Flint called to talk the matter over. My uncle told him that from what he had heard of Massachusetts, he judged he should be mobbed if he went there after a runaway slave. “All stuff and nonsense, Phillip!” replied the doctor. “Do you suppose I want you to kick up a row in Boston? The business can all be done quietly. Linda writes that she wants to come back. You are her relative, and she would trust you. The case would be different if I went. She might object to coming with me; and the damned abolitionists, if they knew I was her master, would not believe me, if I told them she had begged to go back. They would get up a row; and I should not like to see Linda dragged through the streets like a common negro. She has been very ungrateful to me for all my kindness; but I forgive her, and want to act the part of a friend towards her. I have no wish to hold her as my slave. Her friends can buy her as soon as she arrives here.”

The next evening, Dr. Flint came by to discuss the situation. My uncle told him that from what he had heard about Massachusetts, he thought he would be mobbed if he went there after a runaway slave. “That’s ridiculous, Phillip!” replied the doctor. “Do you really think I want you to cause a scene in Boston? We can handle this quietly. Linda says she wants to come back. You are her relative, and she would trust you. It would be a different situation if I went. She might not want to come with me; and the damn abolitionists, if they found out I was her master, wouldn’t believe me if I told them she wanted to return. They would stir things up, and I wouldn’t want to see Linda dragged through the streets like a common black. She has been pretty ungrateful for all my kindness, but I forgive her and want to be a friend to her. I have no desire to keep her as my slave. Her friends can buy her as soon as she gets here.”

Finding that his arguments failed to convince my uncle, the doctor “let the cat out of the bag,” by saying that he had written to the mayor of Boston, to ascertain whether there was a person of my description at the street and number from which my letter was dated. He had omitted this date in the letter he had made up to read to my grandmother. If I had dated from New York, the old man would probably have made another journey to that city. But even in that dark region, where knowledge is so carefully excluded from the slave, I had heard enough about Massachusetts to come to the conclusion that slaveholders did not consider it a comfortable place to go to in search of a runaway. That was before the Fugitive Slave Law was passed; before Massachusetts had consented to become a “nigger hunter” for the south.

Finding that his arguments didn’t convince my uncle, the doctor “let the cat out of the bag” by saying that he had written to the mayor of Boston to find out if there was someone matching my description at the address from which my letter was sent. He had left out this date in the letter he prepared to read to my grandmother. If I had dated it from New York, the old man probably would have made another trip to that city. But even in that dark place, where knowledge is so carefully kept from the slave, I had heard enough about Massachusetts to conclude that slaveholders didn’t view it as a safe place to go looking for a runaway. That was before the Fugitive Slave Law was passed; before Massachusetts had agreed to become a “black hunter” for the South.

My grandmother, who had become skittish by seeing her family always in danger, came to me with a very distressed countenance, and said, “What will you do if the mayor of Boston sends him word that you haven’t been there? Then he will suspect the letter was a trick; and maybe he’ll find out something about it, and we shall all get into trouble. O Linda, I wish you had never sent the letters.”

My grandmother, who had become anxious from seeing her family always in danger, came to me looking really upset and said, “What will you do if the mayor of Boston tells him you haven’t been there? Then he’ll think the letter was a trick, and maybe he’ll find out something about it, and we’ll all get in trouble. Oh Linda, I wish you had never sent the letters.”

“Don’t worry yourself, Grandmother,” said I. “The mayor of Boston won’t trouble himself to hunt niggers for Dr. Flint. The letters will do good in the end. I shall get out of this dark hole some time or other.”

“Don’t worry, Grandmother,” I said. “The mayor of Boston won’t bother to look for Black people for Dr. Flint. The letters will ultimately do some good. I’ll find a way out of this dark place eventually.”

“I hope you will, child,” replied the good, patient old friend. “You have been here a long time; almost five years; but whenever you do go, it will break your old grandmother’s heart. I should be expecting every day to hear that you were brought back in irons and put in jail. God help you, poor child! Let us be thankful that some time or other we shall go ‘where the wicked cease from troubling, and the weary are at rest.’” My heart responded, Amen.

“I hope you will, kid,” replied the kind, patient old friend. “You’ve been here a long time—almost five years—but whenever you do leave, it will break your grandmother’s heart. I expect to hear any day that you were brought back in handcuffs and thrown in jail. God help you, poor kid! Let’s be thankful that someday we’ll go ‘where the wicked cease from troubling, and the weary are at rest.’” My heart replied, Amen.

The fact that Dr. Flint had written to the mayor of Boston convinced me that he believed my letter to be genuine, and of course that he had no suspicion of my being any where in the vicinity. It was a great object to keep up this delusion, for it made me and my friends feel less anxious, and it would be very convenient whenever there was a chance to escape. I resolved, therefore, to continue to write letters from the north from time to time.

The fact that Dr. Flint had written to the mayor of Boston made me believe he thought my letter was real, and of course, he had no idea I was anywhere nearby. It was really important to maintain this illusion because it eased the worries of me and my friends, and it would be super helpful whenever we got the chance to escape. So, I decided to keep writing letters from the north every now and then.

Two or three weeks passed, and as no news came from the mayor of Boston, grandmother began to listen to my entreaty to be allowed to leave my cell, sometimes, and exercise my limbs to prevent my becoming a cripple. I was allowed to slip down into the small storeroom, early in the morning, and remain there a little while. The room was all filled up with barrels, except a small open space under my trap-door. This faced the door, the upper part of which was of glass, and purposely left uncurtained, that the curious might look in. The air of this place was close; but it was so much better than the atmosphere of my cell, that I dreaded to return. I came down as soon as it was light, and remained till eight o’clock, when people began to be about, and there was danger that some one might come on the piazza. I had tried various applications to bring warmth and feeling into my limbs, but without avail. They were so numb and stiff that it was a painful effort to move; and had my enemies come upon me during the first mornings I tried to exercise them a little in the small unoccupied space of the storeroom, it would have been impossible for me to have escaped.

Two or three weeks went by, and since I hadn’t heard anything from the mayor of Boston, my grandmother started to listen to my pleas to be allowed to leave my cell sometimes and stretch my legs to avoid becoming crippled. I was given permission to sneak down into the small storeroom early in the morning and stay there for a little while. The room was filled with barrels, except for a small open space under my trap-door. This was facing the door, which had a glass upper part that was intentionally left uncurtained so that curious people could look in. The air in this place was stuffy, but it was so much better than the stale air in my cell that I dreaded going back. I would come down as soon as it got light and stay until eight o’clock when people started moving around, making it risky that someone might come onto the porch. I had tried different methods to bring warmth and feeling back into my limbs, but nothing worked. They were so numb and stiff that moving them was painful; if my enemies had found me during the first mornings I attempted to exercise in the small open area of the storeroom, I wouldn’t have been able to escape.










XXVI. Important Era In My Brother’s Life.

I missed the company and kind attentions of my brother William, who had gone to Washington with his master, Mr. Sands. We received several letters from him, written without any allusion to me, but expressed in such a manner that I knew he did not forget me. I disguised my hand, and wrote to him in the same manner. It was a long session; and when it closed, William wrote to inform us that Mr. Sands was going to the north, to be gone some time, and that he was to accompany him. I knew that his master had promised to give him his freedom, but no time had been specified. Would William trust to a slave’s chances? I remembered how we used to talk together, in our young days, about obtaining our freedom, and I thought it very doubtful whether he would come back to us.

I missed my brother William and his kind attention, who had gone to Washington with his master, Mr. Sands. We got several letters from him, which didn’t mention me, but were written in a way that showed he hadn’t forgotten me. I faked my handwriting and wrote to him in a similar style. The session was long, and when it ended, William wrote to let us know that Mr. Sands was heading north for a while and that he would be going with him. I knew his master had promised him his freedom, but no timeline was given. Would William take a chance as a slave? I remembered how we used to talk about getting our freedom when we were younger, and I thought it was very uncertain whether he would come back to us.

Grandmother received a letter from Mr. Sands, saying that William had proved a most faithful servant, and he would also say a valued friend; that no mother had ever trained a better boy. He said he had travelled through the Northern States and Canada; and though the abolitionists had tried to decoy him away, they had never succeeded. He ended by saying they should be at home shortly.

Grandmother got a letter from Mr. Sands, saying that William had been a very loyal servant and a valued friend; that no mother had ever raised a better boy. He mentioned that he had traveled through the Northern States and Canada, and although the abolitionists had tried to lure him away, they had never succeeded. He concluded by saying they would be home soon.

We expected letters from William, describing the novelties of his journey, but none came. In time, it was reported that Mr. Sands would return late in the autumn, accompanied by a bride. Still no letters from William. I felt almost sure I should never see him again on southern soil; but had he no word of comfort to send to his friends at home? to the poor captive in her dungeon? My thoughts wandered through the dark past, and over the uncertain future. Alone in my cell, where no eye but God’s could see me, I wept bitter tears. How earnestly I prayed to him to restore me to my children, and enable me to be a useful woman and a good mother!

We were waiting for letters from William, telling us about the new things he was experiencing on his journey, but none arrived. Eventually, we heard that Mr. Sands would be coming back late in the fall, with a bride by his side. Still, there were no letters from William. I almost convinced myself that I would never see him again on southern ground; but didn’t he have any comforting words to share with his friends at home? What about the poor captive in her dungeon? My thoughts drifted through the dark past and the uncertain future. Alone in my cell, where only God’s eyes could see me, I cried bitter tears. How urgently I prayed for Him to bring me back to my children and help me be a valuable woman and a good mother!

At last the day arrived for the return of the travellers. Grandmother had made loving preparations to welcome her absent boy back to the old hearthstone. When the dinner table was laid, William’s plate occupied its old place. The stage coach went by empty. My grandmother waited dinner. She thought perhaps he was necessarily detained by his master. In my prison I listened anxiously, expecting every moment to hear my dear brother’s voice and step. In the course of the afternoon a lad was sent by Mr. Sands to tell grandmother that William did not return with him; that the abolitionists had decoyed him away. But he begged her not to feel troubled about it, for he felt confident she would see William in a few days. As soon as he had time to reflect he would come back, for he could never expect to be so well off at the north as he had been with him.

At last, the day arrived for the travelers to return. Grandma had made loving preparations to welcome her absent boy back to the old home. When the dinner table was set, William’s plate was in its usual spot. The stagecoach passed by empty. Grandma waited for dinner. She thought maybe he was held up by his master. In my confinement, I listened anxiously, expecting at any moment to hear my dear brother’s voice and footsteps. In the afternoon, a boy was sent by Mr. Sands to inform Grandma that William didn’t return with him; the abolitionists had lured him away. But he assured her not to worry, as he was confident she would see William in a few days. Once he had time to think, he would come back, since he could never expect to be better off up north than he was with him.

If you had seen the tears, and heard the sobs, you would have thought the messenger had brought tidings of death instead of freedom. Poor old grandmother felt that she should never see her darling boy again. And I was selfish. I thought more of what I had lost, than of what my brother had gained. A new anxiety began to trouble me. Mr. Sands had expended a good deal of money, and would naturally feel irritated by the loss he had incurred. I greatly feared this might injure the prospects of my children, who were now becoming valuable property. I longed to have their emancipation made certain. The more so, because their master and father was now married. I was too familiar with slavery not to know that promises made to slaves, though with kind intentions, and sincere at the time, depend upon many contingencies for their fulfilment.

If you had seen the tears and heard the cries, you would have thought the messenger had delivered news of death instead of freedom. Poor grandmother felt she would never see her beloved boy again. And I was selfish. I was more focused on what I had lost than on what my brother had gained. A new worry started to weigh on me. Mr. Sands had spent a lot of money and would naturally be upset about the loss he had faced. I was really concerned this might harm my children's future, as they were now becoming valuable assets. I wanted to ensure their freedom was secured, especially since their master and father was now married. I knew slavery well enough to understand that promises made to slaves, even if made with good intentions and sincerity at the time, depend on many factors for them to be kept.

Much as I wished William to be free, the step he had taken made me sad and anxious. The following Sabbath was calm and clear; so beautiful that it seemed like a Sabbath in the eternal world. My grandmother brought the children out on the piazza, that I might hear their voices. She thought it would comfort me in my despondency; and it did. They chatted merrily, as only children can. Benny said, “Grandmother, do you think uncle Will has gone for good? Won’t he ever come back again? May be he’ll find mother. If he does, won’t she be glad to see him! Why don’t you and uncle Phillip, and all of us, go and live where mother is? I should like it; wouldn’t you, Ellen?”

As much as I wanted William to be free, the decision he made made me sad and worried. The next Sunday was calm and clear; so beautiful that it felt like a Sunday in heaven. My grandmother brought the kids out on the porch so I could hear their voices. She thought it would cheer me up during my sadness; and it did. They chatted happily, just like kids do. Benny said, “Grandma, do you think Uncle Will is gone for good? Will he ever come back? Maybe he’ll find Mom. If he does, won’t she be happy to see him! Why don’t you, Uncle Phillip, and all of us go live where Mom is? I’d like that; wouldn’t you, Ellen?”

“Yes, I should like it,” replied Ellen; “but how could we find her? Do you know the place, grandmother? I don’t remember how mother looked—do you, Benny?”

“Yes, I’d like that,” replied Ellen; “but how could we find her? Do you know where she is, grandmother? I don’t remember how mom looked—do you, Benny?”

Benny was just beginning to describe me when they were interrupted by an old slave woman, a near neighbor, named Aggie. This poor creature had witnessed the sale of her children, and seen them carried off to parts unknown, without any hopes of ever hearing from them again. She saw that my grandmother had been weeping, and she said, in a sympathizing tone, “What’s the matter, aunt Marthy?”

Benny was just starting to tell me about myself when they were interrupted by an old neighbor, a former slave named Aggie. This poor woman had seen her children sold and taken away to who-knows-where, with no hope of ever hearing from them again. Noticing that my grandmother had been crying, she spoke in a sympathetic tone, “What’s wrong, Aunt Marthy?”

“O Aggie,” she replied, “it seems as if I shouldn’t have any of my children or grandchildren left to hand me a drink when I’m dying, and lay my old body in the ground. My boy didn’t come back with Mr. Sands. He staid at the north.”

“O Aggie,” she replied, “it feels like I won’t have any of my children or grandchildren around to give me a drink when I’m dying and to lay my old body to rest. My son didn’t come back with Mr. Sands. He stayed up north.”

Poor old Aggie clapped her hands for joy. “Is dat what you’s crying fur?” she exclaimed. “Git down on your knees and bress de Lord! I don’t know whar my poor chillern is, and I nebber ’spect to know. You don’t know whar poor Linda’s gone to; but you do know whar her brudder is. He’s in free parts; and dat’s de right place. Don’t murmur at de Lord’s doings, but git down on your knees and tank him for his goodness.”

Poor old Aggie clapped her hands in joy. “Is that what you’re crying for?” she exclaimed. “Get down on your knees and thank the Lord! I don’t know where my poor children are, and I never expect to find out. You don’t know where poor Linda has gone; but you do know where her brother is. He’s in free lands, and that’s the right place. Don’t complain about the Lord’s plans, but get down on your knees and thank him for his goodness.”

My selfishness was rebuked by what poor Aggie said. She rejoiced over the escape of one who was merely her fellow-bondman, while his own sister was only thinking what his good fortune might cost her children. I knelt and prayed God to forgive me; and I thanked him from my heart, that one of my family was saved from the grasp of slavery.

My selfishness was challenged by what poor Aggie said. She celebrated the escape of someone who was just another captive, while his own sister was only worried about what his good luck might mean for her children. I knelt and prayed for God to forgive me, and I genuinely thanked Him that one of my family was saved from the grip of slavery.

It was not long before we received a letter from William. He wrote that Mr. Sands had always treated him kindly, and that he had tried to do his duty to him faithfully. But ever since he was a boy, he had longed to be free; and he had already gone through enough to convince him he had better not lose the chance that offered. He concluded by saying, “Don’t worry about me, dear grandmother. I shall think of you always; and it will spur me on to work hard and try to do right. When I have earned money enough to give you a home, perhaps you will come to the north, and we can all live happy together.”

It wasn't long before we got a letter from William. He wrote that Mr. Sands had always treated him well and that he had tried to do his duty by him faithfully. But ever since he was a kid, he had wanted to be free; and he had already been through enough to know he shouldn't miss the opportunity in front of him. He ended by saying, “Don’t worry about me, dear grandmother. I will always think of you, and that will motivate me to work hard and do the right thing. Once I’ve made enough money to provide you with a home, maybe you'll come up north, and we can all be happy together.”

Mr. Sands told my uncle Phillip the particulars about William’s leaving him. He said, “I trusted him as if he were my own brother, and treated him as kindly. The abolitionists talked to him in several places; but I had no idea they could tempt him. However, I don’t blame William. He’s young and inconsiderate, and those Northern rascals decoyed him. I must confess the scamp was very bold about it. I met him coming down the steps of the Astor House with his trunk on his shoulder, and I asked him where he was going. He said he was going to change his old trunk. I told him it was rather shabby, and asked if he didn’t need some money. He said, No, thanked me, and went off. He did not return so soon as I expected; but I waited patiently. At last I went to see if our trunks were packed, ready for our journey. I found them locked, and a sealed note on the table informed me where I could find the keys. The fellow even tried to be religious. He wrote that he hoped God would always bless me, and reward me for my kindness; that he was not unwilling to serve me; but he wanted to be a free man; and that if I thought he did wrong, he hoped I would forgive him. I intended to give him his freedom in five years. He might have trusted me. He has shown himself ungrateful; but I shall not go for him, or send for him. I feel confident that he will soon return to me.”

Mr. Sands told my uncle Phillip the details about William leaving him. He said, “I trusted him like he was my own brother and treated him just as kindly. The abolitionists spoke to him in several places, but I never thought they could lure him away. Still, I don’t blame William. He’s young and thoughtless, and those Northern guys tricked him. I have to admit the kid was pretty bold about it. I saw him coming down the steps of the Astor House with his trunk on his shoulder, and I asked him where he was headed. He said he was going to get a new trunk. I pointed out that his was a bit shabby and asked if he needed some money. He said no, thanked me, and left. He didn’t come back as quickly as I expected, but I waited patiently. Eventually, I went to check if our trunks were packed and ready for our trip. I found them locked, and a sealed note on the table told me where I could find the keys. The guy even tried to sound moral. He wrote that he hoped God would always bless me and reward me for my kindness, that he wasn’t unwilling to serve me, but he wanted to be a free man; and if I thought he did wrong, he hoped I would forgive him. I planned to give him his freedom in five years. He could have trusted me. He’s shown himself to be ungrateful, but I won’t go after him or call for him. I’m confident he’ll come back to me soon.”

I afterwards heard an account of the affair from William himself. He had not been urged away by abolitionists. He needed no information they could give him about slavery to stimulate his desire for freedom. He looked at his hands, and remembered that they were once in irons. What security had he that they would not be so again? Mr. Sands was kind to him; but he might indefinitely postpone the promise he had made to give him his freedom. He might come under pecuniary embarrassments, and his property be seized by creditors; or he might die, without making any arrangements in his favor. He had too often known such accidents to happen to slaves who had kind masters, and he wisely resolved to make sure of the present opportunity to own himself. He was scrupulous about taking any money from his master on false pretences; so he sold his best clothes to pay for his passage to Boston. The slaveholders pronounced him a base, ungrateful wretch, for thus requiting his master’s indulgence. What would they have done under similar circumstances?

I later heard the story from William himself. He hadn’t been pushed away by abolitionists. He didn’t need any information they could provide about slavery to fuel his desire for freedom. He looked at his hands and remembered they had once been in chains. What guarantee did he have that they wouldn’t be again? Mr. Sands was nice to him, but he could always delay the promise he made to give him his freedom. He could run into financial problems, and his property could be taken by creditors; or he could die without making any arrangements in his favor. He had seen this kind of thing happen too often to slaves with good masters, so he wisely decided to take advantage of the opportunity to own himself. He was careful about taking any money from his master under false pretenses, so he sold his best clothes to cover his passage to Boston. The slaveholders called him a despicable, ungrateful wretch for paying back his master’s kindness this way. What would they have done in similar circumstances?

When Dr. Flint’s family heard that William had deserted Mr. Sands, they chuckled greatly over the news. Mrs. Flint made her usual manifestations of Christian feeling, by saying, “I’m glad of it. I hope he’ll never get him again. I like to see people paid back in their own coin. I reckon Linda’s children will have to pay for it. I should be glad to see them in the speculator’s hands again, for I’m tired of seeing those little niggers march about the streets.”

When Dr. Flint’s family found out that William had left Mr. Sands, they laughed a lot at the news. Mrs. Flint expressed her typical Christian feelings by saying, “I’m glad about it. I hope he never gets him back. I like to see people get what they deserve. I guess Linda’s kids will have to face the consequences. I would be happy to see them in the speculator’s hands again because I’m tired of watching those little kids walking around the streets.”










XXVII. New Destination For The Children.

Mrs. Flint proclaimed her intention of informing Mrs. Sands who was the father of my children. She likewise proposed to tell her what an artful devil I was; that I had made a great deal of trouble in her family; that when Mr. Sands was at the north, she didn’t doubt I had followed him in disguise, and persuaded William to run away. She had some reason to entertain such an idea; for I had written from the north, from time to time, and I dated my letters from various places. Many of them fell into Dr. Flint’s hands, as I expected they would; and he must have come to the conclusion that I travelled about a good deal. He kept a close watch over my children, thinking they would eventually lead to my detection.

Mrs. Flint announced her plan to tell Mrs. Sands who the father of my children was. She also intended to inform her what a cunning person I was; that I had caused a lot of trouble in her family; that when Mr. Sands was up north, she was sure I had followed him in disguise and convinced William to escape. She had some reason to think that; I had sent letters from the north every so often, dating them from different places. Many of those letters ended up in Dr. Flint’s hands, just as I thought they would; and he must have concluded that I moved around a lot. He kept a close eye on my children, believing they would eventually lead to my capture.

A new and unexpected trial was in store for me. One day, when Mr. Sands and his wife were walking in the street, they met Benny. The lady took a fancy to him, and exclaimed, “What a pretty little negro! Whom does he belong to?”

A new and unexpected challenge was ahead of me. One day, when Mr. Sands and his wife were walking down the street, they ran into Benny. The lady was drawn to him and exclaimed, “What a cute little guy! Who does he belong to?”

Benny did not hear the answer; but he came home very indignant with the stranger lady, because she had called him a negro. A few days afterwards, Mr. Sands called on my grandmother, and told her he wanted her to take the children to his house. He said he had informed his wife of his relation to them, and told her they were motherless; and she wanted to see them.

Benny didn't hear the answer, but he came home very upset with the stranger lady because she had called him a black. A few days later, Mr. Sands visited my grandmother and told her he wanted her to bring the children to his house. He said he had informed his wife about his relationship with them and mentioned that they were motherless, and she wanted to see them.

When he had gone, my grandmother came and asked what I would do. The question seemed a mockery. What could I do? They were Mr. Sands’s slaves, and their mother was a slave, whom he had represented to be dead. Perhaps he thought I was. I was too much pained and puzzled to come to any decision; and the children were carried without my knowledge.

When he left, my grandmother came and asked what I was going to do. The question felt like a joke. What could I do? They were Mr. Sands's slaves, and their mother was a slave who he claimed was dead. Maybe he thought I was too. I was too hurt and confused to make any decisions, and the children were taken away without me knowing.

Mrs. Sands had a sister from Illinois staying with her. This lady, who had no children of her own, was so much pleased with Ellen, that she offered to adopt her, and bring her up as she would a daughter. Mrs. Sands wanted to take Benjamin. When grandmother reported this to me, I was tried almost beyond endurance. Was this all I was to gain by what I had suffered for the sake of having my children free? True, the prospect seemed fair; but I knew too well how lightly slaveholders held such “parental relations.” If pecuniary troubles should come, or if the new wife required more money than could conveniently be spared, my children might be thought of as a convenient means of raising funds. I had no trust in thee, O Slavery! Never should I know peace till my children were emancipated with all due formalities of law.

Mrs. Sands had a sister from Illinois staying with her. This woman, who had no children of her own, was so taken with Ellen that she offered to adopt her and raise her like a daughter. Mrs. Sands wanted to take Benjamin. When grandmother told me this, I was nearly beside myself. Was this all I was going to get after everything I had endured to keep my children free? True, the situation looked promising, but I knew all too well how casually slaveholders treated such “parental relationships.” If financial issues arose, or if the new wife needed more money than could be easily given, my children might be seen as a convenient way to raise funds. I had no faith in you, O Slavery! I would never find peace until my children were freed with all the proper legal steps.

I was too proud to ask Mr. Sands to do any thing for my own benefit; but I could bring myself to become a supplicant for my children. I resolved to remind him of the promise he had made me, and to throw myself upon his honor for the performance of it. I persuaded my grandmother to go to him, and tell him I was not dead, and that I earnestly entreated him to keep the promise he had made me; that I had heard of the recent proposals concerning my children, and did not feel easy to accept them; that he had promised to emancipate them, and it was time for him to redeem his pledge. I knew there was some risk in thus betraying that I was in the vicinity; but what will not a mother do for her children? He received the message with surprise, and said, “The children are free. I have never intended to claim them as slaves. Linda may decide their fate. In my opinion, they had better be sent to the north. I don’t think they are quite safe here. Dr. Flint boasts that they are still in his power. He says they were his daughter’s property, and as she was not of age when they were sold, the contract is not legally binding.”

I was too proud to ask Mr. Sands for anything for myself, but I could humble myself to make a request for my children. I decided to remind him of the promise he had made to me and rely on his honor to keep it. I convinced my grandmother to go to him and let him know that I was alive, and that I earnestly asked him to fulfill the promise he made; that I had heard about the recent proposals regarding my children and was uneasy about accepting them; that he had promised to free them, and it was time for him to follow through on his commitment. I knew there was some risk in revealing that I was nearby, but what wouldn’t a mother do for her children? He received the message with surprise and said, “The children are free. I have never intended to claim them as slaves. Linda can decide their fate. In my opinion, they should be sent north. I don’t think they are safe here. Dr. Flint boasts that they are still under his control. He says they were his daughter’s property, and since she was not of age when they were sold, the contract is not legally binding.”

So, then, after all I had endured for their sakes, my poor children were between two fires; between my old master and their new master! And I was powerless. There was no protecting arm of the law for me to invoke. Mr. Sands proposed that Ellen should go, for the present, to some of his relatives, who had removed to Brooklyn, Long Island. It was promised that she should be well taken care of, and sent to school. I consented to it, as the best arrangement I could make for her. My grandmother, of course, negotiated it all; and Mrs. Sands knew of no other person in the transaction. She proposed that they should take Ellen with them to Washington, and keep her till they had a good chance of sending her, with friends, to Brooklyn. She had an infant daughter. I had had a glimpse of it, as the nurse passed with it in her arms. It was not a pleasant thought to me, that the bondwoman’s child should tend her free-born sister; but there was no alternative. Ellen was made ready for the journey. O, how it tried my heart to send her away, so young, alone, among strangers! Without a mother’s love to shelter her from the storms of life; almost without memory of a mother! I doubted whether she and Benny would have for me the natural affection that children feel for a parent. I thought to myself that I might perhaps never see my daughter again, and I had a great desire that she should look upon me, before she went, that she might take my image with her in her memory. It seemed to me cruel to have her brought to my dungeon. It was sorrow enough for her young heart to know that her mother was a victim of slavery, without seeing the wretched hiding-place to which it had driven her. I begged permission to pass the last night in one of the open chambers, with my little girl. They thought I was crazy to think of trusting such a young child with my perilous secret. I told them I had watched her character, and I felt sure she would not betray me; that I was determined to have an interview, and if they would not facilitate it, I would take my own way to obtain it. They remonstrated against the rashness of such a proceeding; but finding they could not change my purpose, they yielded. I slipped through the trap-door into the storeroom, and my uncle kept watch at the gate, while I passed into the piazza and went up stairs, to the room I used to occupy. It was more than five years since I had seen it; and how the memories crowded on me! There I had taken shelter when my mistress drove me from her house; there came my old tyrant, to mock, insult, and curse me; there my children were first laid in my arms; there I had watched over them, each day with a deeper and sadder love; there I had knelt to God, in anguish of heart, to forgive the wrong I had done. How vividly it all came back! And after this long, gloomy interval, I stood there such a wreck!

So, after everything I'd been through for them, my poor kids were caught between two fires: my old master and their new one! And I was helpless. There was no supportive arm of the law I could call on. Mr. Sands suggested that Ellen go stay with some of his relatives who had moved to Brooklyn, Long Island, promising she would be well taken care of and sent to school. I agreed, as it was the best option I could manage for her. My grandmother handled all the arrangements, and Mrs. Sands knew nothing about it. She proposed taking Ellen with them to Washington and keeping her there until they had a good opportunity to send her, along with friends, to Brooklyn. She had a baby daughter. I had caught a glimpse of her when the nurse carried her by. It didn't sit well with me that the child of a bondwoman would take care of her free-born sister, but there was no other choice. Ellen was prepared for the journey. Oh, how it broke my heart to send her away, so young and alone among strangers! Without a mother's love to shield her from life's storms; almost without even a memory of me! I doubted whether she and Benny would feel the natural affection that children usually have for a parent. I thought about how I might never see my daughter again, and I truly wanted her to see me before she left so that she could carry my image in her mind. It felt cruel to have her brought to my dungeon. It was painful enough for her young heart to know her mother was a slave without seeing the miserable hiding place it had forced me into. I begged to spend the last night in one of the open rooms with my little girl. They thought I was crazy to trust such a young child with my dangerous secret. I assured them I had observed her character and was confident she wouldn't betray me; that I was determined to have a meeting, and if they wouldn't help, I would find a way to make it happen. They argued against the recklessness of such a plan, but when they realized they couldn't change my mind, they gave in. I slipped through the trapdoor into the storeroom, and my uncle kept watch at the gate while I moved to the porch and went upstairs to the room I once occupied. It had been more than five years since I had seen it, and the memories flooded back! That's where I sought refuge when my mistress kicked me out; that's where my old tyrant came to mock, insult, and curse me; that's where I first held my children in my arms; that's where I watched over them each day with a love that grew deeper and sadder; that's where I had knelt to God in anguish, asking for forgiveness for the wrong I'd done. It all came back so clearly! And after this long, dark time, I stood there such a wreck!

In the midst of these meditations, I heard footsteps on the stairs. The door opened, and my uncle Phillip came in, leading Ellen by the hand. I put my arms round her, and said, “Ellen, my dear child, I am your mother.” She drew back a little, and looked at me; then, with sweet confidence, she laid her cheek against mine, and I folded her to the heart that had been so long desolated. She was the first to speak. Raising her head, she said, inquiringly, “You really are my mother?” I told her I really was; that during all the long time she had not seen me, I had loved her most tenderly; and that now she was going away, I wanted to see her and talk with her, that she might remember me. With a sob in her voice, she said, “I’m glad you’ve come to see me; but why didn’t you ever come before? Benny and I have wanted so much to see you! He remembers you, and sometimes he tells me about you. Why didn’t you come home when Dr. Flint went to bring you?”

In the middle of these thoughts, I heard footsteps on the stairs. The door opened, and my uncle Phillip walked in, holding Ellen's hand. I wrapped my arms around her and said, “Ellen, my dear, I’m your mother.” She pulled back a bit and looked at me; then, with sweet confidence, she rested her cheek against mine, and I pulled her close to the heart that had been so lonely for so long. She was the first to speak. Lifting her head, she asked, “You really are my mother?” I assured her that I truly was; that throughout all the time she hadn’t seen me, I loved her very much; and now that she was leaving, I wanted to see her and talk with her so she could remember me. With a sob in her voice, she said, “I’m glad you’ve come to see me; but why didn’t you ever come before? Benny and I have really wanted to see you! He remembers you, and sometimes he tells me about you. Why didn’t you come home when Dr. Flint went to get you?”

I answered, “I couldn’t come before, dear. But now that I am with you, tell me whether you like to go away.” “I don’t know,” said she, crying. “Grandmother says I ought not to cry; that I am going to a good place, where I can learn to read and write, and that by and by I can write her a letter. But I shan’t have Benny, or grandmother, or uncle Phillip, or any body to love me. Can’t you go with me? O, do go, dear mother!”

I said, “I couldn’t come before, sweetie. But now that I’m here with you, tell me if you want to leave.” “I don’t know,” she replied, tearing up. “Grandma says I shouldn’t cry; that I’m going to a good place where I can learn to read and write, and eventually I can write her a letter. But I won’t have Benny, or Grandma, or Uncle Phillip, or anyone to love me. Can’t you come with me? Oh, please come, dear Mom!”

I told her I couldn’t go now; but sometime I would come to her, and then she and Benny and I would live together, and have happy times. She wanted to run and bring Benny to see me now. I told her he was going to the north, before long, with uncle Phillip, and then I would come to see him before he went away. I asked if she would like to have me stay all night and sleep with her. “O, yes,” she replied. Then, turning to her uncle, she said, pleadingly, “May I stay? Please, uncle! She is my own mother.” He laid his hand on her head, and said, solemnly, “Ellen, this is the secret you have promised grandmother never to tell. If you ever speak of it to any body, they will never let you see your grandmother again, and your mother can never come to Brooklyn.” “Uncle,” she replied, “I will never tell.” He told her she might stay with me; and when he had gone, I took her in my arms and told her I was a slave, and that was the reason she must never say she had seen me. I exhorted her to be a good child, to try to please the people where she was going, and that God would raise her up friends. I told her to say her prayers, and remember always to pray for her poor mother, and that God would permit us to meet again. She wept, and I did not check her tears. Perhaps she would never again have a chance to pour her tears into a mother’s bosom. All night she nestled in my arms, and I had no inclination to slumber. The moments were too precious to lose any of them. Once, when I thought she was asleep, I kissed her forehead softly, and she said, “I am not asleep, dear mother.”

I told her I couldn’t go now, but I would visit her sometime, and then she, Benny, and I would live together and have great times. She wanted to run and bring Benny to see me right away. I told her he would be heading north soon with Uncle Phillip, and that I would see him before he left. I asked if she would like me to stay the night and sleep with her. “Oh, yes,” she said. Then, turning to her uncle, she asked, “May I stay? Please, uncle! She is my own mother.” He placed his hand on her head and said seriously, “Ellen, this is the secret you promised your grandmother never to tell. If you ever mention it to anyone, they will never let you see your grandmother again, and your mother can never come to Brooklyn.” “Uncle,” she replied, “I will never tell.” He said she could stay with me, and after he left, I took her in my arms and explained that I was a slave, which meant she must never say she had seen me. I encouraged her to be a good child, to try to make the people where she was going happy, and that God would help her find friends. I told her to pray and always remember to pray for her poor mother, hoping that God would allow us to meet again. She cried, and I didn’t stop her tears. Maybe she wouldn’t get another chance to cry into a mother’s embrace. All night she cuddled in my arms, and I had no desire to sleep. The moments were too precious to waste. Once, when I thought she was asleep, I kissed her forehead softly, and she said, “I am not asleep, dear mother.”

Before dawn they came to take me back to my den. I drew aside the window curtain, to take a last look of my child. The moonlight shone on her face, and I bent over her, as I had done years before, that wretched night when I ran away. I hugged her close to my throbbing heart; and tears, too sad for such young eyes to shed, flowed down her cheeks, as she gave her last kiss, and whispered in my ear, “Mother, I will never tell.” And she never did.

Before dawn, they came to take me back to my den. I pulled aside the curtain to have one last look at my child. The moonlight illuminated her face, and I leaned over her, just like I had done years ago on that terrible night when I escaped. I held her tightly against my aching heart; tears too sorrowful for such young eyes flowed down her cheeks as she gave me her final kiss and whispered in my ear, “Mom, I will never tell.” And she never did.

When I got back to my den, I threw myself on the bed and wept there alone in the darkness. It seemed as if my heart would burst. When the time for Ellen’s departure drew nigh, I could hear neighbors and friends saying to her, “Good by, Ellen. I hope your poor mother will find you out. Won’t you be glad to see her!” She replied, “Yes, ma’am;” and they little dreamed of the weighty secret that weighed down her young heart. She was an affectionate child, but naturally very reserved, except with those she loved, and I felt secure that my secret would be safe with her. I heard the gate close after her, with such feelings as only a slave mother can experience. During the day my meditations were very sad. Sometimes I feared I had been very selfish not to give up all claim to her, and let her go to Illinois, to be adopted by Mrs. Sands’s sister. It was my experience of slavery that decided me against it. I feared that circumstances might arise that would cause her to be sent back. I felt confident that I should go to New York myself; and then I should be able to watch over her, and in some degree protect her.

When I got back to my room, I threw myself on the bed and cried there alone in the dark. It felt like my heart would explode. As the time for Ellen’s departure approached, I could hear neighbors and friends saying to her, “Goodbye, Ellen. I hope your poor mother finds you. Won’t you be happy to see her!” She replied, “Yes, ma’am,” and they had no idea about the heavy secret weighing on her young heart. She was a loving child but naturally very reserved, except with those she cared about, and I felt certain my secret would be safe with her. I heard the gate close behind her, feeling emotions only a slave mother can know. Throughout the day, my thoughts were very sad. Sometimes I worried I had been selfish for not giving up all claim to her and letting her go to Illinois to be adopted by Mrs. Sands’s sister. My own experience with slavery made me decide against it. I feared circumstances might arise that would send her back. I was confident I would go to New York myself; that way, I could keep an eye on her and protect her to some extent.

Dr. Flint’s family knew nothing of the proposed arrangement till after Ellen was gone, and the news displeased them greatly. Mrs. Flint called on Mrs. Sands’s sister to inquire into the matter. She expressed her opinion very freely as to the respect Mr. Sands showed for his wife, and for his own character, in acknowledging those “young niggers.” And as for sending Ellen away, she pronounced it to be just as much stealing as it would be for him to come and take a piece of furniture out of her parlor. She said her daughter was not of age to sign the bill of sale, and the children were her property; and when she became of age, or was married, she could take them, wherever she could lay hands on them.

Dr. Flint’s family had no idea about the planned arrangement until after Ellen had left, and they were very upset by the news. Mrs. Flint visited Mrs. Sands's sister to ask about the situation. She openly criticized how little respect Mr. Sands had for his wife and his own character by acknowledging those “young blacks.” As for sending Ellen away, she claimed it was just as much stealing as if he were to come and take a piece of furniture from her living room. She stated her daughter wasn’t of legal age to sign the bill of sale, and the kids were her property; when her daughter turned legal age or got married, she could take them wherever she found them.

Miss Emily Flint, the little girl to whom I had been bequeathed, was now in her sixteenth year. Her mother considered it all right and honorable for her, or her future husband, to steal my children; but she did not understand how any body could hold up their heads in respectable society, after they had purchased their own children, as Mr. Sands had done. Dr. Flint said very little. Perhaps he thought that Benny would be less likely to be sent away if he kept quiet. One of my letters, that fell into his hands, was dated from Canada; and he seldom spoke of me now. This state of things enabled me to slip down into the storeroom more frequently, where I could stand upright, and move my limbs more freely.

Miss Emily Flint, the little girl I had been given to care for, was now sixteen. Her mother thought it was perfectly fine and respectable for her or her future husband to take my children; however, she couldn't understand how anyone could hold their head up in polite society after having bought their own children, as Mr. Sands had done. Dr. Flint said very little. Maybe he believed that Benny would be less likely to be sent away if he stayed quiet. One of my letters that he got a hold of was dated from Canada, and he rarely mentioned me anymore. This situation allowed me to sneak down to the storeroom more often, where I could stand up straight and move around more freely.

Days, weeks, and months passed, and there came no news of Ellen. I sent a letter to Brooklyn, written in my grandmother’s name, to inquire whether she had arrived there. Answer was returned that she had not. I wrote to her in Washington; but no notice was taken of it. There was one person there, who ought to have had some sympathy with the anxiety of the child’s friends at home; but the links of such relations as he had formed with me, are easily broken and cast away as rubbish. Yet how protectingly and persuasively he once talked to the poor, helpless slave girl! And how entirely I trusted him! But now suspicions darkened my mind. Was my child dead, or had they deceived me, and sold her?

Days, weeks, and months went by, and there was still no word about Ellen. I sent a letter to Brooklyn, written in my grandmother’s name, to ask if she had gotten there. They replied that she had not. I wrote to her in Washington; but I didn’t get a response. There was one person there who should have shared the concern of the child’s friends back home, but the connections he had with me could easily be broken and discarded like trash. Yet how protectively and convincing he once spoke to the poor, helpless slave girl! And how completely I trusted him! But now doubts filled my mind. Was my child dead, or had they lied to me and sold her?

If the secret memoirs of many members of Congress should be published, curious details would be unfolded. I once saw a letter from a member of Congress to a slave, who was the mother of six of his children. He wrote to request that she would send her children away from the great house before his return, as he expected to be accompanied by friends. The woman could not read, and was obliged to employ another to read the letter. The existence of the colored children did not trouble this gentleman, it was only the fear that friends might recognize in their features a resemblance to him.

If the hidden memoirs of many members of Congress were published, interesting details would come to light. I once saw a letter from a member of Congress to a slave who was the mother of six of his children. He wrote asking her to send her children away from the big house before he got back, as he expected to have friends with him. The woman couldn’t read, so she had to get someone else to read the letter to her. The fact that the children were Black didn’t bother this man; he was just worried that his friends might see a resemblance to him in their faces.

At the end of six months, a letter came to my grandmother, from Brooklyn. It was written by a young lady in the family, and announced that Ellen had just arrived. It contained the following message from her: “I do try to do just as you told me to, and I pray for you every night and morning.” I understood that these words were meant for me; and they were a balsam to my heart. The writer closed her letter by saying, “Ellen is a nice little girl, and we shall like to have her with us. My cousin, Mr. Sands, has given her to me, to be my little waiting maid. I shall send her to school, and I hope some day she will write to you herself.” This letter perplexed and troubled me. Had my child’s father merely placed her there till she was old enough to support herself? Or had he given her to his cousin, as a piece of property? If the last idea was correct, his cousin might return to the south at any time, and hold Ellen as a slave. I tried to put away from me the painful thought that such a foul wrong could have been done to us. I said to myself, “Surely there must be some justice in man;” then I remembered, with a sigh, how slavery perverted all the natural feelings of the human heart. It gave me a pang to look on my light-hearted boy. He believed himself free; and to have him brought under the yoke of slavery, would be more than I could bear. How I longed to have him safely out of the reach of its power!

At the end of six months, a letter arrived for my grandmother from Brooklyn. It was written by a young woman in the family and announced that Ellen had just gotten there. It included the following message from her: “I try to do exactly what you told me, and I pray for you every night and morning.” I realized these words were meant for me, and they brought comfort to my heart. The writer finished her letter by saying, “Ellen is a sweet little girl, and we’re happy to have her with us. My cousin, Mr. Sands, has given her to me to be my little maid. I’ll send her to school, and I hope that one day she’ll write to you herself.” This letter confused and troubled me. Had my child’s father just placed her there until she could support herself? Or had he given her to his cousin like she was an object? If the latter was true, his cousin could go back to the South at any time and keep Ellen as a slave. I tried to push away the painful idea that such a terrible injustice could have happened to us. I told myself, “Surely there must be some justice in humanity;” but then I remembered, with a sigh, how slavery distorted all the natural feelings of the human heart. It hurt me to look at my happy boy. He thought he was free; and having him subjected to slavery would be more than I could bear. How I longed to keep him safely away from its grasp!










XXVIII. Aunt Nancy.

I have mentioned my great-aunt, who was a slave in Dr. Flint’s family, and who had been my refuge during the shameful persecutions I suffered from him. This aunt had been married at twenty years of age; that is, as far as slaves can marry. She had the consent of her master and mistress, and a clergyman performed the ceremony. But it was a mere form, without any legal value. Her master or mistress could annul it any day they pleased. She had always slept on the floor in the entry, near Mrs. Flint’s chamber door, that she might be within call. When she was married, she was told she might have the use of a small room in an out-house. Her mother and her husband furnished it. He was a seafaring man, and was allowed to sleep there when he was at home. But on the wedding evening, the bride was ordered to her old post on the entry floor.

I’ve talked about my great-aunt, who was a slave in Dr. Flint’s household and was my refuge during the terrible persecutions I faced from him. This aunt got married when she was twenty, which was as much as slaves could marry. She had her master and mistress's approval, and a clergyman conducted the ceremony. But it was just a formality with no legal standing. Her master or mistress could cancel it anytime they wanted. She always slept on the floor in the hallway, close to Mrs. Flint’s bedroom door, so she could be easily called. When she got married, she was told she could use a small room in an outbuilding. Her mother and husband helped furnish it. He was a sailor and was allowed to stay there when he was home. But on the night of the wedding, the bride was ordered back to her old spot on the hallway floor.

Mrs. Flint, at that time, had no children; but she was expecting to be a mother, and if she should want a drink of water in the night, what could she do without her slave to bring it? So my aunt was compelled to lie at her door, until one midnight she was forced to leave, to give premature birth to a child. In a fortnight she was required to resume her place on the entry floor, because Mrs. Flint’s babe needed her attentions. She kept her station there through summer and winter, until she had given premature birth to six children; and all the while she was employed as night-nurse to Mrs. Flint’s children. Finally, toiling all day, and being deprived of rest at night, completely broke down her constitution, and Dr. Flint declared it was impossible she could ever become the mother of a living child. The fear of losing so valuable a servant by death, now induced them to allow her to sleep in her little room in the out-house, except when there was sickness in the family. She afterwards had two feeble babes, one of whom died in a few days, and the other in four weeks. I well remember her patient sorrow as she held the last dead baby in her arms. “I wish it could have lived,” she said; “it is not the will of God that any of my children should live. But I will try to be fit to meet their little spirits in heaven.”

Mrs. Flint didn’t have any kids at the time, but she was expecting, and if she wanted a drink of water at night, what could she do without her servant to bring it? So my aunt had to lie at her door until one midnight she was forced to leave to give birth to a child prematurely. Within two weeks, she had to go back to her spot on the entry floor because Mrs. Flint’s baby needed her care. She kept doing that through summer and winter until she had given premature birth to six children; all the while, she was working as a night nurse for Mrs. Flint’s kids. Eventually, working all day and not getting any rest at night completely wore her out, and Dr. Flint said it was impossible for her to ever have a healthy child. The fear of losing such a valuable servant to death led them to let her sleep in her small room in the out-house, except during times of illness in the family. Later, she had two weak babies, one of whom died within a few days, and the other in four weeks. I vividly remember her quiet sorrow as she held the last dead baby in her arms. “I wish it could have lived,” she said; “it is not God’s will for any of my children to survive. But I’ll try to be ready to meet their little spirits in heaven.”

Aunt Nancy was housekeeper and waiting-maid in Dr. Flint’s family. Indeed, she was the factotum of the household. Nothing went on well without her. She was my mother’s twin sister, and, as far as was in her power, she supplied a mother’s place to us orphans. I slept with her all the time I lived in my old master’s house, and the bond between us was very strong. When my friends tried to discourage me from running away, she always encouraged me. When they thought I had better return and ask my master’s pardon, because there was no possibility of escape, she sent me word never to yield. She said if I persevered I might, perhaps, gain the freedom of my children; and even if I perished in doing it, that was better than to leave them to groan under the same persecutions that had blighted my own life. After I was shut up in my dark cell, she stole away, whenever she could, to bring me the news and say something cheering. How often did I kneel down to listen to her words of consolation, whispered through a crack! “I am old, and have not long to live,” she used to say; “and I could die happy if I could only see you and the children free. You must pray to God, Linda, as I do for you, that he will lead you out of this darkness.” I would beg her not to worry herself on my account; that there was an end of all suffering sooner or later, and that whether I lived in chains or in freedom, I should always remember her as the good friend who had been the comfort of my life. A word from her always strengthened me; and not me only. The whole family relied upon her judgment, and were guided by her advice.

Aunt Nancy was the housekeeper and waiting maid in Dr. Flint’s family. In fact, she was the go-to person of the household. Nothing went smoothly without her. She was my mother’s twin sister, and as much as she could, she filled a mother’s role for us orphans. I slept with her for the entire time I lived in my old master’s house, and we had a very strong bond. When my friends tried to discourage me from running away, she always encouraged me. When they thought I should go back and ask for my master’s forgiveness because there was no way to escape, she told me to never give in. She said that if I persevered, I might eventually gain freedom for my children; and even if I died trying, that was better than leaving them to suffer the same hardships that had ruined my life. After I was locked up in my dark cell, she would sneak away whenever she could to bring me updates and say something uplifting. How often did I kneel down to listen to her comforting words, whispered through a crack! “I am old, and don’t have much longer to live,” she would say; “and I could die happy if I could just see you and the children free. You must pray to God, Linda, like I do for you, that He will guide you out of this darkness.” I would tell her not to worry about me; that there is an end to all suffering eventually, and that whether I lived in chains or in freedom, I would always remember her as the good friend who had been a comfort in my life. A word from her always gave me strength; and not just me. The whole family relied on her judgment and followed her advice.

I had been in my cell six years when my grandmother was summoned to the bedside of this, her last remaining daughter. She was very ill, and they said she would die. Grandmother had not entered Dr. Flint’s house for several years. They had treated her cruelly, but she thought nothing of that now. She was grateful for permission to watch by the death-bed of her child. They had always been devoted to each other; and now they sat looking into each other’s eyes, longing to speak of the secret that had weighed so much on the hearts of both. My aunt had been stricken with paralysis. She lived but two days, and the last day she was speechless. Before she lost the power of utterance, she told her mother not to grieve if she could not speak to her; that she would try to hold up her hand, to let her know that all was well with her. Even the hard-hearted doctor was a little softened when he saw the dying woman try to smile on the aged mother, who was kneeling by her side. His eyes moistened for a moment, as he said she had always been a faithful servant, and they should never be able to supply her place. Mrs. Flint took to her bed, quite overcome by the shock. While my grandmother sat alone with the dead, the doctor came in, leading his youngest son, who had always been a great pet with aunt Nancy, and was much attached to her. “Martha,” said he, “aunt Nancy loved this child, and when he comes where you are, I hope you will be kind to him, for her sake.” She replied, “Your wife was my foster-child, Dr. Flint, the foster-sister of my poor Nancy, and you little know me if you think I can feel any thing but good will for her children.”

I had been in my cell for six years when my grandmother was called to the bedside of her last remaining daughter. She was very sick, and they said she wouldn’t survive. Grandmother hadn’t set foot in Dr. Flint’s house for several years. They had treated her badly, but she didn’t think about that now. She was thankful for the chance to be by her child’s deathbed. They had always been devoted to each other, and now they sat staring into each other’s eyes, wanting to talk about the secret that had weighed heavily on both their hearts. My aunt had been struck by paralysis. She lived for just two days, and on the last day, she couldn’t speak. Before she lost her ability to talk, she told her mother not to mourn if she couldn’t communicate with her; that she would try to raise her hand to let her know everything was okay. Even the cold-hearted doctor was a bit softened when he saw the dying woman attempt to smile at her elderly mother, who was kneeling by her side. His eyes welled up for a moment as he said that she had always been a loyal servant, and they would never be able to replace her. Mrs. Flint went to bed, completely overwhelmed by the shock. While my grandmother sat alone with the deceased, the doctor came in with his youngest son, who had always been a favorite of aunt Nancy and was very attached to her. “Martha,” he said, “aunt Nancy loved this child, and when he comes where you are, I hope you’ll be kind to him for her sake.” She replied, “Your wife was my foster child, Dr. Flint, the foster sister of my poor Nancy, and you don’t know me if you think I can feel anything but goodwill toward her children.”

“I wish the past could be forgotten, and that we might never think of it,” said he; “and that Linda would come to supply her aunt’s place. She would be worth more to us than all the money that could be paid for her. I wish it for your sake also, Martha. Now that Nancy is taken away from you, she would be a great comfort to your old age.”

“I wish we could forget the past and never think about it again,” he said. “And I wish Linda would come to take her aunt’s place. She would be worth more to us than all the money in the world. I wish this for you too, Martha. Now that Nancy is gone, she would be a great comfort to you in your old age.”

He knew he was touching a tender chord. Almost choking with grief, my grandmother replied, “It was not I that drove Linda away. My grandchildren are gone; and of my nine children only one is left. God help me!”

He knew he was hitting a sensitive spot. Almost overwhelmed with grief, my grandmother replied, “It wasn’t me who pushed Linda away. My grandchildren are gone, and of my nine children, only one is left. God help me!”

To me, the death of this kind relative was an inexpressible sorrow. I knew that she had been slowly murdered; and I felt that my troubles had helped to finish the work. After I heard of her illness, I listened constantly to hear what news was brought from the great house; and the thought that I could not go to her made me utterly miserable. At last, as uncle Phillip came into the house, I heard some one inquire, “How is she?” and he answered, “She is dead.” My little cell seemed whirling round, and I knew nothing more till I opened my eyes and found uncle Phillip bending over me. I had no need to ask any questions. He whispered, “Linda, she died happy.” I could not weep. My fixed gaze troubled him. “Don’t look so,” he said. “Don’t add to my poor mother’s trouble. Remember how much she has to bear, and that we ought to do all we can to comfort her.” Ah, yes, that blessed old grandmother, who for seventy-three years had borne the pelting storms of a slave-mother’s life. She did indeed need consolation!

To me, the death of this kind relative was an indescribable sorrow. I knew that she had been slowly killed, and I felt that my troubles had contributed to it. After I heard about her illness, I was constantly listening for updates from the big house, and the thought that I couldn't visit her made me completely miserable. Finally, as Uncle Phillip came into the house, I heard someone ask, “How is she?” and he replied, “She is dead.” My little room seemed to spin, and I remember nothing more until I opened my eyes and saw Uncle Phillip leaning over me. I didn’t need to ask any questions. He whispered, “Linda, she died happy.” I couldn’t cry. My steady stare worried him. “Don’t look so,” he said. “Don’t add to my poor mother’s troubles. Remember how much she has to handle, and that we should do everything we can to comfort her.” Ah, yes, that dear old grandmother, who had endured the relentless storms of a slave mother's life for seventy-three years. She truly needed comfort!

Mrs. Flint had rendered her poor foster-sister childless, apparently without any compunction; and with cruel selfishness had ruined her health by years of incessant, unrequited toil, and broken rest. But now she became very sentimental. I suppose she thought it would be a beautiful illustration of the attachment existing between slaveholder and slave, if the body of her old worn-out servant was buried at her feet. She sent for the clergyman and asked if he had any objection to burying aunt Nancy in the doctor’s family burial-place. No colored person had ever been allowed interment in the white people’s burying-ground, and the minister knew that all the deceased of our family reposed together in the old graveyard of the slaves. He therefore replied, “I have no objection to complying with your wish; but perhaps aunt Nancy’s mother may have some choice as to where her remains shall be deposited.”

Mrs. Flint had made her poor foster sister childless, seemingly without any guilt; and with cruel self-interest, she had destroyed her health through years of constant, unappreciated hard work and broken rest. But now she became quite sentimental. I guess she thought it would be a beautiful example of the bond between a slaveholder and a slave if her old, worn-out servant’s body was buried at her feet. She called the clergyman and asked if he had any objections to burying Aunt Nancy in the doctor’s family burial plot. No Black person had ever been allowed to be buried in the white people’s cemetery, and the minister knew that all the deceased in our family were laid to rest together in the old graveyard for slaves. He therefore replied, “I have no objection to fulfilling your wish; but perhaps Aunt Nancy’s mother might have a say in where her remains should be placed.”

It had never occurred to Mrs. Flint that slaves could have any feelings. When my grandmother was consulted, she at once said she wanted Nancy to lie with all the rest of her family, and where her own old body would be buried. Mrs. Flint graciously complied with her wish, though she said it was painful to her to have Nancy buried away from her. She might have added with touching pathos, “I was so long used to sleep with her lying near me, on the entry floor.”

It had never crossed Mrs. Flint's mind that slaves could have any feelings. When my grandmother was asked, she immediately said she wanted Nancy to be buried with the rest of her family, and in the same place where her own old body would be laid to rest. Mrs. Flint graciously agreed to her request, although she mentioned that it was painful for her to have Nancy buried away from her. She might have added with heartfelt sadness, “I was so used to having her sleep near me, on the entry floor.”

My uncle Phillip asked permission to bury his sister at his own expense; and slaveholders are always ready to grant such favors to slaves and their relatives. The arrangements were very plain, but perfectly respectable. She was buried on the Sabbath, and Mrs. Flint’s minister read the funeral service. There was a large concourse of colored people, bond and free, and a few white persons who had always been friendly to our family. Dr. Flint’s carriage was in the procession; and when the body was deposited in its humble resting place, the mistress dropped a tear, and returned to her carriage, probably thinking she had performed her duty nobly.

My uncle Phillip asked for permission to bury his sister at his own expense; and slave owners are always willing to grant such favors to slaves and their families. The arrangements were simple but completely respectable. She was buried on Sunday, and Mrs. Flint’s minister officiated the funeral service. There was a large gathering of Black people, both enslaved and free, along with a few white individuals who had always been friendly to our family. Dr. Flint’s carriage was part of the procession; and when the body was laid to rest in its modest grave, the mistress shed a tear and returned to her carriage, likely believing she had fulfilled her duty nobly.

It was talked of by the slaves as a mighty grand funeral. Northern travellers, passing through the place, might have described this tribute of respect to the humble dead as a beautiful feature in the “patriarchal institution;” a touching proof of the attachment between slaveholders and their servants; and tender-hearted Mrs. Flint would have confirmed this impression, with handkerchief at her eyes. We could have told them a different story. We could have given them a chapter of wrongs and sufferings, that would have touched their hearts, if they had any hearts to feel for the colored people. We could have told them how the poor old slave-mother had toiled, year after year, to earn eight hundred dollars to buy her son Phillip’s right to his own earnings; and how that same Phillip paid the expenses of the funeral, which they regarded as doing so much credit to the master. We could also have told them of a poor, blighted young creature, shut up in a living grave for years, to avoid the tortures that would be inflicted on her, if she ventured to come out and look on the face of her departed friend.

Slaves referred to it as a truly grand funeral. Northern travelers passing through might have described this show of respect for the humble dead as a beautiful aspect of the "patriarchal institution;" a moving testament to the bond between slave owners and their enslaved. Tender-hearted Mrs. Flint would have backed up this view, wiping her eyes with a handkerchief. We could have told them a different story. We could have shared tales of wrongs and suffering that would have touched their hearts, if they even had any compassion for people of color. We could have recounted how the poor old slave mother worked tirelessly, year after year, to save eight hundred dollars to buy her son Phillip’s right to his own earnings; and how that same Phillip covered the costs of the funeral, which they viewed as a great reflection on the master. We could have also told them about a poor, crushed young woman, confined in a living grave for years to escape the torment she would face if she dared to come out and see the face of her deceased friend.

All this, and much more, I thought of, as I sat at my loophole, waiting for the family to return from the grave; sometimes weeping, sometimes falling asleep, dreaming strange dreams of the dead and the living.

All of this, and a lot more, crossed my mind as I sat at my hiding spot, waiting for the family to come back from the grave; sometimes crying, sometimes dozing off, dreaming strange dreams about the dead and the living.

It was sad to witness the grief of my bereaved grandmother. She had always been strong to bear, and now, as ever, religious faith supported her. But her dark life had become still darker, and age and trouble were leaving deep traces on her withered face. She had four places to knock for me to come to the trap-door, and each place had a different meaning. She now came oftener than she had done, and talked to me of her dead daughter, while tears trickled slowly down her furrowed cheeks. I said all I could to comfort her; but it was a sad reflection, that instead of being able to help her, I was a constant source of anxiety and trouble. The poor old back was fitted to its burden. It bent under it, but did not break.

It was heartbreaking to see my grieving grandmother. She had always been strong, and even now, her faith kept her going. But her once-dark life had turned even darker, and age and hardship were leaving deep marks on her withered face. She knocked in four different spots for me to come to the trapdoor, with each knock carrying a different meaning. She visited me more frequently than before and shared stories about her deceased daughter, while tears slowly flowed down her wrinkled cheeks. I did everything I could to comfort her, but it was a sad realization that instead of helping her, I was just a constant source of worry and trouble. The poor old back was suited to its load. It bent under the weight, but it didn’t break.










XXIX. Preparations For Escape.

I hardly expect that the reader will credit me, when I affirm that I lived in that little dismal hole, almost deprived of light and air, and with no space to move my limbs, for nearly seven years. But it is a fact; and to me a sad one, even now; for my body still suffers from the effects of that long imprisonment, to say nothing of my soul. Members of my family, now living in New York and Boston, can testify to the truth of what I say.

I can hardly believe that anyone would take my word for it, but I lived in that little gloomy place, almost without light and air, with barely any room to stretch my limbs, for nearly seven years. But it’s true, and it’s still a sad reality for me; my body still feels the effects of that long confinement, not to mention my soul. Relatives of mine, now living in New York and Boston, can confirm what I’m saying.

Countless were the nights that I sat late at the little loophole scarcely large enough to give me a glimpse of one twinkling star. There, I heard the patrols and slave-hunters conferring together about the capture of runaways, well knowing how rejoiced they would be to catch me.

Countless nights I spent late at the small opening barely big enough to let me see a single twinkling star. There, I listened to the patrols and slave hunters discussing their plans to catch runaways, fully aware of how happy they would be to capture me.

Season after season, year after year, I peeped at my children’s faces, and heard their sweet voices, with a heart yearning all the while to say, “Your mother is here.” Sometimes it appeared to me as if ages had rolled away since I entered upon that gloomy, monotonous existence. At times, I was stupefied and listless; at other times I became very impatient to know when these dark years would end, and I should again be allowed to feel the sunshine, and breathe the pure air.

Season after season, year after year, I looked at my children’s faces and listened to their sweet voices, always wishing I could say, “Your mother is here.” Sometimes it felt like ages had passed since I started that dreary, repetitive life. At times, I felt dazed and unmotivated; at other times, I became really eager to find out when these dark years would end, and I could once again enjoy the sunshine and breathe fresh air.

After Ellen left us, this feeling increased. Mr. Sands had agreed that Benny might go to the north whenever his uncle Phillip could go with him; and I was anxious to be there also, to watch over my children, and protect them so far as I was able. Moreover, I was likely to be drowned out of my den, if I remained much longer; for the slight roof was getting badly out of repair, and uncle Phillip was afraid to remove the shingles, lest some one should get a glimpse of me. When storms occurred in the night, they spread mats and bits of carpet, which in the morning appeared to have been laid out to dry; but to cover the roof in the daytime might have attracted attention. Consequently, my clothes and bedding were often drenched; a process by which the pains and aches in my cramped and stiffened limbs were greatly increased. I revolved various plans of escape in my mind, which I sometimes imparted to my grandmother, when she came to whisper with me at the trap-door. The kind-hearted old woman had an intense sympathy for runaways. She had known too much of the cruelties inflicted on those who were captured. Her memory always flew back at once to the sufferings of her bright and handsome son, Benjamin, the youngest and dearest of her flock. So, whenever I alluded to the subject, she would groan out, “O, don’t think of it, child. You’ll break my heart.” I had no good old aunt Nancy now to encourage me; but my brother William and my children were continually beckoning me to the north.

After Ellen left us, this feeling grew stronger. Mr. Sands had agreed that Benny could go north whenever his uncle Phillip could accompany him; and I was eager to be there too, to keep an eye on my children and protect them as much as I could. Furthermore, I was likely to get flooded out of my hideout if I stayed much longer; the roof was in terrible shape, and uncle Phillip was too afraid to remove the shingles, in case someone spotted me. When storms hit at night, they spread mats and bits of carpet, which in the morning looked like they were just drying, but covering the roof during the day might have drawn attention. As a result, my clothes and bedding were often soaked; this made the pains and aches in my cramped and stiff limbs even worse. I thought of various escape plans in my head, which I sometimes shared with my grandmother when she came to talk to me at the trap-door. The kind-hearted old woman had a deep sympathy for runaways. She had seen too much of the cruelty inflicted on those who were caught. Her mind always quickly went back to the suffering of her bright and handsome son, Benjamin, the youngest and dearest of her children. So, whenever I mentioned the subject, she would groan, “Oh, don’t think of it, child. You’ll break my heart.” I didn’t have my good old aunt Nancy now to encourage me; but my brother William and my children were constantly urging me to head north.

And now I must go back a few months in my story. I have stated that the first of January was the time for selling slaves, or leasing them out to new masters. If time were counted by heart-throbs, the poor slaves might reckon years of suffering during that festival so joyous to the free. On the New Year’s day preceding my aunt’s death, one of my friends, named Fanny, was to be sold at auction, to pay her master’s debts. My thoughts were with her during all the day, and at night I anxiously inquired what had been her fate. I was told that she had been sold to one master, and her four little girls to another master, far distant; that she had escaped from her purchaser, and was not to be found. Her mother was the old Aggie I have spoken of. She lived in a small tenement belonging to my grandmother, and built on the same lot with her own house. Her dwelling was searched and watched, and that brought the patrols so near me that I was obliged to keep very close in my den. The hunters were somehow eluded; and not long afterwards Benny accidentally caught sight of Fanny in her mother’s hut. He told his grandmother, who charged him never to speak of it, explaining to him the frightful consequences; and he never betrayed the trust. Aggie little dreamed that my grandmother knew where her daughter was concealed, and that the stooping form of her old neighbor was bending under a similar burden of anxiety and fear; but these dangerous secrets deepened the sympathy between the two old persecuted mothers.

And now I need to go back a few months in my story. I mentioned that January 1st was when slaves were sold or rented out to new masters. If time were measured by heartbeats, the unfortunate slaves could count years of suffering during that celebration that was so joyful for the free. On the New Year’s Day before my aunt passed away, one of my friends, named Fanny, was auctioned off to pay her master’s debts. I thought about her all day, and at night I anxiously asked what had happened to her. I was told that she had been sold to one master, while her four little girls were sold to another master far away; that she had escaped from her buyer and couldn’t be found. Her mother was the old Aggie I mentioned earlier. She lived in a small apartment owned by my grandmother, built on the same lot as her own house. Her place was searched and watched, which brought the patrols so close to me that I had to stay very hidden in my hideout. The hunters somehow missed her; and not long after, Benny accidentally saw Fanny in her mother’s hut. He told his grandmother, who told him never to mention it, explaining the terrible consequences; and he never broke that promise. Aggie had no idea that my grandmother knew where her daughter was hiding, and that the bent figure of her old neighbor was carrying a similar weight of worry and fear; but these dangerous secrets deepened the bond between the two old persecuted mothers.

My friend Fanny and I remained many weeks hidden within call of each other; but she was unconscious of the fact. I longed to have her share my den, which seemed a more secure retreat than her own; but I had brought so much trouble on my grandmother, that it seemed wrong to ask her to incur greater risks. My restlessness increased. I had lived too long in bodily pain and anguish of spirit. Always I was in dread that by some accident, or some contrivance, slavery would succeed in snatching my children from me. This thought drove me nearly frantic, and I determined to steer for the North Star at all hazards. At this crisis, Providence opened an unexpected way for me to escape. My friend Peter came one evening, and asked to speak with me. “Your day has come, Linda,” said he. “I have found a chance for you to go to the Free States. You have a fortnight to decide.” The news seemed too good to be true; but Peter explained his arrangements, and told me all that was necessary was for me to say I would go. I was going to answer him with a joyful yes, when the thought of Benny came to my mind. I told him the temptation was exceedingly strong, but I was terribly afraid of Dr. Flint’s alleged power over my child, and that I could not go and leave him behind. Peter remonstrated earnestly. He said such a good chance might never occur again; that Benny was free, and could be sent to me; and that for the sake of my children’s welfare I ought not to hesitate a moment. I told him I would consult with uncle Phillip. My uncle rejoiced in the plan, and bade me go by all means. He promised, if his life was spared, that he would either bring or send my son to me as soon as I reached a place of safety. I resolved to go, but thought nothing had better be said to my grandmother till very near the time of departure. But my uncle thought she would feel it more keenly if I left her so suddenly. “I will reason with her,” said he, “and convince her how necessary it is, not only for your sake, but for hers also. You cannot be blind to the fact that she is sinking under her burdens.” I was not blind to it. I knew that my concealment was an ever-present source of anxiety, and that the older she grew the more nervously fearful she was of discovery. My uncle talked with her, and finally succeeded in persuading her that it was absolutely necessary for me to seize the chance so unexpectedly offered.

My friend Fanny and I stayed hidden for many weeks, always just out of reach of each other, though she didn’t realize it. I really wanted her to share my hiding place, which felt safer than her own, but I had already caused so much trouble for my grandmother that it seemed unfair to put her at even more risk. My restlessness grew. I had endured too much physical pain and emotional suffering. I was constantly terrified that, by some accident or scheme, slavery would manage to take my children away from me. This fear drove me nearly to madness, and I decided I had to aim for the North Star, no matter the cost. During this tense time, fate opened up an unexpected escape route for me. My friend Peter came by one evening and asked to talk. “Your chance has come, Linda,” he said. “I’ve found a way for you to get to the Free States. You have two weeks to decide.” The news felt almost too good to be true, but Peter explained his plans and told me all I had to do was say I would go. I was about to joyfully say yes when the thought of Benny popped into my head. I told him the temptation was really strong, but I was deeply afraid of Dr. Flint's supposed control over my child and that I couldn’t leave him behind. Peter strongly urged me to reconsider. He said this opportunity might never come again; that Benny was free and could be sent to me; and that for my children’s well-being, I shouldn’t hesitate even a moment. I told him I would discuss it with Uncle Phillip. My uncle was excited about the plan and encouraged me to go for it. He promised that if he was still alive, he would either come or send my son to me as soon as I reached safety. I decided to go, but thought it best not to tell my grandmother until closer to the departure date. However, my uncle felt she would take it harder if I left without warning. “I’ll talk to her,” he said, “and help her understand that it’s essential for your sake and hers. You can’t ignore the fact that she’s collapsing under her burdens.” I wasn’t blind to that. I knew my hiding was a constant source of stress for her, and as she aged, she became more nervously anxious about being discovered. My uncle spoke with her and ultimately managed to convince her that it was absolutely necessary for me to take this unexpected opportunity.

The anticipation of being a free woman proved almost too much for my weak frame. The excitement stimulated me, and at the same time bewildered me. I made busy preparations for my journey, and for my son to follow me. I resolved to have an interview with him before I went, that I might give him cautions and advice, and tell him how anxiously I should be waiting for him at the north. Grandmother stole up to me as often as possible to whisper words of counsel. She insisted upon my writing to Dr. Flint, as soon as I arrived in the Free States, and asking him to sell me to her. She said she would sacrifice her house, and all she had in the world, for the sake of having me safe with my children in any part of the world. If she could only live to know that she could die in peace. I promised the dear old faithful friend that I would write to her as soon as I arrived, and put the letter in a safe way to reach her; but in my own mind I resolved that not another cent of her hard earnings should be spent to pay rapacious slaveholders for what they called their property. And even if I had not been unwilling to buy what I had already a right to possess, common humanity would have prevented me from accepting the generous offer, at the expense of turning my aged relative out of house and home, when she was trembling on the brink of the grave.

The excitement of finally being a free woman was almost too much for my frail body. It thrilled and confused me at the same time. I busily prepared for my journey and for my son to follow me. I decided I needed to meet with him before I left, so I could give him advice and tell him how eagerly I would be waiting for him up north. Grandmother visited me as often as she could, whispering words of advice. She insisted that I write to Dr. Flint as soon as I got to the Free States and ask him to sell me to her. She said she would give up her home and everything she owned just to have me and my children safe anywhere in the world. If she could just live to know that, she could die in peace. I promised my dear, loyal friend that I would write to her as soon as I arrived and make sure the letter reached her. But I decided in my heart that not another cent of her hard-earned money would go toward paying greedy slaveholders for what they called their property. Even if I had been willing to buy what I already had the right to own, basic humanity would have stopped me from accepting such a generous offer at the cost of putting my elderly relative out on the street when she was close to death.

I was to escape in a vessel; but I forbear to mention any further particulars. I was in readiness, but the vessel was unexpectedly detained several days. Meantime, news came to town of a most horrible murder committed on a fugitive slave, named James. Charity, the mother of this unfortunate young man, had been an old acquaintance of ours. I have told the shocking particulars of his death, in my description of some of the neighboring slaveholders. My grandmother, always nervously sensitive about runaways, was terribly frightened. She felt sure that a similar fate awaited me, if I did not desist from my enterprise. She sobbed, and groaned, and entreated me not to go. Her excessive fear was somewhat contagious, and my heart was not proof against her extreme agony. I was grievously disappointed, but I promised to relinquish my project.

I was supposed to escape on a ship, but I won’t go into any more details. I was ready, but the ship was unexpectedly delayed for several days. In the meantime, news arrived in town about a terrible murder of a runaway slave named James. Charity, the mother of this unfortunate young man, had been an old friend of ours. I’ve shared the shocking details of his death in my account of some of the local slaveholders. My grandmother, who was always extremely sensitive about runaways, was deeply scared. She was convinced that I would meet a similar fate if I didn’t give up my plan. She cried, groaned, and begged me not to go. Her intense fear was somewhat contagious, and I couldn’t ignore her deep distress. I was deeply disappointed, but I promised to abandon my plan.

When my friend Peter was apprised of this, he was both disappointed and vexed. He said, that judging from our past experience, it would be a long time before I had such another chance to throw away. I told him it need not be thrown away; that I had a friend concealed near by, who would be glad enough to take the place that had been provided for me. I told him about poor Fanny, and the kind-hearted, noble fellow, who never turned his back upon any body in distress, white or black, expressed his readiness to help her. Aggie was much surprised when she found that we knew her secret. She was rejoiced to hear of such a chance for Fanny, and arrangements were made for her to go on board the vessel the next night. They both supposed that I had long been at the north, therefore my name was not mentioned in the transaction. Fanny was carried on board at the appointed time, and stowed away in a very small cabin. This accommodation had been purchased at a price that would pay for a voyage to England. But when one proposes to go to fine old England, they stop to calculate whether they can afford the cost of the pleasure; while in making a bargain to escape from slavery, the trembling victim is ready to say, “take all I have, only don’t betray me!”

When my friend Peter found out about this, he was both disappointed and upset. He said that based on our past experiences, it would be a long time before I had another chance to waste like this. I told him it didn’t have to be wasted; I had a friend nearby who would be more than happy to take the place that was meant for me. I told him about poor Fanny, and the kind-hearted, noble guy who never turned his back on anyone in distress, regardless of their background, was ready to help her. Aggie was very surprised to learn that we knew her secret. She was thrilled to hear about this opportunity for Fanny, and plans were made for her to board the ship the following night. They both thought I had been up north for a long time, so my name was not mentioned in the arrangements. Fanny was brought on board at the scheduled time and tucked away in a very small cabin. This space had been purchased at a cost that would cover a trip to England. But when someone plans to go to beautiful old England, they think about whether they can afford the enjoyment; meanwhile, when making a deal to escape from slavery, the frightened person is ready to say, “take everything I have, just don’t betray me!”

The next morning I peeped through my loophole, and saw that it was dark and cloudy. At night I received news that the wind was ahead, and the vessel had not sailed. I was exceedingly anxious about Fanny, and Peter too, who was running a tremendous risk at my instigation. Next day the wind and weather remained the same. Poor Fanny had been half dead with fright when they carried her on board, and I could readily imagine how she must be suffering now. Grandmother came often to my den, to say how thankful she was I did not go. On the third morning she rapped for me to come down to the storeroom. The poor old sufferer was breaking down under her weight of trouble. She was easily flurried now. I found her in a nervous, excited state, but I was not aware that she had forgotten to lock the door behind her, as usual. She was exceedingly worried about the detention of the vessel. She was afraid all would be discovered, and then Fanny, and Peter, and I, would all be tortured to death, and Phillip would be utterly ruined, and her house would be torn down. Poor Peter! If he should die such a horrible death as the poor slave James had lately done, and all for his kindness in trying to help me, how dreadful it would be for us all! Alas, the thought was familiar to me, and had sent many a sharp pang through my heart. I tried to suppress my own anxiety, and speak soothingly to her. She brought in some allusion to aunt Nancy, the dear daughter she had recently buried, and then she lost all control of herself. As she stood there, trembling and sobbing, a voice from the piazza called out, “Whar is you, aunt Marthy?” Grandmother was startled, and in her agitation opened the door, without thinking of me. In stepped Jenny, the mischievous housemaid, who had tried to enter my room, when I was concealed in the house of my white benefactress. “I’s bin huntin ebery whar for you, aunt Marthy,” said she. “My missis wants you to send her some crackers.” I had slunk down behind a barrel, which entirely screened me, but I imagined that Jenny was looking directly at the spot, and my heart beat violently. My grandmother immediately thought what she had done, and went out quickly with Jenny to count the crackers, locking the door after her. She returned to me, in a few minutes, the perfect picture of despair. “Poor child!” she exclaimed, “my carelessness has ruined you. The boat ain’t gone yet. Get ready immediately, and go with Fanny. I ain’t got another word to say against it now; for there’s no telling what may happen this day.”

The next morning, I peeked through my little opening and saw that it was dark and cloudy. The night before, I learned that the wind was against us, and the ship hadn’t set sail. I was really worried about Fanny, and Peter too, who was taking a huge risk because of me. The next day, the wind and weather stayed the same. Poor Fanny had been terrified when they brought her on board, and I could easily imagine how much she must be suffering now. Grandma came to my room often to express how grateful she was that I didn’t go. On the third morning, she knocked for me to come down to the storeroom. The poor old lady was breaking under the weight of her worries. She was getting easily flustered now. I found her in a nervous, agitated state, but I didn’t realize she had forgotten to lock the door behind her, as she usually did. She was extremely worried about the ship being delayed. She feared that everything would be discovered, and then Fanny, Peter, and I would all suffer terribly, Phillip would be completely ruined, and her home would be destroyed. Poor Peter! If he were to die a horrible death like the unfortunate slave James had recently, and all for his kindness in trying to help me, it would be dreadful for all of us! Sadly, that thought was familiar to me, and it sent many sharp pangs through my heart. I tried to suppress my own anxiety and speak soothingly to her. She mentioned her late daughter, Aunt Nancy, and then lost all control. As she stood there, trembling and sobbing, a voice from the porch called out, “Where are you, Aunt Marthy?” Grandma jumped, and in her panic, she opened the door without thinking of my presence. In walked Jenny, the playful housemaid, who had tried to enter my room when I was hiding in the house of my white benefactress. “I’ve been looking everywhere for you, Aunt Marthy,” she said. “My missus wants you to send her some crackers.” I quickly hid behind a barrel, which completely concealed me, but I felt like Jenny was staring right at me, and my heart raced. My grandmother immediately realized what she had done and quickly stepped outside with Jenny to gather the crackers, locking the door behind her. She returned a few minutes later, looking completely devastated. “Poor child!” she exclaimed, “my carelessness has ruined you. The boat hasn’t left yet. Get ready immediately and go with Fanny. I have nothing more to say against it now; who knows what might happen today?”

Uncle Phillip was sent for, and he agreed with his mother in thinking that Jenny would inform Dr. Flint in less than twenty-four hours. He advised getting me on board the boat, if possible; if not, I had better keep very still in my den, where they could not find me without tearing the house down. He said it would not do for him to move in the matter, because suspicion would be immediately excited; but he promised to communicate with Peter. I felt reluctant to apply to him again, having implicated him too much already; but there seemed to be no alternative. Vexed as Peter had been by my indecision, he was true to his generous nature, and said at once that he would do his best to help me, trusting I should show myself a stronger woman this time.

Uncle Phillip was called in, and he agreed with his mother that Jenny would tell Dr. Flint in less than twenty-four hours. He suggested that I get on the boat if possible; if not, I should stay hidden in my room, where they wouldn’t be able to find me without tearing the house apart. He said he couldn't get involved directly, as that would raise suspicion immediately, but he promised to get in touch with Peter. I felt hesitant to ask him again since I had already put him in a difficult position, but there didn’t seem to be any other option. Despite being frustrated with my indecision, Peter stayed true to his generous nature and immediately said he would do his best to help me, hoping I would prove to be a stronger woman this time.

He immediately proceeded to the wharf, and found that the wind had shifted, and the vessel was slowly beating down stream. On some pretext of urgent necessity, he offered two boatmen a dollar apiece to catch up with her. He was of lighter complexion than the boatmen he hired, and when the captain saw them coming so rapidly, he thought officers were pursuing his vessel in search of the runaway slave he had on board. They hoisted sails, but the boat gained upon them, and the indefatigable Peter sprang on board.

He quickly made his way to the dock and noticed that the wind had changed, and the ship was slowly moving downstream. Using some excuse of an urgent need, he offered two boatmen a dollar each to catch up with it. He had a lighter skin tone than the boatmen he hired, and when the captain saw them approaching so fast, he assumed that officers were chasing his ship looking for the runaway slave he had on board. They raised the sails, but the boat kept gaining on them, and the tireless Peter jumped on board.

The captain at once recognized him. Peter asked him to go below, to speak about a bad bill he had given him. When he told his errand, the captain replied, “Why, the woman’s here already; and I’ve put her where you or the devil would have a tough job to find her.”

The captain immediately recognized him. Peter asked him to go below to discuss a bad bill he had given him. When he explained his reason for being there, the captain replied, “Well, the woman’s already here; and I’ve hidden her where you or the devil would have a hard time finding her.”

“But it is another woman I want to bring,” said Peter. “She is in great distress, too, and you shall be paid any thing within reason, if you’ll stop and take her.”

“But there’s another woman I want to bring,” said Peter. “She is in great distress as well, and you’ll be paid whatever seems fair if you’ll stop and take her.”

“What’s her name?” inquired the captain.

“What’s her name?” asked the captain.

“Linda,” he replied.

"Linda," he said.

“That’s the name of the woman already here,” rejoined the captain. “By George! I believe you mean to betray me.”

“That’s the name of the woman who's already here,” replied the captain. “By God! I think you’re planning to betray me.”

“O!” exclaimed Peter, “God knows I wouldn’t harm a hair of your head. I am too grateful to you. But there really is another woman in great danger. Do have the humanity to stop and take her!”

“O!” exclaimed Peter, “I swear I wouldn’t harm a hair on your head. I’m just too grateful to you. But there really is another woman in great danger. Please, have the decency to stop and help her!”

After a while they came to an understanding. Fanny, not dreaming I was any where about in that region, had assumed my name, though she called herself Johnson. “Linda is a common name,” said Peter, “and the woman I want to bring is Linda Brent.”

After a while, they reached an agreement. Fanny, not realizing I was anywhere near that place, had taken my name, though she referred to herself as Johnson. “Linda is a common name,” said Peter, “and the woman I want to bring is Linda Brent.”

The captain agreed to wait at a certain place till evening, being handsomely paid for his detention.

The captain agreed to wait at a specific location until evening, being well compensated for his delay.

Of course, the day was an anxious one for us all. But we concluded that if Jenny had seen me, she would be too wise to let her mistress know of it; and that she probably would not get a chance to see Dr. Flint’s family till evening, for I knew very well what were the rules in that household. I afterwards believed that she did not see me; for nothing ever came of it, and she was one of those base characters that would have jumped to betray a suffering fellow being for the sake of thirty pieces of silver.

Of course, it was a stressful day for all of us. But we figured that if Jenny had spotted me, she would be smart enough not to tell her boss. Plus, she probably wouldn’t get a chance to see Dr. Flint’s family until the evening, because I knew the rules in that house very well. Later, I believed she didn’t see me; nothing ever happened because of it, and she was the kind of person who would betray someone in need for just a bit of money.

I made all my arrangements to go on board as soon as it was dusk. The intervening time I resolved to spend with my son. I had not spoken to him for seven years, though I had been under the same roof, and seen him every day, when I was well enough to sit at the loophole. I did not dare to venture beyond the storeroom; so they brought him there, and locked us up together, in a place concealed from the piazza door. It was an agitating interview for both of us. After we had talked and wept together for a little while, he said, “Mother, I’m glad you’re going away. I wish I could go with you. I knew you was here; and I have been so afraid they would come and catch you!”

I made all my plans to board the ship as soon as it got dark. In the meantime, I decided to spend time with my son. I hadn’t talked to him in seven years, even though we were living under the same roof and I saw him every day when I was well enough to sit by the window. I didn’t dare to go beyond the storeroom, so they brought him there and locked us up together in a place hidden from the piazza door. It was a tense meeting for both of us. After we talked and cried together for a little while, he said, “Mom, I’m glad you’re leaving. I wish I could go with you. I knew you were here, and I was so afraid they would catch you!”

I was greatly surprised, and asked him how he had found it out.

I was really surprised and asked him how he had figured it out.

He replied, “I was standing under the eaves, one day, before Ellen went away, and I heard somebody cough up over the wood shed. I don’t know what made me think it was you, but I did think so. I missed Ellen, the night before she went away; and grandmother brought her back into the room in the night; and I thought maybe she’d been to see you, before she went, for I heard grandmother whisper to her, ‘Now go to sleep; and remember never to tell.’”

He replied, “I was standing under the eaves one day, before Ellen left, and I heard someone cough near the wood shed. I’m not sure why I thought it was you, but I did. I missed Ellen the night before she left, and my grandmother brought her back into the room at night. I thought maybe she had gone to see you before she left because I heard my grandmother whisper to her, ‘Now go to sleep; and remember, never tell.’”

I asked him if he ever mentioned his suspicions to his sister. He said he never did; but after he heard the cough, if he saw her playing with other children on that side of the house, he always tried to coax her round to the other side, for fear they would hear me cough, too. He said he had kept a close lookout for Dr. Flint, and if he saw him speak to a constable, or a patrol, he always told grandmother. I now recollected that I had seen him manifest uneasiness, when people were on that side of the house, and I had at the time been puzzled to conjecture a motive for his actions. Such prudence may seem extraordinary in a boy of twelve years, but slaves, being surrounded by mysteries, deceptions, and dangers, early learn to be suspicious and watchful, and prematurely cautious and cunning. He had never asked a question of grandmother, or uncle Phillip, and I had often heard him chime in with other children, when they spoke of my being at the north.

I asked him if he had ever mentioned his suspicions to his sister. He said he never did; but after he heard the cough, whenever he saw her playing with other kids on that side of the house, he always tried to get her to come around to the other side, worried they might hear me cough too. He said he kept a close watch for Dr. Flint, and if he saw him talking to a police officer or a patrol, he would always tell Grandma. I remembered that I had seen him look uneasy when people were on that side of the house, and I had been puzzled about his motives at the time. Such caution might seem unusual for a twelve-year-old, but slaves, surrounded by mysteries, lies, and dangers, quickly learn to be suspicious, alert, and overly cautious. He had never asked Grandma or Uncle Phillip any questions, and I often heard him join in with the other kids when they talked about my being up North.

I told him I was now really going to the Free States, and if he was a good, honest boy, and a loving child to his dear old grandmother, the Lord would bless him, and bring him to me, and we and Ellen would live together. He began to tell me that grandmother had not eaten any thing all day. While he was speaking, the door was unlocked, and she came in with a small bag of money, which she wanted me to take. I begged her to keep a part of it, at least, to pay for Benny’s being sent to the north; but she insisted, while her tears were falling fast, that I should take the whole. “You may be sick among strangers,” she said, “and they would send you to the poorhouse to die.” Ah, that good grandmother!

I told him I was really going to the Free States now, and if he was a good, honest kid and a loving grandson to his dear old grandmother, the Lord would bless him and bring him to me, and we and Ellen would live together. He started to tell me that his grandmother hadn't eaten anything all day. While he was talking, the door was unlocked, and she came in with a small bag of money that she wanted me to take. I begged her to keep part of it at least to pay for Benny’s trip to the north, but she insisted, tears streaming down her face, that I should take it all. “You might get sick among strangers,” she said, “and they would send you to the poorhouse to die.” Ah, that wonderful grandmother!

For the last time I went up to my nook. Its desolate appearance no longer chilled me, for the light of hope had risen in my soul. Yet, even with the blessed prospect of freedom before me, I felt very sad at leaving forever that old homestead, where I had been sheltered so long by the dear old grandmother; where I had dreamed my first young dream of love; and where, after that had faded away, my children came to twine themselves so closely round my desolate heart. As the hour approached for me to leave, I again descended to the storeroom. My grandmother and Benny were there. She took me by the hand, and said, “Linda, let us pray.” We knelt down together, with my child pressed to my heart, and my other arm round the faithful, loving old friend I was about to leave forever. On no other occasion has it ever been my lot to listen to so fervent a supplication for mercy and protection. It thrilled through my heart, and inspired me with trust in God.

For the last time, I went up to my little spot. Its empty look no longer frightened me, because a light of hope had risen in my soul. Yet, even with the wonderful prospect of freedom ahead, I felt really sad about leaving that old home forever, where I had been cared for so long by my dear grandmother; where I had dreamed my first young dream of love; and where, after that faded away, my children had come to wrap their love around my lonely heart. As the time drew near for me to go, I went back down to the storeroom. My grandmother and Benny were there. She took my hand and said, “Linda, let’s pray.” We knelt down together, with my child pressed to my heart, and my other arm around the faithful, loving old friend I was about to leave forever. I’ve never experienced such a heartfelt plea for mercy and protection before. It vibrated through my heart and filled me with trust in God.

Peter was waiting for me in the street. I was soon by his side, faint in body, but strong of purpose. I did not look back upon the old place, though I felt that I should never see it again.

Peter was waiting for me on the street. I quickly joined him, feeling weak physically but determined in spirit. I didn’t glance back at the old place, even though I knew I would never see it again.










XXX. Northward Bound.

I never could tell how we reached the wharf. My brain was all of a whirl, and my limbs tottered under me. At an appointed place we met my uncle Phillip, who had started before us on a different route, that he might reach the wharf first, and give us timely warning if there was any danger. A row-boat was in readiness. As I was about to step in, I felt something pull me gently, and turning round I saw Benny, looking pale and anxious. He whispered in my ear, “I’ve been peeping into the doctor’s window, and he’s at home. Good by, mother. Don’t cry; I’ll come.” He hastened away. I clasped the hand of my good uncle, to whom I owed so much, and of Peter, the brave, generous friend who had volunteered to run such terrible risks to secure my safety. To this day I remember how his bright face beamed with joy, when he told me he had discovered a safe method for me to escape. Yet that intelligent, enterprising, noble-hearted man was a chattel! Liable, by the laws of a country that calls itself civilized, to be sold with horses and pigs! We parted in silence. Our hearts were all too full for words!

I could never figure out how we got to the wharf. My mind was spinning, and my legs felt weak beneath me. At a designated spot, we met my uncle Phillip, who had taken a different route earlier to get to the wharf first and warn us if there was any trouble. A rowboat was ready and waiting. Just as I was about to get in, I felt a gentle tug, and when I turned around, I saw Benny, looking pale and worried. He whispered to me, “I peeked into the doctor’s window, and he’s home. Goodbye, Mom. Don’t cry; I’ll be back.” He hurried off. I took the hand of my good uncle, whom I owed so much, and of Peter, the brave, generous friend who had risked so much to keep me safe. To this day, I remember how his bright face lit up with joy when he told me he had found a safe way for me to escape. Yet that intelligent, resourceful, kind-hearted man was considered property! Subject, according to the laws of a country that claims to be civilized, to be sold along with horses and pigs! We parted in silence. Our hearts were too full for words!

Swiftly the boat glided over the water. After a while, one of the sailors said, “Don’t be down-hearted, madam. We will take you safely to your husband, in ——.” At first I could not imagine what he meant; but I had presence of mind to think that it probably referred to something the captain had told him; so I thanked him, and said I hoped we should have pleasant weather.

Quickly, the boat moved smoothly across the water. After a bit, one of the sailors said, “Don't worry, ma'am. We'll get you safely to your husband, in ——.” At first, I couldn't figure out what he meant; but I had the sense to think it probably connected to something the captain had mentioned. So, I thanked him and said I hoped we would have nice weather.

When I entered the vessel the captain came forward to meet me. He was an elderly man, with a pleasant countenance. He showed me to a little box of a cabin, where sat my friend Fanny. She started as if she had seen a spectre. She gazed on me in utter astonishment, and exclaimed, “Linda, can this be you? or is it your ghost?” When we were locked in each other’s arms, my overwrought feelings could no longer be restrained. My sobs reached the ears of the captain, who came and very kindly reminded us, that for his safety, as well as our own, it would be prudent for us not to attract any attention. He said that when there was a sail in sight he wished us to keep below; but at other times, he had no objection to our being on deck. He assured us that he would keep a good lookout, and if we acted prudently, he thought we should be in no danger. He had represented us as women going to meet our husbands in ——. We thanked him, and promised to observe carefully all the directions he gave us.

When I stepped onto the ship, the captain came up to greet me. He was an older man with a friendly face. He took me to a small cabin where my friend Fanny was sitting. She jumped as if she had seen a ghost. She looked at me in complete shock and exclaimed, “Linda, is that really you? Or is it your ghost?” Once we were locked in each other’s arms, my overwhelming emotions couldn’t be held back anymore. My sobs were loud enough for the captain to hear, and he kindly reminded us that for his safety, as well as ours, it would be wise not to draw any attention. He said that whenever there was a ship in sight, he wanted us to stay below deck, but at other times, he didn't mind us being on deck. He assured us he would keep a close watch, and if we acted carefully, he thought we’d be safe. He had told others that we were women going to meet our husbands in —. We thanked him and promised to follow all his instructions closely.

Fanny and I now talked by ourselves, low and quietly, in our little cabin. She told me of the sufferings she had gone through in making her escape, and of her terrors while she was concealed in her mother’s house. Above all, she dwelt on the agony of separation from all her children on that dreadful auction day. She could scarcely credit me, when I told her of the place where I had passed nearly seven years. “We have the same sorrows,” said I. “No,” replied she, “you are going to see your children soon, and there is no hope that I shall ever even hear from mine.”

Fanny and I were talking quietly to ourselves in our little cabin. She shared the pain she endured while escaping and the fears she faced while hiding in her mother’s house. Most of all, she focused on the heartache of being separated from all of her children on that terrible auction day. She could hardly believe me when I told her about the place where I had spent nearly seven years. “We share the same sorrows,” I said. “No,” she replied, “you’re going to see your children soon, and there’s no hope that I’ll ever even hear from mine.”

The vessel was soon under way, but we made slow progress. The wind was against us. I should not have cared for this, if we had been out of sight of the town; but until there were miles of water between us and our enemies, we were filled with constant apprehensions that the constables would come on board. Neither could I feel quite at ease with the captain and his men. I was an entire stranger to that class of people, and I had heard that sailors were rough, and sometimes cruel. We were so completely in their power, that if they were bad men, our situation would be dreadful. Now that the captain was paid for our passage, might he not be tempted to make more money by giving us up to those who claimed us as property? I was naturally of a confiding disposition, but slavery had made me suspicious of every body. Fanny did not share my distrust of the captain or his men. She said she was afraid at first, but she had been on board three days while the vessel lay in the dock, and nobody had betrayed her, or treated her otherwise than kindly.

The ship was soon on its way, but we were making slow progress. The wind was against us. I wouldn’t have minded if we were out of sight of the town, but until there were miles of water between us and our enemies, we were constantly worried that the authorities would come on board. I also couldn’t feel entirely at ease with the captain and his crew. I was a complete stranger to that kind of people, and I had heard that sailors could be rough and sometimes cruel. We were entirely at their mercy, and if they were bad people, our situation would be terrible. Now that the captain had been paid for our passage, might he not be tempted to make more money by handing us over to those who considered us property? I was naturally trusting, but slavery had made me suspicious of everyone. Fanny didn’t share my distrust of the captain or his crew. She said she was afraid at first, but she had been on board for three days while the ship was docked, and no one had betrayed her or treated her badly.

The captain soon came to advise us to go on deck for fresh air. His friendly and respectful manner, combined with Fanny’s testimony, reassured me, and we went with him. He placed us in a comfortable seat, and occasionally entered into conversation. He told us he was a Southerner by birth, and had spent the greater part of his life in the Slave States, and that he had recently lost a brother who traded in slaves. “But,” said he, “it is a pitiable and degrading business, and I always felt ashamed to acknowledge my brother in connection with it.” As we passed Snaky Swamp, he pointed to it, and said, “There is a slave territory that defies all the laws.” I thought of the terrible days I had spent there, and though it was not called Dismal Swamp, it made me feel very dismal as I looked at it.

The captain soon came to tell us to go on deck for some fresh air. His friendly and respectful attitude, along with Fanny’s account, made me feel better, so we went with him. He seated us comfortably and occasionally joined in our conversation. He mentioned that he was from the South and had spent most of his life in the slave states, and that he had recently lost a brother who was involved in the slave trade. “But,” he said, “it’s a sad and degrading business, and I always felt ashamed to be associated with my brother because of it.” As we passed Snaky Swamp, he pointed it out and said, “That’s a slave territory that ignores all laws.” I remembered the awful days I had spent there, and even though it wasn't called Dismal Swamp, it made me feel very down as I looked at it.

I shall never forget that night. The balmy air of spring was so refreshing! And how shall I describe my sensations when we were fairly sailing on Chesapeake Bay? O, the beautiful sunshine! the exhilarating breeze! And I could enjoy them without fear or restraint. I had never realized what grand things air and sunlight are till I had been deprived of them.

I will never forget that night. The warm spring air was so refreshing! And how do I describe my feelings when we were sailing on Chesapeake Bay? Oh, the beautiful sunshine! The exhilarating breeze! I could enjoy them without fear or restraint. I had never realized how amazing air and sunlight are until I had been without them.

Ten days after we left land we were approaching Philadelphia. The captain said we should arrive there in the night, but he thought we had better wait till morning, and go on shore in broad daylight, as the best way to avoid suspicion.

Ten days after we set sail, we were getting close to Philadelphia. The captain mentioned that we’d reach it by night, but he thought it would be better to wait until morning and go ashore in daylight to avoid raising any suspicion.

I replied, “You know best. But will you stay on board and protect us?”

I said, “You know what’s best. But will you stay with us and keep us safe?”

He saw that I was suspicious, and he said he was sorry, now that he had brought us to the end of our voyage, to find I had so little confidence in him. Ah, if he had ever been a slave he would have known how difficult it was to trust a white man. He assured us that we might sleep through the night without fear; that he would take care we were not left unprotected. Be it said to the honor of this captain, Southerner as he was, that if Fanny and I had been white ladies, and our passage lawfully engaged, he could not have treated us more respectfully. My intelligent friend, Peter, had rightly estimated the character of the man to whose honor he had intrusted us.

He noticed that I was suspicious, and he apologized, now that he had brought us to the end of our journey, for the fact that I had so little trust in him. Oh, if he had ever been a slave, he would have understood how hard it was to trust a white man. He promised us that we could sleep through the night without fear; that he would make sure we were not left unprotected. It must be said, in the captain’s honor, that if Fanny and I had been white ladies, and our passage lawfully booked, he couldn't have treated us with more respect. My smart friend, Peter, had accurately judged the character of the man to whose honor he had entrusted us.

The next morning I was on deck as soon as the day dawned. I called Fanny to see the sun rise, for the first time in our lives, on free soil; for such I then believed it to be. We watched the reddening sky, and saw the great orb come up slowly out of the water, as it seemed. Soon the waves began to sparkle, and every thing caught the beautiful glow. Before us lay the city of strangers. We looked at each other, and the eyes of both were moistened with tears. We had escaped from slavery, and we supposed ourselves to be safe from the hunters. But we were alone in the world, and we had left dear ties behind us; ties cruelly sundered by the demon Slavery.

The next morning, I was on deck as soon as the day broke. I called Fanny to see the sunrise for the first time in our lives on what I believed to be free soil. We watched the sky turn red and saw the sun slowly rising out of the water. Soon, the waves began to sparkle, and everything caught that beautiful glow. Before us lay a city of strangers. We looked at each other, and tears welled up in our eyes. We had escaped from slavery, thinking we were safe from the pursuers. But we were alone in the world, having left behind precious connections; ties that were cruelly torn apart by the cruel grip of Slavery.










XXXI. Incidents In Philadelphia.

I had heard that the poor slave had many friends at the north. I trusted we should find some of them. Meantime, we would take it for granted that all were friends, till they proved to the contrary. I sought out the kind captain, thanked him for his attentions, and told him I should never cease to be grateful for the service he had rendered us. I gave him a message to the friends I had left at home, and he promised to deliver it. We were placed in a row-boat, and in about fifteen minutes were landed on a wood wharf in Philadelphia. As I stood looking round, the friendly captain touched me on the shoulder, and said, “There is a respectable-looking colored man behind you. I will speak to him about the New York trains, and tell him you wish to go directly on.” I thanked him, and asked him to direct me to some shops where I could buy gloves and veils. He did so, and said he would talk with the colored man till I returned. I made what haste I could. Constant exercise on board the vessel, and frequent rubbing with salt water, had nearly restored the use of my limbs. The noise of the great city confused me, but I found the shops, and bought some double veils and gloves for Fanny and myself. The shopman told me they were so many levies. I had never heard the word before, but I did not tell him so. I thought if he knew I was a stranger he might ask me where I came from. I gave him a gold piece, and when he returned the change, I counted it, and found out how much a levy was. I made my way back to the wharf, where the captain introduced me to the colored man, as the Rev. Jeremiah Durham, minister of Bethel church. He took me by the hand, as if I had been an old friend. He told us we were too late for the morning cars to New York, and must wait until the evening, or the next morning. He invited me to go home with him, assuring me that his wife would give me a cordial welcome; and for my friend he would provide a home with one of his neighbors. I thanked him for so much kindness to strangers, and told him if I must be detained, I should like to hunt up some people who formerly went from our part of the country. Mr. Durham insisted that I should dine with him, and then he would assist me in finding my friends. The sailors came to bid us good by. I shook their hardy hands, with tears in my eyes. They had all been kind to us, and they had rendered us a greater service than they could possibly conceive of.

I had heard that the poor slave had many friends up north. I hoped we would meet some of them. In the meantime, we would assume everyone was a friend until proven otherwise. I found the kind captain, thanked him for his kindness, and told him I would always be grateful for the help he had given us. I gave him a message for the friends I left back home, and he promised to deliver it. We were put in a rowboat and landed on a wooden wharf in Philadelphia in about fifteen minutes. As I stood looking around, the friendly captain touched my shoulder and said, “There’s a respectable-looking Black man behind you. I’ll ask him about the New York trains and let him know you want to go right away.” I thanked him and asked if he could point me to some stores where I could buy gloves and veils. He did, and said he would talk to the Black man until I returned. I hurried as much as I could. Constant exercise on the boat and frequent rubbing with saltwater had almost restored the use of my limbs. The noise of the big city overwhelmed me, but I found the shops and bought some double veils and gloves for Fanny and myself. The shopkeeper told me the total was so many levies. I had never heard that term before, but I didn’t let him know. I thought that if he knew I was a stranger, he might ask me where I was from. I gave him a gold coin, and when he gave me the change, I counted it to learn how much a levy was. I made my way back to the wharf, where the captain introduced me to the Black man as the Rev. Jeremiah Durham, minister of Bethel Church. He shook my hand like we were old friends. He told us we had missed the morning trains to New York and would have to wait until the evening or the next morning. He invited me to come home with him, assuring me that his wife would give me a warm welcome; he would also find my friend a place to stay with one of his neighbors. I thanked him for being so kind to strangers and said that if I had to wait, I would like to look for some people who used to live in our part of the country. Mr. Durham insisted that I should have lunch with him, and after that, he would help me find my friends. The sailors came to say goodbye. I shook their strong hands with tears in my eyes. They had all been good to us, and they had done more for us than they could ever understand.

I had never seen so large a city, or been in contact with so many people in the streets. It seemed as if those who passed looked at us with an expression of curiosity. My face was so blistered and peeled, by sitting on deck, in wind and sunshine, that I thought they could not easily decide to what nation I belonged.

I had never seen a city so big or been around so many people on the streets. It felt like those who walked by were eyeing us with curiosity. My face was so sunburned and peeling from sitting on deck in the wind and sun that I figured they wouldn’t easily guess which country I was from.

Mrs. Durham met me with a kindly welcome, without asking any questions. I was tired, and her friendly manner was a sweet refreshment. God bless her! I was sure that she had comforted other weary hearts, before I received her sympathy. She was surrounded by her husband and children, in a home made sacred by protecting laws. I thought of my own children, and sighed.

Mrs. Durham greeted me with a warm welcome, without asking any questions. I was tired, and her friendly demeanor was genuinely refreshing. God bless her! I knew she had comforted other tired souls before offering me her support. She was surrounded by her husband and kids, in a home made special by protective laws. I thought of my own kids and sighed.

After dinner Mr. Durham went with me in quest of the friends I had spoken of. They went from my native town, and I anticipated much pleasure in looking on familiar faces. They were not at home, and we retraced our steps through streets delightfully clean. On the way, Mr. Durham observed that I had spoken to him of a daughter I expected to meet; that he was surprised, for I looked so young he had taken me for a single woman. He was approaching a subject on which I was extremely sensitive. He would ask about my husband next, I thought, and if I answered him truly, what would he think of me? I told him I had two children, one in New York the other at the south. He asked some further questions, and I frankly told him some of the most important events of my life. It was painful for me to do it; but I would not deceive him. If he was desirous of being my friend, I thought he ought to know how far I was worthy of it. “Excuse me, if I have tried your feelings,” said he. “I did not question you from idle curiosity. I wanted to understand your situation, in order to know whether I could be of any service to you, or your little girl. Your straight-forward answers do you credit; but don’t answer every body so openly. It might give some heartless people a pretext for treating you with contempt.”

After dinner, Mr. Durham joined me in searching for the friends I had mentioned. They had left my hometown, and I was looking forward to seeing some familiar faces. Unfortunately, they weren’t home, so we retraced our steps through the pleasantly clean streets. During our walk, Mr. Durham pointed out that I had mentioned a daughter I expected to meet; he was surprised, since I looked so young that he thought I was unmarried. He was about to touch on a topic I was really sensitive about. I thought he would ask about my husband next, and if I answered truthfully, how would he view me? I told him I had two children, one in New York and the other in the South. He asked a few more questions, and I candidly shared some of the key events in my life. It was difficult for me to do this, but I didn’t want to mislead him. If he truly wanted to be my friend, I felt he should know how deserving I was of that friendship. “I apologize if I’ve upset you,” he said. “I didn’t ask out of idle curiosity. I wanted to understand your situation so I could see if I could help you or your little girl. Your honest answers reflect well on you, but don’t be so open with everyone. It might give some cruel people a reason to treat you poorly.”

That word contempt burned me like coals of fire. I replied, “God alone knows how I have suffered; and He, I trust, will forgive me. If I am permitted to have my children, I intend to be a good mother, and to live in such a manner that people cannot treat me with contempt.”

That word contempt stung me like hot coals. I responded, “Only God knows how I’ve suffered, and I hope He will forgive me. If I’m allowed to keep my children, I plan to be a good mother and live in a way that people can't treat me with contempt.”

“I respect your sentiments,” said he. “Place your trust in God, and be governed by good principles, and you will not fail to find friends.”

“I respect what you feel,” he said. “Trust in God, follow good principles, and you will surely find friends.”

When we reached home, I went to my room, glad to shut out the world for a while. The words he had spoken made an indelible impression upon me. They brought up great shadows from the mournful past. In the midst of my meditations I was startled by a knock at the door. Mrs. Durham entered, her face all beaming with kindness, to say that there was an anti-slavery friend down stairs, who would like to see me. I overcame my dread of encountering strangers, and went with her. Many questions were asked concerning my experiences, and my escape from slavery; but I observed how careful they all were not to say any thing that might wound my feelings. How gratifying this was, can be fully understood only by those who have been accustomed to be treated as if they were not included within the pale of human beings. The anti-slavery friend had come to inquire into my plans, and to offer assistance, if needed. Fanny was comfortably established, for the present, with a friend of Mr. Durham. The Anti-Slavery Society agreed to pay her expenses to New York. The same was offered to me, but I declined to accept it; telling them that my grandmother had given me sufficient to pay my expenses to the end of my journey. We were urged to remain in Philadelphia a few days, until some suitable escort could be found for us. I gladly accepted the proposition, for I had a dread of meeting slaveholders, and some dread also of railroads. I had never entered a railroad car in my life, and it seemed to me quite an important event.

When we got home, I went to my room, happy to shut out the world for a bit. The words he had said left a lasting impact on me. They brought up haunting memories from a sad past. In the middle of my thoughts, I was surprised by a knock at the door. Mrs. Durham came in, her face shining with kindness, to tell me that there was an anti-slavery friend downstairs who wanted to see me. I pushed through my fear of meeting strangers and went with her. They asked many questions about my experiences and my escape from slavery, but I noticed how careful they were not to say anything that might hurt my feelings. How comforting this was can only be fully appreciated by those who have been treated as if they were outside the circle of humanity. The anti-slavery friend had come to ask about my plans and offer help if needed. Fanny was comfortably settled, for the time being, with a friend of Mr. Durham. The Anti-Slavery Society offered to cover her expenses to New York. They made the same offer to me, but I turned it down, saying that my grandmother had given me enough to pay for my expenses until I reached my destination. We were encouraged to stay in Philadelphia for a few days until a suitable escort could be found for us. I gladly accepted the suggestion, as I was afraid of encountering slaveholders, and I also had some anxiety about railroads. I had never been in a railroad car in my life, and it felt like a big deal to me.

That night I sought my pillow with feelings I had never carried to it before. I verily believed myself to be a free woman. I was wakeful for a long time, and I had no sooner fallen asleep, than I was roused by fire-bells. I jumped up, and hurried on my clothes. Where I came from, every body hastened to dress themselves on such occasions. The white people thought a great fire might be used as a good opportunity for insurrection, and that it was best to be in readiness; and the colored people were ordered out to labor in extinguishing the flames. There was but one engine in our town, and colored women and children were often required to drag it to the river’s edge and fill it. Mrs. Durham’s daughter slept in the same room with me, and seeing that she slept through all the din, I thought it was my duty to wake her. “What’s the matter?” said she, rubbing her eyes.

That night, I went to bed with feelings I had never experienced before. I truly believed I was a free woman. I was awake for a long time, and as soon as I finally fell asleep, I was jolted awake by fire alarms. I jumped up and quickly got dressed. Where I came from, everyone rushed to get ready in situations like this. The white people thought a big fire could be a good chance for rebellion, so it was best to be prepared; meanwhile, the Black people were ordered to come out and help put out the flames. Our town only had one fire engine, and Black women and children were often called to drag it to the river and fill it. Mrs. Durham’s daughter slept in the same room as me, and when I saw that she was sleeping through all the noise, I felt it was my responsibility to wake her. “What’s the matter?” she said, rubbing her eyes.

“They’re screaming fire in the streets, and the bells are ringing,” I replied.

“They’re shouting fire in the streets, and the bells are ringing,” I replied.

“What of that?” said she, drowsily. “We are used to it. We never get up, without the fire is very near. What good would it do?”

“What of that?” she said sleepily. “We're used to it. We never get up unless the fire is really close. What good would it do?”

I was quite surprised that it was not necessary for us to go and help fill the engine. I was an ignorant child, just beginning to learn how things went on in great cities.

I was really surprised that we didn't need to go and help fill the engine. I was an ignorant kid, just starting to figure out how things worked in big cities.

At daylight, I heard women crying fresh fish, berries, radishes, and various other things. All this was new to me. I dressed myself at an early hour, and sat at the window to watch that unknown tide of life. Philadelphia seemed to me a wonderfully great place. At the breakfast table, my idea of going out to drag the engine was laughed over, and I joined in the mirth.

As daylight broke, I heard women calling out about fresh fish, berries, radishes, and other goods. Everything felt new to me. I got dressed early and sat by the window to observe that unfamiliar flow of life. Philadelphia seemed like an incredibly large city to me. At the breakfast table, everyone laughed at my idea of going out to pull the engine, and I joined in the laughter.

I went to see Fanny, and found her so well contented among her new friends that she was in no haste to leave. I was also very happy with my kind hostess. She had had advantages for education, and was vastly my superior. Every day, almost every hour, I was adding to my little stock of knowledge. She took me out to see the city as much as she deemed prudent. One day she took me to an artist’s room, and showed me the portraits of some of her children. I had never seen any paintings of colored people before, and they seemed to me beautiful.

I went to see Fanny and found her really happy with her new friends, so she wasn’t in any rush to leave. I was also very pleased with my friendly host. She had a good education and was way ahead of me. Every day, almost every hour, I was adding to my little bit of knowledge. She took me out to explore the city whenever she thought it was safe. One day, she took me to an artist’s studio and showed me portraits of some of her children. I had never seen paintings of people of color before, and I thought they were beautiful.

At the end of five days, one of Mrs. Durham’s friends offered to accompany us to New York the following morning. As I held the hand of my good hostess in a parting clasp, I longed to know whether her husband had repeated to her what I had told him. I supposed he had, but she never made any allusion to it. I presume it was the delicate silence of womanly sympathy.

At the end of five days, one of Mrs. Durham’s friends offered to join us on our trip to New York the next morning. As I held my kind hostess’s hand in a farewell clasp, I wished I could know if her husband had shared what I had told him. I thought he must have, but she never mentioned it. I guess it was her way of showing unspoken support.

When Mr. Durham handed us our tickets, he said, “I am afraid you will have a disagreeable ride; but I could not procure tickets for the first class cars.”

When Mr. Durham handed us our tickets, he said, “I’m afraid you’ll have an uncomfortable ride; but I couldn’t get tickets for the first-class cars.”

Supposing I had not given him money enough, I offered more. “O, no,” said he, “they could not be had for any money. They don’t allow colored people to go in the first-class cars.”

Supposing I hadn’t given him enough money, I offered more. “Oh, no,” he said, “they can’t be bought with any amount. They don’t let Black people in the first-class cars.”

This was the first chill to my enthusiasm about the Free States. Colored people were allowed to ride in a filthy box, behind white people, at the south, but there they were not required to pay for the privilege. It made me sad to find how the north aped the customs of slavery.

This was the first thing that dampened my excitement about the Free States. Black people were allowed to ride in a dirty box behind white people in the South, but they weren't required to pay for that privilege. It made me sad to see how the North copied the customs of slavery.

We were stowed away in a large, rough car, with windows on each side, too high for us to look out without standing up. It was crowded with people, apparently of all nations. There were plenty of beds and cradles, containing screaming and kicking babies. Every other man had a cigar or pipe in his mouth, and jugs of whiskey were handed round freely. The fumes of the whiskey and the dense tobacco smoke were sickening to my senses, and my mind was equally nauseated by the coarse jokes and ribald songs around me. It was a very disagreeable ride. Since that time there has been some improvement in these matters.

We were crammed into a large, rough car with windows on both sides, too high for us to see outside without standing up. It was packed with people from seemingly every nation. There were plenty of beds and cradles filled with screaming and kicking babies. Every other man had a cigar or pipe in his mouth, and jugs of whiskey were passed around freely. The smell of whiskey and thick tobacco smoke were overwhelming to my senses, and the crude jokes and raunchy songs around me made me feel just as sick. It was a really unpleasant ride. Since then, there have been some improvements in these situations.










XXXII. The Meeting Of Mother And Daughter.

When we arrived in New York, I was half crazed by the crowd of coachmen calling out, “Carriage, ma’am?” We bargained with one to take us to Sullivan Street for twelve shillings. A burly Irishman stepped up and said, “I’ll tak’ ye for sax shillings.” The reduction of half the price was an object to us, and we asked if he could take us right away. “Troth an I will, ladies,” he replied. I noticed that the hackmen smiled at each other, and I inquired whether his conveyance was decent. “Yes, it’s dacent it is, marm. Devil a bit would I be after takin’ ladies in a cab that was not dacent.” We gave him our checks. He went for the baggage, and soon reappeared, saying, “This way, if you plase, ladies.” We followed, and found our trunks on a truck, and we were invited to take our seats on them. We told him that was not what we bargained for, and he must take the trunks off. He swore they should not be touched till we had paid him six shillings. In our situation it was not prudent to attract attention, and I was about to pay him what he required, when a man near by shook his head for me not to do it. After a great ado we got rid of the Irishman, and had our trunks fastened on a hack. We had been recommended to a boarding-house in Sullivan Street, and thither we drove. There Fanny and I separated. The Anti-Slavery Society provided a home for her, and I afterwards heard of her in prosperous circumstances. I sent for an old friend from my part of the country, who had for some time been doing business in New York. He came immediately. I told him I wanted to go to my daughter, and asked him to aid me in procuring an interview.

When we got to New York, I was half out of my mind with all the coachmen shouting, “Carriage, ma'am?” We negotiated with one to take us to Sullivan Street for twelve shillings. A hefty Irishman stepped up and said, “I’ll take you for six shillings.” The half-price deal was appealing to us, so we asked if he could take us right away. “Of course, I will, ladies,” he replied. I noticed the other cab drivers smirking at each other, and I asked if his ride was decent. “Yes, it’s decent, ma'am. I wouldn’t take ladies in a cab that wasn’t.” We gave him our bags, and he went to get our luggage. He soon returned, saying, “This way, if you please, ladies.” We followed him and found our trunks on a cart and were invited to sit on them. We told him that wasn’t what we agreed on and that he needed to take the trunks off. He insisted that nothing would be touched until we paid him six shillings. Since it wasn’t wise to attract attention in our situation, I was about to give him what he wanted when a man nearby signaled for me not to do it. After quite a struggle, we got rid of the Irishman and had our trunks loaded onto a cab. We had been recommended a boarding house on Sullivan Street, so we headed there. Fanny and I parted ways. The Anti-Slavery Society provided her with a home, and later I heard she was doing well. I called an old friend from back home who had been living in New York for a while. He came right away. I told him I wanted to see my daughter and asked for his help in setting up a meeting.

I cautioned him not to let it be known to the family that I had just arrived from the south, because they supposed I had been at the north seven years. He told me there was a colored woman in Brooklyn who came from the same town I did, and I had better go to her house, and have my daughter meet me there. I accepted the proposition thankfully, and he agreed to escort me to Brooklyn. We crossed Fulton ferry, went up Myrtle Avenue, and stopped at the house he designated. I was just about to enter, when two girls passed. My friend called my attention to them. I turned, and recognized in the eldest, Sarah, the daughter of a woman who used to live with my grandmother, but who had left the south years ago. Surprised and rejoiced at this unexpected meeting, I threw my arms round her, and inquired concerning her mother.

I warned him not to let the family know that I had just arrived from the south because they thought I had been up north for seven years. He mentioned there was a Black woman in Brooklyn from the same town as me, and suggested I go to her house and meet my daughter there. I happily accepted his suggestion, and he offered to take me to Brooklyn. We took the Fulton ferry, went up Myrtle Avenue, and stopped at the house he pointed out. Just as I was about to go in, two girls walked by. My friend pointed them out to me. I turned and recognized the older one, Sarah, the daughter of a woman who used to live with my grandmother but had left the south years ago. Surprised and thrilled by this unexpected reunion, I hugged her and asked about her mother.

“You take no notice of the other girl,” said my friend. I turned, and there stood my Ellen! I pressed her to my heart, then held her away from me to take a look at her. She had changed a good deal in the two years since I parted from her. Signs of neglect could be discerned by eyes less observing than a mother’s. My friend invited us all to go into the house; but Ellen said she had been sent of an errand, which she would do as quickly as possible, and go home and ask Mrs. Hobbs to let her come and see me. It was agreed that I should send for her the next day. Her companion, Sarah, hastened to tell her mother of my arrival. When I entered the house, I found the mistress of it absent, and I waited for her return. Before I saw her, I heard her saying, “Where is Linda Brent? I used to know her father and mother.” Soon Sarah came with her mother. So there was quite a company of us, all from my grandmother’s neighborhood. These friends gathered round me and questioned me eagerly. They laughed, they cried, and they shouted. They thanked God that I had got away from my persecutors and was safe on Long Island. It was a day of great excitement. How different from the silent days I had passed in my dreary den!

“You're not even paying attention to the other girl,” my friend said. I turned, and there was my Ellen! I hugged her tightly, then pulled her back to take a good look at her. She had changed a lot in the two years since I last saw her. Even a casual observer could see signs of neglect, but a mother would notice even more. My friend suggested we all go inside the house, but Ellen said she had to run an errand, which she would do as quickly as possible, and then go home to ask Mrs. Hobbs if she could come and visit me. We agreed that I would send for her the following day. Her friend Sarah hurried to tell her mom about my arrival. When I got inside the house, I found the owner was out, so I waited for her to come back. Before I saw her, I heard her asking, “Where is Linda Brent? I once knew her father and mother.” Soon Sarah returned with her mom. So there was quite a group of us, all from my grandmother’s neighborhood. These friends gathered around me and asked me a bunch of questions. They laughed, cried, and cheered. They thanked God that I had escaped from my persecutors and was safe on Long Island. It was an exciting day. So different from the quiet days I spent in my dreary little room!

The next morning was Sunday. My first waking thoughts were occupied with the note I was to send to Mrs. Hobbs, the lady with whom Ellen lived. That I had recently come into that vicinity was evident; otherwise I should have sooner inquired for my daughter. It would not do to let them know I had just arrived from the south, for that would involve the suspicion of my having been harbored there, and might bring trouble, if not ruin, on several people.

The next morning was Sunday. My first waking thoughts were focused on the note I needed to send to Mrs. Hobbs, the woman with whom Ellen lived. It was clear that I had just arrived in the area; otherwise, I would have asked about my daughter sooner. I couldn't let them know I had just come from the south, since that would lead to suspicion about being hidden there and could bring trouble, if not disaster, to several people.

I like a straightforward course, and am always reluctant to resort to subterfuges. So far as my ways have been crooked, I charge them all upon slavery. It was that system of violence and wrong which now left me no alternative but to enact a falsehood. I began my note by stating that I had recently arrived from Canada, and was very desirous to have my daughter come to see me. She came and brought a message from Mrs. Hobbs, inviting me to her house, and assuring me that I need not have any fears. The conversation I had with my child did not leave my mind at ease. When I asked if she was well treated, she answered yes; but there was no heartiness in the tone, and it seemed to me that she said it from an unwillingness to have me troubled on her account. Before she left me, she asked very earnestly, “Mother, when will you take me to live with you?” It made me sad to think that I could not give her a home till I went to work and earned the means; and that might take me a long time. When she was placed with Mrs. Hobbs, the agreement was that she should be sent to school. She had been there two years, and was now nine years old, and she scarcely knew her letters. There was no excuse for this, for there were good public schools in Brooklyn, to which she could have been sent without expense.

I prefer a straightforward approach and am always hesitant to use tricks. Any crookedness in my actions, I blame entirely on slavery. It was that system of violence and injustice that left me with no choice but to tell a lie. I started my note by saying that I had recently arrived from Canada and was very eager for my daughter to come visit me. She came and brought a message from Mrs. Hobbs, inviting me to her house and assuring me that I didn't need to worry. The conversation I had with my child didn’t ease my mind. When I asked if she was treated well, she replied yes, but there was no enthusiasm in her voice, and it seemed to me she said it to avoid upsetting me. Before she left, she asked very sincerely, “Mother, when will you take me to live with you?” It saddened me to think that I couldn’t give her a home until I found work and earned the money, which could take a long time. When she was placed with Mrs. Hobbs, it was agreed that she would be sent to school. She had been there for two years and was now nine years old, yet she barely knew her letters. There was no reason for this, as there were good public schools in Brooklyn that she could have attended for free.

She staid with me till dark, and I went home with her. I was received in a friendly manner by the family, and all agreed in saying that Ellen was a useful, good girl. Mrs. Hobbs looked me coolly in the face, and said, “I suppose you know that my cousin, Mr. Sands, has given her to my eldest daughter. She will make a nice waiting-maid for her when she grows up.” I did not answer a word. How could she, who knew by experience the strength of a mother’s love, and who was perfectly aware of the relation Mr. Sands bore to my children,—how could she look me in the face, while she thrust such a dagger into my heart?

She stayed with me until it got dark, and I went home with her. The family welcomed me warmly, and everyone agreed that Ellen was a helpful, good girl. Mrs. Hobbs looked me straight in the eye and said, “I suppose you know that my cousin, Mr. Sands, has given her to my oldest daughter. She’ll make a nice maid for her when she grows up.” I didn't say a word. How could she, knowing from her own experience how strong a mother’s love is, and fully aware of Mr. Sands's connection to my children—how could she look me in the eye while driving such a dagger into my heart?

I was no longer surprised that they had kept her in such a state of ignorance. Mr. Hobbs had formerly been wealthy, but he had failed, and afterwards obtained a subordinate situation in the Custom House. Perhaps they expected to return to the south some day; and Ellen’s knowledge was quite sufficient for a slave’s condition. I was impatient to go to work and earn money, that I might change the uncertain position of my children. Mr. Sands had not kept his promise to emancipate them. I had also been deceived about Ellen. What security had I with regard to Benjamin? I felt that I had none.

I was no longer surprised that they had kept her in such ignorance. Mr. Hobbs had once been wealthy, but he had fallen on hard times and later got a lower-level job at the Custom House. Maybe they thought they would return to the South one day, and Ellen’s knowledge was enough for a slave’s life. I was eager to get to work and make money to change the uncertain situation of my kids. Mr. Sands hadn’t kept his promise to free them. I had also been misled about Ellen. What security did I have regarding Benjamin? I felt I had none.

I returned to my friend’s house in an uneasy state of mind. In order to protect my children, it was necessary that I should own myself. I called myself free, and sometimes felt so; but I knew I was insecure. I sat down that night and wrote a civil letter to Dr. Flint, asking him to state the lowest terms on which he would sell me; and as I belonged by law to his daughter, I wrote to her also, making a similar request.

I went back to my friend's house feeling uneasy. To protect my children, I needed to take control of my own life. I called myself free and occasionally felt that way, but I knew deep down I was vulnerable. That night, I sat down and wrote a polite letter to Dr. Flint, asking him for the lowest price he would sell me for; since I was legally tied to his daughter, I also wrote to her with a similar request.

Since my arrival at the north I had not been unmindful of my dear brother William. I had made diligent inquiries for him, and having heard of him in Boston, I went thither. When I arrived there, I found he had gone to New Bedford. I wrote to that place, and was informed he had gone on a whaling voyage, and would not return for some months. I went back to New York to get employment near Ellen. I received an answer from Dr. Flint, which gave me no encouragement. He advised me to return and submit myself to my rightful owners, and then any request I might make would be granted. I lent this letter to a friend, who lost it; otherwise I would present a copy to my readers.

Since I arrived in the North, I haven't stopped thinking about my brother William. I've been asking around for him, and after hearing he was in Boston, I went there. When I got there, I found out he had left for New Bedford. I wrote to that place and learned he had gone on a whaling trip and wouldn't be back for several months. I returned to New York to find a job close to Ellen. I received a reply from Dr. Flint, which was not encouraging. He advised me to go back and turn myself in to my rightful owners, assuring me that any request I made would be granted then. I lent this letter to a friend, who lost it; otherwise, I would have shared a copy with you.










XXXIII. A Home Found.

My greatest anxiety now was to obtain employment. My health was greatly improved, though my limbs continued to trouble me with swelling whenever I walked much. The greatest difficulty in my way was, that those who employed strangers required a recommendation; and in my peculiar position, I could, of course, obtain no certificates from the families I had so faithfully served.

My biggest worry right now is finding a job. My health has gotten much better, but my legs still swell when I walk too much. The main challenge I face is that employers who hire newcomers want recommendations, and given my unique situation, I can’t get any references from the families I had served so faithfully.

One day an acquaintance told me of a lady who wanted a nurse for her babe, and I immediately applied for the situation. The lady told me she preferred to have one who had been a mother, and accustomed to the care of infants. I told her I had nursed two babes of my own. She asked me many questions, but, to my great relief, did not require a recommendation from my former employers. She told me she was an English woman, and that was a pleasant circumstance to me, because I had heard they had less prejudice against color than Americans entertained. It was agreed that we should try each other for a week. The trial proved satisfactory to both parties, and I was engaged for a month.

One day, a friend told me about a woman who needed a nurse for her baby, so I immediately applied for the job. The woman said she preferred someone who had been a mother and was experienced in caring for infants. I informed her that I had nursed two of my own children. She asked me a lot of questions but, to my relief, didn’t ask for a reference from my previous employers. She mentioned that she was English, which I found reassuring because I had heard that they were less biased about race than Americans. We agreed to give each other a trial period of a week. The trial went well for both of us, and I was hired for a month.

The heavenly Father had been most merciful to me in leading me to this place. Mrs. Bruce was a kind and gentle lady, and proved a true and sympathizing friend. Before the stipulated month expired, the necessity of passing up and down stairs frequently, caused my limbs to swell so painfully, that I became unable to perform my duties. Many ladies would have thoughtlessly discharged me; but Mrs. Bruce made arrangements to save me steps, and employed a physician to attend upon me. I had not yet told her that I was a fugitive slave. She noticed that I was often sad, and kindly inquired the cause. I spoke of being separated from my children, and from relatives who were dear to me; but I did not mention the constant feeling of insecurity which oppressed my spirits. I longed for some one to confide in; but I had been so deceived by white people, that I had lost all confidence in them. If they spoke kind words to me, I thought it was for some selfish purpose. I had entered this family with the distrustful feelings I had brought with me out of slavery; but ere six months had passed, I found that the gentle deportment of Mrs. Bruce and the smiles of her lovely babe were thawing my chilled heart. My narrow mind also began to expand under the influences of her intelligent conversation, and the opportunities for reading, which were gladly allowed me whenever I had leisure from my duties. I gradually became more energetic and more cheerful.

The heavenly Father had been incredibly merciful to me by leading me to this place. Mrs. Bruce was a kind and gentle lady, and she proved to be a true and understanding friend. Before the agreed month was over, the need to constantly go up and down the stairs caused my limbs to swell painfully, making me unable to do my duties. Many ladies would have thoughtlessly let me go; but Mrs. Bruce arranged to save me some steps and hired a doctor to take care of me. I hadn’t yet told her that I was a runaway slave. She noticed that I was often sad and kindly asked what was wrong. I talked about being separated from my children and from relatives who were dear to me; but I didn’t mention the constant feeling of insecurity that weighed on my spirit. I longed to confide in someone; but I had been so hurt by white people that I had lost all trust in them. If they said kind words to me, I believed it was for some selfish reason. I had entered this family with the distrustful feelings I brought from slavery; but within six months, I found that Mrs. Bruce's gentle manner and the smiles of her lovely baby were warming my frozen heart. My narrow mind also began to open up under the influence of her smart conversations and the reading opportunities she gladly gave me whenever I had some free time from my duties. I gradually became more energetic and cheerful.

The old feeling of insecurity, especially with regard to my children, often threw its dark shadow across my sunshine. Mrs. Bruce offered me a home for Ellen; but pleasant as it would have been, I did not dare to accept it, for fear of offending the Hobbs family. Their knowledge of my precarious situation placed me in their power; and I felt that it was important for me to keep on the right side of them, till, by dint of labor and economy, I could make a home for my children. I was far from feeling satisfied with Ellen’s situation. She was not well cared for. She sometimes came to New York to visit me; but she generally brought a request from Mrs. Hobbs that I would buy her a pair of shoes, or some article of clothing. This was accompanied by a promise of payment when Mr. Hobbs’s salary at the Custom House became due; but some how or other the pay-day never came. Thus many dollars of my earnings were expended to keep my child comfortably clothed. That, however, was a slight trouble, compared with the fear that their pecuniary embarrassments might induce them to sell my precious young daughter. I knew they were in constant communication with Southerners, and had frequent opportunities to do it. I have stated that when Dr. Flint put Ellen in jail, at two years old, she had an inflammation of the eyes, occasioned by measles. This disease still troubled her; and kind Mrs. Bruce proposed that she should come to New York for a while, to be under the care of Dr. Elliott, a well known oculist. It did not occur to me that there was any thing improper in a mother’s making such a request; but Mrs. Hobbs was very angry, and refused to let her go. Situated as I was, it was not politic to insist upon it. I made no complaint, but I longed to be entirely free to act a mother’s part towards my children. The next time I went over to Brooklyn, Mrs. Hobbs, as if to apologize for her anger, told me she had employed her own physician to attend to Ellen’s eyes, and that she had refused my request because she did not consider it safe to trust her in New York. I accepted the explanation in silence; but she had told me that my child belonged to her daughter, and I suspected that her real motive was a fear of my conveying her property away from her. Perhaps I did her injustice; but my knowledge of Southerners made it difficult for me to feel otherwise.

The old feeling of insecurity, especially about my children, often cast a shadow over my happiness. Mrs. Bruce offered me a home for Ellen; it would have been nice, but I didn't feel I could accept it for fear of upsetting the Hobbs family. They knew about my unstable situation, which put me at their mercy, and I thought it was crucial to stay on their good side until I could create a stable home for my kids through hard work and saving. I was far from comfortable with Ellen's living conditions. She wasn't being taken care of well. Sometimes she came to New York to visit me, but usually she brought a request from Mrs. Hobbs asking me to buy her a pair of shoes or some clothing. This was accompanied by a promise of repayment when Mr. Hobbs got his paycheck from the Custom House, but some way or another, payday never came. As a result, I spent a lot of my earnings to keep my child properly dressed. However, that was a minor concern compared to the fear that their financial difficulties might lead them to sell my precious daughter. I knew they were in constant contact with Southerners and had plenty of chances to do so. I mentioned that when Dr. Flint put Ellen in jail at two years old, she had an eye infection caused by measles. That issue still affected her, and kind Mrs. Bruce suggested she come to New York for a while to be treated by Dr. Elliott, a well-known eye doctor. I didn't think it was inappropriate for a mother to make such a request, but Mrs. Hobbs was very upset and refused to let her go. Given my situation, I couldn't push the matter. I didn't complain, but I desperately wanted to be free to fulfill my role as a mother. The next time I visited Brooklyn, Mrs. Hobbs, seeming to soften her previous anger, told me she had hired her own doctor to take care of Ellen's eyes and that she had denied my request because she didn't think it was safe to send her to New York. I accepted her explanation without saying a word, but she had told me that my child belonged to her daughter, and I suspected her real motive was a fear of me taking her property away. Maybe I was wrong about her, but my experiences with Southerners made it hard for me to feel any differently.

Sweet and bitter were mixed in the cup of my life, and I was thankful that it had ceased to be entirely bitter. I loved Mrs. Bruce’s babe. When it laughed and crowed in my face, and twined its little tender arms confidingly about my neck, it made me think of the time when Benny and Ellen were babies, and my wounded heart was soothed. One bright morning, as I stood at the window, tossing baby in my arms, my attention was attracted by a young man in sailor’s dress, who was closely observing every house as he passed. I looked at him earnestly. Could it be my brother William? It must be he—and yet, how changed! I placed the baby safely, flew down stairs, opened the front door, beckoned to the sailor, and in less than a minute I was clasped in my brother’s arms. How much we had to tell each other! How we laughed, and how we cried, over each other’s adventures! I took him to Brooklyn, and again saw him with Ellen, the dear child whom he had loved and tended so carefully, while I was shut up in my miserable den. He staid in New York a week. His old feelings of affection for me and Ellen were as lively as ever. There are no bonds so strong as those which are formed by suffering together.

Sweet and bitter were mixed in the cup of my life, and I was grateful that it wasn’t all bitter anymore. I loved Mrs. Bruce’s baby. When it laughed and cooed at me, wrapping its tiny, soft arms around my neck, it reminded me of the time when Benny and Ellen were babies, and it healed my aching heart. One bright morning, as I stood by the window, holding the baby in my arms, I noticed a young man in a sailor's uniform, closely watching each house as he walked by. I stared at him intently. Could it be my brother William? It must be him—but he looked so different! I carefully placed the baby down, rushed downstairs, opened the front door, called to the sailor, and in less than a minute, I was in my brother’s arms. We had so much to share! We laughed and cried over each other’s adventures! I took him to Brooklyn, where I saw him with Ellen, the dear child he had loved and cared for while I was stuck in my miserable little space. He stayed in New York for a week. His old feelings for me and Ellen were as strong as ever. There are no ties as strong as those formed through shared suffering.










XXXIV. The Old Enemy Again.

My young mistress, Miss Emily Flint, did not return any answer to my letter requesting her to consent to my being sold. But after a while, I received a reply, which purported to be written by her younger brother. In order rightly to enjoy the contents of this letter, the reader must bear in mind that the Flint family supposed I had been at the north many years. They had no idea that I knew of the doctor’s three excursions to New York in search of me; that I had heard his voice, when he came to borrow five hundred dollars for that purpose; and that I had seen him pass on his way to the steamboat. Neither were they aware that all the particulars of aunt Nancy’s death and burial were conveyed to me at the time they occurred. I have kept the letter, of which I herewith subjoin a copy:—

My young mistress, Miss Emily Flint, didn't respond to my letter asking for her permission to be sold. But after a while, I got a reply, which seemed to be written by her younger brother. To really understand what’s in this letter, you should know that the Flint family believed I had been up north for many years. They had no idea I knew about the doctor’s three trips to New York looking for me; that I had heard him when he came to borrow five hundred dollars for that purpose; and that I had seen him head towards the steamboat. They also didn’t realize that I was informed about all the details of Aunt Nancy’s death and burial as they happened. I kept the letter, and here’s a copy of it:—

“Your letter to sister was received a few days ago. I gather from it that you are desirous of returning to your native place, among your friends and relatives. We were all gratified with the contents of your letter; and let me assure you that if any members of the family have had any feeling of resentment towards you, they feel it no longer. We all sympathize with you in your unfortunate condition, and are ready to do all in our power to make you contented and happy. It is difficult for you to return home as a free person. If you were purchased by your grandmother, it is doubtful whether you would be permitted to remain, although it would be lawful for you to do so. If a servant should be allowed to purchase herself, after absenting herself so long from her owners, and return free, it would have an injurious effect. From your letter, I think your situation must be hard and uncomfortable. Come home. You have it in your power to be reinstated in our affections. We would receive you with open arms and tears of joy. You need not apprehend any unkind treatment, as we have not put ourselves to any trouble or expense to get you. Had we done so, perhaps we should feel otherwise. You know my sister was always attached to you, and that you were never treated as a slave. You were never put to hard work, nor exposed to field labor. On the contrary, you were taken into the house, and treated as one of us, and almost as free; and we, at least, felt that you were above disgracing yourself by running away. Believing you may be induced to come home voluntarily has induced me to write for my sister. The family will be rejoiced to see you; and your poor old grandmother expressed a great desire to have you come, when she heard your letter read. In her old age she needs the consolation of having her children round her. Doubtless you have heard of the death of your aunt. She was a faithful servant, and a faithful member of the Episcopal church. In her Christian life she taught us how to live—and, O, too high the price of knowledge, she taught us how to die! Could you have seen us round her death bed, with her mother, all mingling our tears in one common stream, you would have thought the same heartfelt tie existed between a master and his servant, as between a mother and her child. But this subject is too painful to dwell upon. I must bring my letter to a close. If you are contented to stay away from your old grandmother, your child, and the friends who love you, stay where you are. We shall never trouble ourselves to apprehend you. But should you prefer to come home, we will do all that we can to make you happy. If you do not wish to remain in the family, I know that father, by our persuasion, will be induced to let you be purchased by any person you may choose in our community. You will please answer this as soon as possible, and let us know your decision. Sister sends much love to you. In the mean time believe me your sincere friend and well wisher.”

“Your letter to your sister arrived a few days ago. I understand from it that you want to return to your hometown, among your friends and family. We were all pleased with what you wrote; and let me assure you that if any family members held any resentment towards you, that’s no longer the case. We all empathize with your unfortunate situation and are ready to do everything we can to make you happy and comfortable. It’s challenging for you to come back home as a free person. If your grandmother purchased you, it’s uncertain whether you’d be allowed to stay, even though it would be lawful for you to do so. If a servant were allowed to buy her freedom after being away from her owners for so long and return free, it would set a bad precedent. From your letter, it seems your situation is tough and uncomfortable. Come home. You have the opportunity to be welcomed back into our hearts. We would embrace you with open arms and tears of joy. You shouldn’t fear any unkind treatment since we haven't gone through any trouble or expense to bring you back. If we had, perhaps we would feel differently. You know my sister always cared for you, and you were never treated as a slave. You weren’t made to do hard labor or exposed to difficult work. Instead, you were brought into the house and treated as one of us, almost like family; and, at the very least, we believed you were too dignified to disgrace yourself by running away. The thought that you might willingly return home prompted me to write on behalf of my sister. The family would be thrilled to see you; and your poor old grandmother expressed a strong wish to have you back when she heard your letter read. In her old age, she needs the comfort of having her loved ones around her. You’ve likely heard about your aunt’s passing. She was a loyal servant and a devoted member of the Episcopal Church. Through her Christian life, she showed us how to live—and, oh, too great a cost for knowledge, she taught us how to die! Had you seen us around her deathbed, with her mother, all shedding tears together, you'd have thought the bond between a master and a servant was just as deep as that between a mother and her child. But this topic is too painful to linger on. I must end my letter. If you’re okay staying away from your old grandmother, your child, and the friends who care about you, then stay where you are. We will never pursue you. But if you choose to come home, we will do everything we can to make you happy. If you don’t want to remain in the family, I know that our father, with our encouragement, will agree to let you be purchased by anyone you choose in our community. Please respond as soon as possible to let us know your decision. Your sister sends you lots of love. Meanwhile, believe me to be your sincere friend and well-wisher.”

This letter was signed by Emily’s brother, who was as yet a mere lad. I knew, by the style, that it was not written by a person of his age, and though the writing was disguised, I had been made too unhappy by it, in former years, not to recognize at once the hand of Dr. Flint. O, the hypocrisy of slaveholders! Did the old fox suppose I was goose enough to go into such a trap? Verily, he relied too much on “the stupidity of the African race.” I did not return the family of Flints any thanks for their cordial invitation—a remissness for which I was, no doubt, charged with base ingratitude.

This letter was signed by Emily’s brother, who was still just a kid. I could tell by the writing style that it wasn’t something a person his age would write, and even though the handwriting was disguised, I had been made too unhappy by it in the past not to recognize Dr. Flint’s hand immediately. Oh, the hypocrisy of slaveholders! Did that old fox really think I was naive enough to fall for such a trap? Honestly, he relied way too much on “the stupidity of the African race.” I didn’t thank the Flint family for their warm invitation—a lack of gratitude for which I was probably accused of being ungrateful.

Not long afterwards I received a letter from one of my friends at the south, informing me that Dr. Flint was about to visit the north. The letter had been delayed, and I supposed he might be already on the way. Mrs. Bruce did not know I was a fugitive. I told her that important business called me to Boston, where my brother then was, and asked permission to bring a friend to supply my place as nurse, for a fortnight. I started on my journey immediately; and as soon as I arrived, I wrote to my grandmother that if Benny came, he must be sent to Boston. I knew she was only waiting for a good chance to send him north, and, fortunately, she had the legal power to do so, without asking leave of any body. She was a free woman; and when my children were purchased, Mr. Sands preferred to have the bill of sale drawn up in her name. It was conjectured that he advanced the money, but it was not known. At the south, a gentleman may have a shoal of colored children without any disgrace; but if he is known to purchase them, with the view of setting them free, the example is thought to be dangerous to their “peculiar institution,” and he becomes unpopular.

Not long after that, I got a letter from a friend in the south, telling me that Dr. Flint was planning to visit the north. The letter had been delayed, and I figured he might already be on his way. Mrs. Bruce didn’t know I was a fugitive. I explained that I had important business in Boston, where my brother was at the time, and asked if I could bring a friend to fill in for me as a nurse for a couple of weeks. I set off on my journey right away; and as soon as I arrived, I wrote to my grandmother that if Benny came, he needed to be sent to Boston. I knew she was just waiting for a good opportunity to send him north, and luckily, she had the legal authority to do so without needing permission from anyone. She was a free woman, and when my children were bought, Mr. Sands preferred to have the bill of sale written in her name. People speculated that he provided the money, but it wasn’t confirmed. In the south, a gentleman can have many children of color without any shame, but if it’s known that he purchases them to set them free, that example is seen as a threat to their “peculiar institution,” and he becomes unpopular.

There was a good opportunity to send Benny in a vessel coming directly to New York. He was put on board with a letter to a friend, who was requested to see him off to Boston. Early one morning, there was a loud rap at my door, and in rushed Benjamin, all out of breath. “O mother!” he exclaimed, “here I am! I run all the way; and I come all alone. How d’you do?”

There was a great chance to send Benny on a ship heading straight to New York. He was put on board with a letter to a friend, who was asked to help him get to Boston. Early one morning, there was a loud knock at my door, and in burst Benjamin, panting. “Oh mom!” he shouted, “here I am! I ran the whole way; and I came all by myself. How are you?”

O reader, can you imagine my joy? No, you cannot, unless you have been a slave mother. Benjamin rattled away as fast as his tongue could go. “Mother, why don’t you bring Ellen here? I went over to Brooklyn to see her, and she felt very bad when I bid her good by. She said, ‘O Ben, I wish I was going too.’ I thought she’d know ever so much; but she don’t know so much as I do; for I can read, and she can’t. And, mother, I lost all my clothes coming. What can I do to get some more? I ’spose free boys can get along here at the north as well as white boys.”

O reader, can you imagine my joy? No, you can’t, unless you’ve been a slave mother. Benjamin talked as fast as he could. “Mom, why don’t you bring Ellen here? I went over to Brooklyn to see her, and she felt really bad when I said goodbye. She said, ‘Oh Ben, I wish I was going too.’ I thought she’d know a lot, but she doesn’t know nearly as much as I do; I can read, and she can’t. And, Mom, I lost all my clothes on the way here. What can I do to get some more? I guess free boys can manage here in the North just as well as white boys.”

I did not like to tell the sanguine, happy little fellow how much he was mistaken. I took him to a tailor, and procured a change of clothes. The rest of the day was spent in mutual asking and answering of questions, with the wish constantly repeated that the good old grandmother was with us, and frequent injunctions from Benny to write to her immediately, and be sure to tell her every thing about his voyage, and his journey to Boston.

I didn't want to tell the cheerful little guy how wrong he was. I took him to a tailor and got him some new clothes. The rest of the day was spent asking each other questions, wishing that his good old grandmother was with us, and Benny kept insisting that I write to her right away and make sure to tell her everything about his trip and his journey to Boston.

Dr. Flint made his visit to New York, and made every exertion to call upon me, and invite me to return with him; but not being able to ascertain where I was, his hospitable intentions were frustrated, and the affectionate family, who were waiting for me with “open arms,” were doomed to disappointment.

Dr. Flint came to New York and did everything he could to see me and ask me to come back with him. However, since he couldn’t find out where I was, his friendly plans didn’t work out, and the loving family who was eager to welcome me with “open arms” ended up disappointed.

As soon as I knew he was safely at home, I placed Benjamin in the care of my brother William, and returned to Mrs. Bruce. There I remained through the winter and spring, endeavoring to perform my duties faithfully, and finding a good degree of happiness in the attractions of baby Mary, the considerate kindness of her excellent mother, and occasional interviews with my darling daughter.

As soon as I knew he was safely at home, I left Benjamin in the care of my brother William and went back to Mrs. Bruce. I stayed there through the winter and spring, trying to do my duties well and finding a good amount of happiness in baby Mary’s charm, the thoughtful kindness of her wonderful mother, and occasional visits with my beloved daughter.

But when summer came, the old feeling of insecurity haunted me. It was necessary for me to take little Mary out daily, for exercise and fresh air, and the city was swarming with Southerners, some of whom might recognize me. Hot weather brings out snakes and slaveholders, and I like one class of the venomous creatures as little as I do the other. What a comfort it is, to be free to say so!

But when summer arrived, the old feeling of insecurity troubled me. I had to take little Mary outside every day for exercise and fresh air, and the city was crowded with Southerners, some of whom might recognize me. Hot weather brings out both snakes and slaveholders, and I dislike one group of those venomous creatures just as much as the other. What a relief it is to be able to say that!










XXXV. Prejudice Against Color.

It was a relief to my mind to see preparations for leaving the city. We went to Albany in the steamboat Knickerbocker. When the gong sounded for tea, Mrs. Bruce said, “Linda, it is late, and you and baby had better come to the table with me.” I replied, “I know it is time baby had her supper, but I had rather not go with you, if you please. I am afraid of being insulted.” “O no, not if you are with me,” she said. I saw several white nurses go with their ladies, and I ventured to do the same. We were at the extreme end of the table. I was no sooner seated, than a gruff voice said, “Get up! You know you are not allowed to sit here.” I looked up, and, to my astonishment and indignation, saw that the speaker was a colored man. If his office required him to enforce the by-laws of the boat, he might, at least, have done it politely. I replied, “I shall not get up, unless the captain comes and takes me up.” No cup of tea was offered me, but Mrs. Bruce handed me hers and called for another. I looked to see whether the other nurses were treated in a similar manner. They were all properly waited on.

It was a relief to my mind to see preparations for leaving the city. We took the steamboat Knickerbocker to Albany. When the gong sounded for tea, Mrs. Bruce said, “Linda, it’s late, and you and the baby should come to the table with me.” I replied, “I know it’s time for the baby to have her supper, but I’d rather not go with you, if that’s okay. I’m afraid of being insulted.” “Oh no, not if you’re with me,” she said. I saw several white nurses going with their ladies, so I decided to do the same. We were at the very end of the table. No sooner had I sat down than a gruff voice said, “Get up! You know you’re not allowed to sit here.” I looked up and, to my shock and anger, saw that the speaker was a Black man. If his job required him to enforce the boat's rules, he could at least be polite about it. I replied, “I won’t get up unless the captain comes and asks me to.” No cup of tea was offered to me, but Mrs. Bruce gave me hers and called for another. I looked to see if the other nurses were treated the same way. They were all served properly.

Next morning, when we stopped at Troy for breakfast, every body was making a rush for the table. Mrs. Bruce said, “Take my arm, Linda, and we’ll go in together.” The landlord heard her, and said, “Madam, will you allow your nurse and baby to take breakfast with my family?” I knew this was to be attributed to my complexion; but he spoke courteously, and therefore I did not mind it.

Next morning, when we stopped at Troy for breakfast, everyone was rushing for the table. Mrs. Bruce said, “Take my arm, Linda, and we’ll go in together.” The landlord overheard her and said, “Excuse me, ma’am, would you allow your nurse and baby to have breakfast with my family?” I knew this was because of my complexion, but he spoke politely, so I didn't mind it.

At Saratoga we found the United States Hotel crowded, and Mr. Bruce took one of the cottages belonging to the hotel. I had thought, with gladness, of going to the quiet of the country, where I should meet few people, but here I found myself in the midst of a swarm of Southerners. I looked round me with fear and trembling, dreading to see some one who would recognize me. I was rejoiced to find that we were to stay but a short time.

At Saratoga, we found the United States Hotel packed, so Mr. Bruce rented one of the hotel’s cottages. I had been looking forward to the peace of the countryside, where I would encounter few people, but instead, I found myself surrounded by a crowd of Southerners. I scanned the area anxiously, fearing I might run into someone who would recognize me. I was relieved to learn that we would only be staying a short time.

We soon returned to New York, to make arrangements for spending the remainder of the summer at Rockaway. While the laundress was putting the clothes in order, I took an opportunity to go over to Brooklyn to see Ellen. I met her going to a grocery store, and the first words she said, were, “O, mother, don’t go to Mrs. Hobbs’s. Her brother, Mr. Thorne, has come from the south, and may be he’ll tell where you are.” I accepted the warning. I told her I was going away with Mrs. Bruce the next day, and would try to see her when I came back.

We soon went back to New York to make plans for spending the rest of the summer at Rockaway. While the laundress was getting the clothes sorted, I took the chance to head over to Brooklyn to see Ellen. I ran into her on her way to the grocery store, and the first thing she said was, “Oh, Mom, don’t go to Mrs. Hobbs’s. Her brother, Mr. Thorne, has come up from the south, and he might spill where you are.” I took her warning seriously. I told her I was leaving with Mrs. Bruce the next day and would try to visit her when I got back.

Being in servitude to the Anglo-Saxon race, I was not put into a “Jim Crow car,” on our way to Rockaway, neither was I invited to ride through the streets on the top of trunks in a truck; but every where I found the same manifestations of that cruel prejudice, which so discourages the feelings, and represses the energies of the colored people. We reached Rockaway before dark, and put up at the Pavilion—a large hotel, beautifully situated by the sea-side—a great resort of the fashionable world. Thirty or forty nurses were there, of a great variety of nations. Some of the ladies had colored waiting-maids and coachmen, but I was the only nurse tinged with the blood of Africa. When the tea bell rang, I took little Mary and followed the other nurses. Supper was served in a long hall. A young man, who had the ordering of things, took the circuit of the table two or three times, and finally pointed me to a seat at the lower end of it. As there was but one chair, I sat down and took the child in my lap. Whereupon the young man came to me and said, in the blandest manner possible, “Will you please to seat the little girl in the chair, and stand behind it and feed her? After they have done, you will be shown to the kitchen, where you will have a good supper.”

Being in service to the Anglo-Saxon race, I wasn't put in a “Jim Crow car” on our way to Rockaway, nor was I invited to ride on top of trunks in a truck; but wherever I went, I encountered the same cruel prejudice that discourages the feelings and stifles the energies of black people. We reached Rockaway before dark and stayed at the Pavilion—a large hotel, beautifully located by the seaside—a popular destination for the fashionable crowd. There were thirty or forty nurses from various countries. Some of the ladies had black waiting maids and drivers, but I was the only nurse with African heritage. When the tea bell rang, I took little Mary and followed the other nurses. Supper was served in a long hall. A young man in charge made the rounds of the table a couple of times and finally directed me to a seat at the far end. Since there was only one chair, I sat down and held the child in my lap. The young man then approached me and said in the politest way, “Could you please put the little girl in the chair, stand behind it, and feed her? Once they are finished, you'll be taken to the kitchen, where you can have a good supper.”

This was the climax! I found it hard to preserve my self-control, when I looked round, and saw women who were nurses, as I was, and only one shade lighter in complexion, eyeing me with a defiant look, as if my presence were a contamination. However, I said nothing. I quietly took the child in my arms, went to our room, and refused to go to the table again. Mr. Bruce ordered meals to be sent to the room for little Mary and I. This answered for a few days; but the waiters of the establishment were white, and they soon began to complain, saying they were not hired to wait on negroes. The landlord requested Mr. Bruce to send me down to my meals, because his servants rebelled against bringing them up, and the colored servants of other boarders were dissatisfied because all were not treated alike.

This was the peak moment! I struggled to keep my composure when I looked around and saw other nurses like me, just slightly lighter in skin tone, staring at me defiantly, as if my presence was somehow toxic. Still, I said nothing. I gently picked up the child, went to our room, and refused to return to the dining area. Mr. Bruce arranged for meals to be brought to our room for little Mary and me. This worked for a few days, but the waitstaff at the place were white, and they quickly started to complain, saying they weren't hired to serve black people. The landlord asked Mr. Bruce to have me come downstairs for my meals, because his staff was rebelling against bringing them up, and the colored staff of other guests were unhappy because not everyone was treated the same.

My answer was that the colored servants ought to be dissatisfied with themselves, for not having too much self-respect to submit to such treatment; that there was no difference in the price of board for colored and white servants, and there was no justification for difference of treatment. I staid a month after this, and finding I was resolved to stand up for my rights, they concluded to treat me well. Let every colored man and woman do this, and eventually we shall cease to be trampled under foot by our oppressors.

My response was that the colored workers should feel dissatisfied with themselves for not having enough self-respect to accept such treatment; that there was no difference in the cost of meals for colored and white workers, and there was no reason for different treatment. I stayed a month after this, and realizing I was determined to stand up for my rights, they decided to treat me well. If every colored man and woman does this, we will eventually stop being trampled by our oppressors.










XXXVI. The Hairbreadth Escape.

After we returned to New York, I took the earliest opportunity to go and see Ellen. I asked to have her called down stairs; for I supposed Mrs. Hobbs’s southern brother might still be there, and I was desirous to avoid seeing him, if possible. But Mrs. Hobbs came to the kitchen, and insisted on my going up stairs. “My brother wants to see you,” said she, “and he is sorry you seem to shun him. He knows you are living in New York. He told me to say to you that he owes thanks to good old aunt Martha for too many little acts of kindness for him to be base enough to betray her grandchild.”

After we got back to New York, I took the first chance I had to go see Ellen. I asked for her to be called downstairs because I thought Mrs. Hobbs’s southern brother might still be around, and I wanted to avoid seeing him if I could. But Mrs. Hobbs came to the kitchen and insisted that I go upstairs. “My brother wants to see you,” she said, “and he's sorry you seem to be avoiding him. He knows you're living in New York. He asked me to tell you that he owes good old Aunt Martha too many small acts of kindness to be ungrateful enough to betray her grandchild.”

This Mr. Thorne had become poor and reckless long before he left the south, and such persons had much rather go to one of the faithful old slaves to borrow a dollar, or get a good dinner, than to go to one whom they consider an equal. It was such acts of kindness as these for which he professed to feel grateful to my grandmother. I wished he had kept at a distance, but as he was here, and knew where I was, I concluded there was nothing to be gained by trying to avoid him; on the contrary, it might be the means of exciting his ill will. I followed his sister up stairs. He met me in a very friendly manner, congratulated me on my escape from slavery, and hoped I had a good place, where I felt happy.

This Mr. Thorne had fallen into poverty and recklessness long before he left the South, and people like him preferred to ask an old, loyal servant for a dollar or a good meal rather than someone they saw as their equal. He claimed to be grateful to my grandmother for these acts of kindness. I wished he had kept his distance, but since he was here and knew where I was, I figured it wouldn’t help to try to avoid him; in fact, it might make him resentful. I went upstairs after his sister. He greeted me warmly, congratulated me on escaping slavery, and expressed hope that I was in a good place and feeling happy.

I continued to visit Ellen as often as I could. She, good thoughtful child, never forgot my hazardous situation, but always kept a vigilant lookout for my safety. She never made any complaint about her own inconveniences and troubles; but a mother’s observing eye easily perceived that she was not happy. On the occasion of one of my visits I found her unusually serious. When I asked her what was the matter, she said nothing was the matter. But I insisted upon knowing what made her look so very grave. Finally, I ascertained that she felt troubled about the dissipation that was continually going on in the house. She was sent to the store very often for rum and brandy, and she felt ashamed to ask for it so often; and Mr. Hobbs and Mr. Thorne drank a great deal, and their hands trembled so that they had to call her to pour out the liquor for them. “But for all that,” said she, “Mr. Hobbs is good to me, and I can’t help liking him. I feel sorry for him.” I tried to comfort her, by telling her that I had laid up a hundred dollars, and that before long I hoped to be able to give her and Benjamin a home, and send them to school. She was always desirous not to add to my troubles more than she could help, and I did not discover till years afterwards that Mr. Thorne’s intemperance was not the only annoyance she suffered from him. Though he professed too much gratitude to my grandmother to injure any of her descendants, he had poured vile language into the ears of her innocent great-grandchild.

I kept visiting Ellen whenever I could. She, being a caring child, never forgot about my difficult situation and always looked out for my safety. She never complained about her own troubles and inconveniences; however, a mother’s keen eye could easily tell she wasn’t happy. During one of my visits, I noticed she seemed unusually serious. When I asked her what was wrong, she insisted nothing was the matter. But I pressed her to tell me why she looked so grave. Eventually, I found out she was worried about the partying that was constantly happening in the house. She was sent to the store often for rum and brandy, and she felt embarrassed to ask for it so frequently; Mr. Hobbs and Mr. Thorne drank a lot, and their hands were so unsteady that they had to call her to pour their drinks. “But despite all that,” she said, “Mr. Hobbs is nice to me, and I can’t help but like him. I feel sorry for him.” I tried to comfort her by saying I had saved up a hundred dollars and hoped to be able to give her and Benjamin a home soon and send them to school. She always wanted to minimize my troubles, and I didn’t realize until years later that Mr. Thorne’s drinking was not the only issue she faced with him. Although he claimed too much gratitude to my grandmother to harm any of her descendants, he had filled the ears of her innocent great-grandchild with foul language.

I usually went to Brooklyn to spend Sunday afternoon. One Sunday, I found Ellen anxiously waiting for me near the house. “O, mother,” said she, “I’ve been waiting for you this long time. I’m afraid Mr. Thorne has written to tell Dr. Flint where you are. Make haste and come in. Mrs. Hobbs will tell you all about it!”

I often went to Brooklyn to spend Sunday afternoons. One Sunday, I found Ellen anxiously waiting for me by the house. “Oh, mom,” she said, “I’ve been waiting for you for so long. I’m worried Mr. Thorne has written to let Dr. Flint know where you are. Hurry and come inside. Mrs. Hobbs will explain everything!”

The story was soon told. While the children were playing in the grape-vine arbor, the day before, Mr. Thorne came out with a letter in his hand, which he tore up and scattered about. Ellen was sweeping the yard at the time, and having her mind full of suspicions of him, she picked up the pieces and carried them to the children, saying, “I wonder who Mr. Thorne has been writing to.”

The story was quickly shared. While the kids were playing in the grapevine arbor the day before, Mr. Thorne came out holding a letter, which he ripped up and scattered everywhere. Ellen was sweeping the yard at that moment, and with her mind full of suspicions about him, she picked up the pieces and brought them to the kids, saying, “I wonder who Mr. Thorne has been writing to.”

“I’m sure I don’t know, and don’t care,” replied the oldest of the children; “and I don’t see how it concerns you.”

“I really have no idea, and I don't care,” said the oldest of the kids; “and I don't see how this is any of your business.”

“But it does concern me,” replied Ellen; “for I’m afraid he’s been writing to the south about my mother.”

"But it worries me," Ellen replied; "because I'm afraid he's been writing to the south about my mom."

They laughed at her, and called her a silly thing, but good-naturedly put the fragments of writing together, in order to read them to her. They were no sooner arranged, than the little girl exclaimed, “I declare, Ellen, I believe you are right.”

They laughed at her and called her silly, but in a friendly way, they put the pieces of writing together to read them to her. As soon as they were arranged, the little girl exclaimed, “I swear, Ellen, I think you’re right.”

The contents of Mr. Thorne’s letter, as nearly as I can remember, were as follows: “I have seen your slave, Linda, and conversed with her. She can be taken very easily, if you manage prudently. There are enough of us here to swear to her identity as your property. I am a patriot, a lover of my country, and I do this as an act of justice to the laws.” He concluded by informing the doctor of the street and number where I lived. The children carried the pieces to Mrs. Hobbs, who immediately went to her brother’s room for an explanation. He was not to be found. The servants said they saw him go out with a letter in his hand, and they supposed he had gone to the post office. The natural inference was, that he had sent to Dr. Flint a copy of those fragments. When he returned, his sister accused him of it, and he did not deny the charge. He went immediately to his room, and the next morning he was missing. He had gone over to New York, before any of the family were astir.

The contents of Mr. Thorne’s letter, as far as I can remember, were about this: “I’ve seen your slave, Linda, and talked to her. She can be taken easily if you play your cards right. There are enough of us here to testify that she’s your property. I’m a patriot, a lover of my country, and I’m doing this as an act of justice to the laws.” He ended by telling the doctor the street and number where I lived. The kids took the pieces to Mrs. Hobbs, who immediately went to her brother’s room for an explanation. He wasn’t there. The servants said they saw him leave with a letter in his hand, and they thought he had gone to the post office. The natural assumption was that he had sent Dr. Flint a copy of those pieces. When he came back, his sister confronted him about it, and he didn’t deny it. He went straight to his room, and the next morning he was gone. He had gone over to New York before anyone in the family was awake.

It was evident that I had no time to lose; and I hastened back to the city with a heavy heart. Again I was to be torn from a comfortable home, and all my plans for the welfare of my children were to be frustrated by that demon Slavery! I now regretted that I never told Mrs. Bruce my story. I had not concealed it merely on account of being a fugitive; that would have made her anxious, but it would have excited sympathy in her kind heart. I valued her good opinion, and I was afraid of losing it, if I told her all the particulars of my sad story. But now I felt that it was necessary for her to know how I was situated. I had once left her abruptly, without explaining the reason, and it would not be proper to do it again. I went home resolved to tell her in the morning. But the sadness of my face attracted her attention, and, in answer to her kind inquiries, I poured out my full heart to her, before bed time. She listened with true womanly sympathy, and told me she would do all she could to protect me. How my heart blessed her!

I could see that I had no time to waste, so I hurried back to the city with a heavy heart. Once again, I was being torn away from a comfortable home, and all my plans for my children's well-being were being thwarted by that monster, Slavery! I regretted that I had never shared my story with Mrs. Bruce. I hadn't kept it from her just because I was a fugitive; that would have made her worry, but it also would have brought out her sympathy. I valued her opinion, and I was afraid I would lose it if I revealed the details of my painful story. But now I felt it was important for her to understand my situation. I had previously left her abruptly without explaining why, and it wouldn’t be right to do that again. I returned home determined to tell her in the morning. However, the sadness on my face caught her attention, and in response to her caring questions, I opened my heart to her before bedtime. She listened with genuine womanly sympathy and assured me that she would do everything she could to protect me. Oh, how my heart praised her!

Early the next morning, Judge Vanderpool and Lawyer Hopper were consulted. They said I had better leave the city at once, as the risk would be great if the case came to trial. Mrs. Bruce took me in a carriage to the house of one of her friends, where she assured me I should be safe until my brother could arrive, which would be in a few days. In the interval my thoughts were much occupied with Ellen. She was mine by birth, and she was also mine by Southern law, since my grandmother held the bill of sale that made her so. I did not feel that she was safe unless I had her with me. Mrs. Hobbs, who felt badly about her brother’s treachery, yielded to my entreaties, on condition that she should return in ten days. I avoided making any promise. She came to me clad in very thin garments, all outgrown, and with a school satchel on her arm, containing a few articles. It was late in October, and I knew the child must suffer; and not daring to go out in the streets to purchase any thing, I took off my own flannel skirt and converted it into one for her. Kind Mrs. Bruce came to bid me good by, and when she saw that I had taken off my clothing for my child, the tears came to her eyes. She said, “Wait for me, Linda,” and went out. She soon returned with a nice warm shawl and hood for Ellen. Truly, of such souls as hers are the kingdom of heaven.

Early the next morning, Judge Vanderpool and Lawyer Hopper were consulted. They advised me to leave the city immediately, as there would be a significant risk if the case went to trial. Mrs. Bruce took me in a carriage to the house of one of her friends, assuring me that I would be safe there until my brother could arrive in a few days. During this time, my thoughts were consumed with Ellen. She was mine by birth, and according to Southern law, she was also mine since my grandmother had the bill of sale that made her so. I didn’t feel she would be safe unless I had her with me. Mrs. Hobbs, who was upset about her brother’s betrayal, agreed to my pleas on the condition that she would return in ten days. I avoided making any promises. She came to me dressed in very thin clothes that were all too small, carrying a school satchel on her arm with a few items inside. It was late October, and I knew the child would be cold; not daring to go out into the streets to buy anything, I took off my own flannel skirt and turned it into one for her. Kind Mrs. Bruce came to say goodbye, and when she saw that I had given up my clothing for my child, tears filled her eyes. She said, “Wait for me, Linda,” and went out. She soon returned with a nice warm shawl and hood for Ellen. Truly, people like her are destined for the kingdom of heaven.

My brother reached New York on Wednesday. Lawyer Hopper advised us to go to Boston by the Stonington route, as there was less Southern travel in that direction. Mrs. Bruce directed her servants to tell all inquirers that I formerly lived there, but had gone from the city.

My brother arrived in New York on Wednesday. Lawyer Hopper suggested we take the Stonington route to Boston since there was less Southern travel that way. Mrs. Bruce told her staff to inform anyone who asked that I used to live there but had left the city.

We reached the steamboat Rhode Island in safety. That boat employed colored hands, but I knew that colored passengers were not admitted to the cabin. I was very desirous for the seclusion of the cabin, not only on account of exposure to the night air, but also to avoid observation. Lawyer Hopper was waiting on board for us. He spoke to the stewardess, and asked, as a particular favor, that she would treat us well. He said to me, “Go and speak to the captain yourself by and by. Take your little girl with you, and I am sure that he will not let her sleep on deck.” With these kind words and a shake of the hand he departed.

We arrived safely on the steamboat Rhode Island. That boat employed Black workers, but I knew that Black passengers were not allowed in the cabin. I really wanted the privacy of the cabin, not only because of the cold night air but also to avoid being watched. Lawyer Hopper was waiting for us on board. He talked to the stewardess and asked her, as a special favor, to take good care of us. He said to me, “Go and talk to the captain yourself later. Take your little girl with you, and I’m sure he won’t let her sleep on the deck.” With those kind words and a handshake, he left.

The boat was soon on her way, bearing me rapidly from the friendly home where I had hoped to find security and rest. My brother had left me to purchase the tickets, thinking that I might have better success than he would. When the stewardess came to me, I paid what she asked, and she gave me three tickets with clipped corners. In the most unsophisticated manner I said, “You have made a mistake; I asked you for cabin tickets. I cannot possibly consent to sleep on deck with my little daughter.” She assured me there was no mistake. She said on some of the routes colored people were allowed to sleep in the cabin, but not on this route, which was much travelled by the wealthy. I asked her to show me to the captain’s office, and she said she would after tea. When the time came, I took Ellen by the hand and went to the captain, politely requesting him to change our tickets, as we should be very uncomfortable on deck. He said it was contrary to their custom, but he would see that we had berths below; he would also try to obtain comfortable seats for us in the cars; of that he was not certain, but he would speak to the conductor about it, when the boat arrived. I thanked him, and returned to the ladies’ cabin. He came afterwards and told me that the conductor of the cars was on board, that he had spoken to him, and he had promised to take care of us. I was very much surprised at receiving so much kindness. I don’t know whether the pleasing face of my little girl had won his heart, or whether the stewardess inferred from Lawyer Hopper’s manner that I was a fugitive, and had pleaded with him in my behalf.

The boat was soon on its way, quickly taking me away from the welcoming home where I had hoped to find safety and peace. My brother had left me to buy the tickets, thinking I might have better luck than he would. When the stewardess approached me, I paid the amount she requested, and she handed me three tickets with clipped corners. In the simplest way, I said, “You’ve made a mistake; I asked for cabin tickets. There’s no way I can agree to sleep on deck with my little daughter.” She assured me there was no error. She said that on some routes, people of color were allowed to sleep in the cabin, but not on this particular route, which was frequently used by the wealthy. I asked her to take me to the captain’s office, and she said she would after tea. When the time came, I took Ellen by the hand and went to the captain, politely asking him to change our tickets, as we would be very uncomfortable on deck. He said it was against their customs, but he would make sure we had berths below; he would also attempt to secure comfortable seats for us in the cars; he wasn’t sure about that, but he would talk to the conductor when the boat arrived. I thanked him and returned to the ladies’ cabin. He came back later and told me that the conductor was on board, that he had spoken to him, and he had promised to take care of us. I was very surprised at receiving so much kindness. I don’t know if my little girl's cute face had won his heart or if the stewardess could tell from Lawyer Hopper’s demeanor that I was a fugitive and had advocated for me.

When the boat arrived at Stonington, the conductor kept his promise, and showed us to seats in the first car, nearest the engine. He asked us to take seats next the door, but as he passed through, we ventured to move on toward the other end of the car. No incivility was offered us, and we reached Boston in safety.

When the boat got to Stonington, the conductor kept his word and showed us to seats in the first car, closest to the engine. He suggested we sit by the door, but as he went through, we decided to move toward the other end of the car. No rudeness was directed at us, and we arrived safely in Boston.

The day after my arrival was one of the happiest of my life. I felt as if I was beyond the reach of the bloodhounds; and, for the first time during many years, I had both my children together with me. They greatly enjoyed their reunion, and laughed and chatted merrily. I watched them with a swelling heart. Their every motion delighted me.

The day after I got there was one of the happiest days of my life. I felt like I was free from the bloodhounds, and for the first time in many years, I had both my kids with me. They really loved being reunited and laughed and chatted happily. I watched them with a full heart. Every little thing they did made me happy.

I could not feel safe in New York, and I accepted the offer of a friend, that we should share expenses and keep house together. I represented to Mrs. Hobbs that Ellen must have some schooling, and must remain with me for that purpose. She felt ashamed of being unable to read or spell at her age, so instead of sending her to school with Benny, I instructed her myself till she was fitted to enter an intermediate school. The winter passed pleasantly, while I was busy with my needle, and my children with their books.

I didn’t feel safe in New York, so I took a friend’s offer to share expenses and live together. I told Mrs. Hobbs that Ellen needed some education and should stay with me for that. She was embarrassed about not being able to read or spell at her age, so instead of sending her to school with Benny, I taught her myself until she was ready to join an intermediate school. The winter went by nicely while I kept busy with my sewing, and my kids focused on their books.










XXXVII. A Visit To England

In the spring, sad news came to me. Mrs. Bruce was dead. Never again, in this world, should I see her gentle face, or hear her sympathizing voice. I had lost an excellent friend, and little Mary had lost a tender mother. Mr. Bruce wished the child to visit some of her mother’s relatives in England, and he was desirous that I should take charge of her. The little motherless one was accustomed to me, and attached to me, and I thought she would be happier in my care than in that of a stranger. I could also earn more in this way than I could by my needle. So I put Benny to a trade, and left Ellen to remain in the house with my friend and go to school.

In the spring, I received some sad news. Mrs. Bruce had passed away. I would never see her kind face or hear her comforting voice again in this world. I had lost a great friend, and little Mary had lost a loving mother. Mr. Bruce wanted the child to visit some of her mother’s relatives in England, and he hoped that I would take care of her. The little girl, who had no mother, was used to me and cared for me, and I thought she would be happier in my care than with someone she didn’t know. I could also earn more this way than by sewing. So, I put Benny into an apprenticeship and left Ellen at home with my friend to attend school.

We sailed from New York, and arrived in Liverpool after a pleasant voyage of twelve days. We proceeded directly to London, and took lodgings at the Adelaide Hotel. The supper seemed to me less luxurious than those I had seen in American hotels; but my situation was indescribably more pleasant. For the first time in my life I was in a place where I was treated according to my deportment, without reference to my complexion. I felt as if a great millstone had been lifted from my breast. Ensconced in a pleasant room, with my dear little charge, I laid my head on my pillow, for the first time, with the delightful consciousness of pure, unadulterated freedom.

We left New York and arrived in Liverpool after a nice twelve-day voyage. We went straight to London and checked into the Adelaide Hotel. The dinner seemed less fancy compared to what I had experienced in American hotels, but my situation was indescribably better. For the first time in my life, I was in a place where I was treated based on my behavior, without considering my skin color. I felt like a huge weight had been lifted off my shoulders. Settled in a cozy room with my dear little charge, I rested my head on the pillow for the first time, feeling the wonderful awareness of pure, unfiltered freedom.

As I had constant care of the child, I had little opportunity to see the wonders of that great city; but I watched the tide of life that flowed through the streets, and found it a strange contrast to the stagnation in our Southern towns. Mr. Bruce took his little daughter to spend some days with friends in Oxford Crescent, and of course it was necessary for me to accompany her. I had heard much of the systematic method of English education, and I was very desirous that my dear Mary should steer straight in the midst of so much propriety. I closely observed her little playmates and their nurses, being ready to take any lessons in the science of good management. The children were more rosy than American children, but I did not see that they differed materially in other respects. They were like all children—sometimes docile and sometimes wayward.

Since I was always taking care of the child, I had little chance to experience the wonders of that great city; however, I did observe the flow of life in the streets and found it to be a strange contrast to the stillness in our Southern towns. Mr. Bruce took his little daughter to spend some days with friends in Oxford Crescent, and of course, I had to go with her. I had heard a lot about the structured approach to education in England, and I really wanted my dear Mary to navigate things properly in such an orderly environment. I closely watched her little friends and their nannies, ready to pick up any tips on good management. The children seemed more rosy-cheeked than American kids, but I didn’t notice any significant differences otherwise. They were just like all children—sometimes well-behaved and sometimes a bit stubborn.

We next went to Steventon, in Berkshire. It was a small town, said to be the poorest in the county. I saw men working in the fields for six shillings, and seven shillings, a week, and women for sixpence, and sevenpence, a day, out of which they boarded themselves. Of course they lived in the most primitive manner; it could not be otherwise, where a woman’s wages for an entire day were not sufficient to buy a pound of meat. They paid very low rents, and their clothes were made of the cheapest fabrics, though much better than could have been procured in the United States for the same money. I had heard much about the oppression of the poor in Europe. The people I saw around me were, many of them, among the poorest poor. But when I visited them in their little thatched cottages, I felt that the condition of even the meanest and most ignorant among them was vastly superior to the condition of the most favored slaves in America. They labored hard; but they were not ordered out to toil while the stars were in the sky, and driven and slashed by an overseer, through heat and cold, till the stars shone out again. Their homes were very humble; but they were protected by law. No insolent patrols could come, in the dead of night, and flog them at their pleasure. The father, when he closed his cottage door, felt safe with his family around him. No master or overseer could come and take from him his wife, or his daughter. They must separate to earn their living; but the parents knew where their children were going, and could communicate with them by letters. The relations of husband and wife, parent and child, were too sacred for the richest noble in the land to violate with impunity. Much was being done to enlighten these poor people. Schools were established among them, and benevolent societies were active in efforts to ameliorate their condition. There was no law forbidding them to learn to read and write; and if they helped each other in spelling out the Bible, they were in no danger of thirty-nine lashes, as was the case with myself and poor, pious, old uncle Fred. I repeat that the most ignorant and the most destitute of these peasants was a thousand fold better off than the most pampered American slave.

We then went to Steventon in Berkshire. It was a small town, reputed to be the poorest in the county. I saw men working in the fields for six and seven shillings a week, and women for sixpence and sevenpence a day, from which they had to feed themselves. Naturally, they lived in very basic conditions; it wasn’t surprising when a woman’s wages for a whole day couldn’t even buy a pound of meat. They paid very low rent, and their clothes were made from the cheapest materials, although they were still better than what could be bought in the United States for the same amount of money. I had heard a lot about the oppression of the poor in Europe. Many of the people I saw around me were among the very poorest. However, when I visited them in their tiny thatched cottages, I felt that even the least fortunate and most uneducated among them were in a far better situation than the most privileged slaves in America. They worked hard, but they weren’t forced to labor from dusk till dawn under the whip of an overseer, in both hot and cold weather. Their homes were quite modest, but they were protected by law. There were no rude patrols coming in the middle of the night to beat them at will. When the father closed his cottage door, he felt safe with his family around him. No master or overseer could come and take away his wife or daughter. They had to separate to make a living, but the parents knew where their children were going and could keep in touch with them through letters. The bonds between husband and wife, parent and child, were too sacred for even the richest noble in the land to violate without consequence. A lot was being done to educate these poor people. Schools had been set up for them, and charitable organizations were actively working to improve their situation. There was no law that prevented them from learning to read and write, and if they helped each other figure out the Bible, they were in no danger of getting thirty-nine lashes, as was the case for me and my poor, pious uncle Fred. I reiterate that the most ignorant and destitute among these peasants was a thousand times better off than the most spoiled American slave.

I do not deny that the poor are oppressed in Europe. I am not disposed to paint their condition so rose-colored as the Hon. Miss Murray paints the condition of the slaves in the United States. A small portion of my experience would enable her to read her own pages with anointed eyes. If she were to lay aside her title, and, instead of visiting among the fashionable, become domesticated, as a poor governess, on some plantation in Louisiana or Alabama, she would see and hear things that would make her tell quite a different story.

I don't deny that the poor are oppressed in Europe. I'm not inclined to present their situation as optimistically as the Hon. Miss Murray does with the condition of slaves in the United States. A little bit of my experience would allow her to review her own writings with a more informed perspective. If she were to put aside her title and, instead of mingling with the elite, live as a poor governess on a plantation in Louisiana or Alabama, she'd see and hear things that would make her tell a very different story.

My visit to England is a memorable event in my life, from the fact of my having there received strong religious impressions. The contemptuous manner in which the communion had been administered to colored people, in my native place; the church membership of Dr. Flint, and others like him; and the buying and selling of slaves, by professed ministers of the gospel, had given me a prejudice against the Episcopal church. The whole service seemed to me a mockery and a sham. But my home in Steventon was in the family of a clergyman, who was a true disciple of Jesus. The beauty of his daily life inspired me with faith in the genuineness of Christian professions. Grace entered my heart, and I knelt at the communion table, I trust, in true humility of soul.

My visit to England is a memorable event in my life because I received strong religious impressions there. The disrespectful way communion was given to people of color in my hometown, Dr. Flint’s church membership, and the buying and selling of slaves by so-called ministers of the gospel had made me biased against the Episcopal Church. The entire service felt like a joke and a facade to me. But my home in Steventon was with a clergyman who was a true follower of Jesus. The beauty of his daily life inspired me to believe in the authenticity of Christian beliefs. Grace filled my heart, and I knelt at the communion table, I hope, in true humility of spirit.

I remained abroad ten months, which was much longer than I had anticipated. During all that time, I never saw the slightest symptom of prejudice against color. Indeed, I entirely forgot it, till the time came for us to return to America.

I stayed overseas for ten months, which was way longer than I expected. Throughout that time, I never noticed even the slightest hint of prejudice based on skin color. In fact, I completely forgot about it until it was time for us to head back to America.










XXXVIII. Renewed Invitations To Go South.

We had a tedious winter passage, and from the distance spectres seemed to rise up on the shores of the United States. It is a sad feeling to be afraid of one’s native country. We arrived in New York safely, and I hastened to Boston to look after my children. I found Ellen well, and improving at her school; but Benny was not there to welcome me. He had been left at a good place to learn a trade, and for several months every thing worked well. He was liked by the master, and was a favorite with his fellow-apprentices; but one day they accidentally discovered a fact they had never before suspected—that he was colored! This at once transformed him into a different being. Some of the apprentices were Americans, others American-born Irish; and it was offensive to their dignity to have a “nigger” among them, after they had been told that he was a “nigger.” They began by treating him with silent scorn, and finding that he returned the same, they resorted to insults and abuse. He was too spirited a boy to stand that, and he went off. Being desirous to do something to support himself, and having no one to advise him, he shipped for a whaling voyage. When I received these tidings I shed many tears, and bitterly reproached myself for having left him so long. But I had done it for the best, and now all I could do was to pray to the heavenly Father to guide and protect him.

We had a long, tedious winter journey, and from a distance, shadows seemed to rise along the shores of the United States. It’s a sad feeling to be afraid of your own country. We arrived in New York safely, and I rushed to Boston to check on my children. I found Ellen doing well and improving at her school, but Benny wasn’t there to welcome me. He had been placed in a good spot to learn a trade, and for several months, everything was going well. He was liked by his teacher and was a favorite among his fellow apprentices; but one day, they accidentally discovered something they had never suspected—that he was Black! This immediately changed everything for him. Some of the apprentices were Americans, while others were Irish born in America, and it hurt their pride to have a "Black" among them after finding out. They started by treating him with quiet contempt, and when they saw that he returned the same, they resorted to insults and abuse. He was too proud to take that, so he left. Wanting to support himself and having no one to guide him, he signed up for a whaling voyage. When I heard this news, I cried many tears and bitterly blamed myself for leaving him for so long. But I had done it for the best, and all I could do now was pray to God to guide and protect him.

Not long after my return, I received the following letter from Miss Emily Flint, now Mrs. Dodge:—

Not long after I got back, I received this letter from Miss Emily Flint, who is now Mrs. Dodge:—

“In this you will recognize the hand of your friend and mistress. Having heard that you had gone with a family to Europe, I have waited to hear of your return to write to you. I should have answered the letter you wrote to me long since, but as I could not then act independently of my father, I knew there could be nothing done satisfactory to you. There were persons here who were willing to buy you and run the risk of getting you. To this I would not consent. I have always been attached to you, and would not like to see you the slave of another, or have unkind treatment. I am married now, and can protect you. My husband expects to move to Virginia this spring, where we think of settling. I am very anxious that you should come and live with me. If you are not willing to come, you may purchase yourself; but I should prefer having you live with me. If you come, you may, if you like, spend a month with your grandmother and friends, then come to me in Norfolk, Virginia. Think this over, and write as soon as possible, and let me know the conclusion. Hoping that your children are well, I remain your friend and mistress.”

“In this, you will recognize the hand of your friend and mistress. Having heard that you went to Europe with a family, I waited to hear of your return before writing to you. I should have replied to your letter a long time ago, but since I couldn’t act independently of my father then, I knew I couldn’t do anything satisfactory for you. There were people here willing to buy you and take the risk of getting you, but I wouldn’t agree to that. I have always cared about you and wouldn’t want to see you enslaved or treated badly. I’m married now and can protect you. My husband plans to move to Virginia this spring, where we intend to settle. I really want you to come and live with me. If you aren’t willing to come, you may buy your freedom; however, I would prefer if you lived with me. If you come, you can, if you like, spend a month with your grandmother and friends, then come to me in Norfolk, Virginia. Think this over, and write back as soon as possible to let me know your decision. I hope your children are well. Your friend and mistress.”

Of course I did not write to return thanks for this cordial invitation. I felt insulted to be thought stupid enough to be caught by such professions.

Of course I didn't write back to thank you for this warm invitation. I felt insulted to be considered naive enough to fall for such flattery.

“‘Come up into my parlor,’ said the spider to the fly;
‘’Tis the prettiest little parlor that ever you did spy.’”

It was plain that Dr. Flint’s family were apprised of my movements, since they knew of my voyage to Europe. I expected to have further trouble from them; but having eluded them thus far, I hoped to be as successful in future. The money I had earned, I was desirous to devote to the education of my children, and to secure a home for them. It seemed not only hard, but unjust, to pay for myself. I could not possibly regard myself as a piece of property. Moreover, I had worked many years without wages, and during that time had been obliged to depend on my grandmother for many comforts in food and clothing. My children certainly belonged to me; but though Dr. Flint had incurred no expense for their support, he had received a large sum of money for them. I knew the law would decide that I was his property, and would probably still give his daughter a claim to my children; but I regarded such laws as the regulations of robbers, who had no rights that I was bound to respect.

It was clear that Dr. Flint’s family was aware of my actions since they knew about my trip to Europe. I expected to face more trouble from them, but having evaded them so far, I hoped to continue being successful in the future. The money I earned, I wanted to use for my children’s education and to secure a home for them. It felt not just hard but unfair to pay for myself. I could never see myself as property. Plus, I had worked for many years without pay and during that time had to rely on my grandmother for many basics like food and clothing. My children definitely belonged to me; but even though Dr. Flint hadn’t spent any money on their upbringing, he had received a significant amount for them. I knew the law would determine that I was his property and might still give his daughter a claim to my children; but I viewed such laws as the rules of robbers, who had no rights I was obligated to respect.

The Fugitive Slave Law had not then passed. The judges of Massachusetts had not then stooped under chains to enter her courts of justice, so called. I knew my old master was rather skittish of Massachusetts. I relied on her love of freedom, and felt safe on her soil. I am now aware that I honored the old Commonwealth beyond her deserts.

The Fugitive Slave Law hadn’t passed yet. The judges of Massachusetts hadn’t yet bowed down to enter her so-called courts of justice. I knew my old master was somewhat wary of Massachusetts. I relied on her love of freedom and felt safe on her land. I now realize that I overestimated the old Commonwealth’s worth.










XXXIX. The Confession.

For two years my daughter and I supported ourselves comfortably in Boston. At the end of that time, my brother William offered to send Ellen to a boarding school. It required a great effort for me to consent to part with her, for I had few near ties, and it was her presence that made my two little rooms seem home-like. But my judgment prevailed over my selfish feelings. I made preparations for her departure. During the two years we had lived together I had often resolved to tell her something about her father; but I had never been able to muster sufficient courage. I had a shrinking dread of diminishing my child’s love. I knew she must have curiosity on the subject, but she had never asked a question. She was always very careful not to say any thing to remind me of my troubles. Now that she was going from me, I thought if I should die before she returned, she might hear my story from some one who did not understand the palliating circumstances; and that if she were entirely ignorant on the subject, her sensitive nature might receive a rude shock.

For two years, my daughter and I lived comfortably in Boston. At the end of that time, my brother William offered to send Ellen to a boarding school. It took a lot for me to agree to send her away because I had few close connections, and her presence made my two small rooms feel like home. However, I decided to put my judgment ahead of my selfish feelings and got ready for her departure. During those two years, I had often thought about telling her something about her father, but I never found the courage to do it. I was afraid of hurting my child’s love for me. I knew she must have questions about it, but she never asked. She was always very careful not to say anything that would remind me of my troubles. Now that she was leaving, I worried that if I died before she came back, she might hear my story from someone who didn’t understand the circumstances, and if she had no knowledge of it, her sensitive nature could be really hurt.

When we retired for the night, she said, “Mother, it is very hard to leave you alone. I am almost sorry I am going, though I do want to improve myself. But you will write to me often; won’t you, mother?”

When we went to bed, she said, “Mom, it’s really tough to leave you by yourself. I’m almost regretting that I’m going, even though I want to better myself. But you’ll write to me often, right, Mom?”

I did not throw my arms round her. I did not answer her. But in a calm, solemn way, for it cost me great effort, I said, “Listen to me, Ellen; I have something to tell you!” I recounted my early sufferings in slavery, and told her how nearly they had crushed me. I began to tell her how they had driven me into a great sin, when she clasped me in her arms, and exclaimed, “O, don’t, mother! Please don’t tell me any more.”

I didn't wrap my arms around her. I didn't respond to her. But in a calm, serious way, which took a lot of effort, I said, “Listen to me, Ellen; I have something to tell you!” I shared my early experiences with slavery and explained how close they came to breaking me. I started to tell her how they had pushed me into a terrible sin when she hugged me tightly and exclaimed, “Oh, please don’t, mother! Please don’t tell me anymore.”

I said, “But, my child, I want you to know about your father.”

I said, “But, my child, I want you to know about your dad.”

“I know all about it, mother,” she replied; “I am nothing to my father, and he is nothing to me. All my love is for you. I was with him five months in Washington, and he never cared for me. He never spoke to me as he did to his little Fanny. I knew all the time he was my father, for Fanny’s nurse told me so; but she said I must never tell any body, and I never did. I used to wish he would take me in his arms and kiss me, as he did Fanny; or that he would sometimes smile at me, as he did at her. I thought if he was my own father, he ought to love me. I was a little girl then, and didn’t know any better. But now I never think any thing about my father. All my love is for you.” She hugged me closer as she spoke, and I thanked God that the knowledge I had so much dreaded to impart had not diminished the affection of my child. I had not the slightest idea she knew that portion of my history. If I had, I should have spoken to her long before; for my pent-up feelings had often longed to pour themselves out to some one I could trust. But I loved the dear girl better for the delicacy she had manifested towards her unfortunate mother.

“I know all about it, Mom,” she replied; “I mean nothing to my dad, and he means nothing to me. All my love is for you. I was with him for five months in Washington, and he never cared about me. He never talked to me like he did to little Fanny. I always knew he was my dad because Fanny’s nurse told me, but she said I should never tell anyone, and I never did. I used to wish he would take me in his arms and kiss me like he did Fanny or that he would smile at me sometimes like he did at her. I thought if he was my real dad, he should love me. I was just a little girl then and didn’t know any better. But now I never think about my dad. All my love is for you.” She hugged me closer as she spoke, and I thanked God that the burden I had dreaded to share hadn’t lessened my child’s affection. I had no idea she knew that part of my history. If I had, I would have told her long ago because my repressed feelings had often wanted to be shared with someone I could trust. But I loved the sweet girl even more for the sensitivity she had shown towards her unfortunate mother.

The next morning, she and her uncle started on their journey to the village in New York, where she was to be placed at school. It seemed as if all the sunshine had gone away. My little room was dreadfully lonely. I was thankful when a message came from a lady, accustomed to employ me, requesting me to come and sew in her family for several weeks. On my return, I found a letter from brother William. He thought of opening an anti-slavery reading room in Rochester, and combining with it the sale of some books and stationery; and he wanted me to unite with him. We tried it, but it was not successful. We found warm anti-slavery friends there, but the feeling was not general enough to support such an establishment. I passed nearly a year in the family of Isaac and Amy Post, practical believers in the Christian doctrine of human brotherhood. They measure a man’s worth by his character, not by his complexion. The memory of those beloved and honored friends will remain with me to my latest hour.

The next morning, she and her uncle set out on their journey to the village in New York, where she was going to attend school. It felt like all the sunshine had vanished. My little room felt so lonely. I was grateful when I received a message from a lady who usually hired me, asking me to come and sew for her family for several weeks. Upon my return, I found a letter from my brother William. He was thinking of starting an anti-slavery reading room in Rochester, along with selling some books and stationery, and he wanted me to join him. We tried, but it didn’t work out. We discovered some supportive anti-slavery friends there, but the overall sentiment wasn’t strong enough to sustain such a venture. I spent nearly a year with Isaac and Amy Post, who truly believed in the Christian idea of human brotherhood. They valued a person’s worth based on their character, not on their skin color. The memory of those cherished and respected friends will stay with me for the rest of my life.










XL. The Fugitive Slave Law.

My brother, being disappointed in his project, concluded to go to California; and it was agreed that Benjamin should go with him. Ellen liked her school, and was a great favorite there. They did not know her history, and she did not tell it, because she had no desire to make capital out of their sympathy. But when it was accidentally discovered that her mother was a fugitive slave, every method was used to increase her advantages and diminish her expenses.

My brother, disappointed with his project, decided to go to California, and it was agreed that Benjamin would go with him. Ellen liked her school and was very popular there. They didn’t know her background, and she didn’t share it because she didn’t want to take advantage of their sympathy. However, when it was accidentally found out that her mother was a runaway slave, every effort was made to enhance her opportunities and reduce her costs.

I was alone again. It was necessary for me to be earning money, and I preferred that it should be among those who knew me. On my return from Rochester, I called at the house of Mr. Bruce, to see Mary, the darling little babe that had thawed my heart, when it was freezing into a cheerless distrust of all my fellow-beings. She was growing a tall girl now, but I loved her always. Mr. Bruce had married again, and it was proposed that I should become nurse to a new infant. I had but one hesitation, and that was my feeling of insecurity in New York, now greatly increased by the passage of the Fugitive Slave Law. However, I resolved to try the experiment. I was again fortunate in my employer. The new Mrs. Bruce was an American, brought up under aristocratic influences, and still living in the midst of them; but if she had any prejudice against color, I was never made aware of it; and as for the system of slavery, she had a most hearty dislike of it. No sophistry of Southerners could blind her to its enormity. She was a person of excellent principles and a noble heart. To me, from that hour to the present, she has been a true and sympathizing friend. Blessings be with her and hers!

I was alone again. I needed to earn money, and I preferred to do it with people who knew me. On my way back from Rochester, I stopped by Mr. Bruce's house to see Mary, the sweet little girl who had melted my heart when it was becoming cold and distrustful of everyone around me. She was growing into a tall girl now, but my love for her never changed. Mr. Bruce had remarried, and they suggested I become a nurse for their new baby. I had one concern, and that was my feeling of insecurity in New York, which had worsened after the Fugitive Slave Law was passed. Still, I decided to give it a try. I was fortunate again in my choice of employer. The new Mrs. Bruce was American, raised in a privileged environment, and still surrounded by it; but if she held any bias against people of color, I was never aware of it. As for slavery, she had a strong aversion to it. No arguments from Southerners could convince her otherwise. She was truly principled and had a kind heart. From that time until now, she has been a genuine and supportive friend to me. Blessings to her and her family!

About the time that I reëntered the Bruce family, an event occurred of disastrous import to the colored people. The slave Hamlin, the first fugitive that came under the new law, was given up by the bloodhounds of the north to the bloodhounds of the south. It was the beginning of a reign of terror to the colored population. The great city rushed on in its whirl of excitement, taking no note of the “short and simple annals of the poor.” But while fashionables were listening to the thrilling voice of Jenny Lind in Metropolitan Hall, the thrilling voices of poor hunted colored people went up, in an agony of supplication, to the Lord, from Zion’s church. Many families, who had lived in the city for twenty years, fled from it now. Many a poor washerwoman, who, by hard labor, had made herself a comfortable home, was obliged to sacrifice her furniture, bid a hurried farewell to friends, and seek her fortune among strangers in Canada. Many a wife discovered a secret she had never known before—that her husband was a fugitive, and must leave her to insure his own safety. Worse still, many a husband discovered that his wife had fled from slavery years ago, and as “the child follows the condition of its mother,” the children of his love were liable to be seized and carried into slavery. Every where, in those humble homes, there was consternation and anguish. But what cared the legislators of the “dominant race” for the blood they were crushing out of trampled hearts?

About the time I rejoined the Bruce family, a devastating event occurred for the Black community. The slave Hamlin, the first fugitive to come under the new law, was handed over by the northern hunters to the southern ones. It marked the start of a reign of terror for the Black population. The bustling city continued its whirlwind of excitement, completely ignoring the “short and simple annals of the poor.” While the fashionable crowd was captivated by the thrilling performances of Jenny Lind at Metropolitan Hall, the desperate pleas of hunted Black individuals rose in anguish to the Lord from Zion’s church. Many families, who had lived in the city for two decades, fled. Countless poor washerwomen, who had worked hard to create a comfortable home, were forced to give up their furniture, say quick goodbyes to friends, and seek their fortunes among strangers in Canada. Many wives found out a shocking secret—that their husbands were fugitives who had to leave to ensure their own safety. Even worse, many husbands learned that their wives had escaped slavery years before, and since “the child follows the condition of its mother,” their beloved children were at risk of being seized and returned to slavery. Everywhere, in those modest homes, there was shock and despair. But what did the lawmakers of the “dominant race” care about the lives they were destroying?

When my brother William spent his last evening with me, before he went to California, we talked nearly all the time of the distress brought on our oppressed people by the passage of this iniquitous law; and never had I seen him manifest such bitterness of spirit, such stern hostility to our oppressors. He was himself free from the operation of the law; for he did not run from any Slaveholding State, being brought into the Free States by his master. But I was subject to it; and so were hundreds of intelligent and industrious people all around us. I seldom ventured into the streets; and when it was necessary to do an errand for Mrs. Bruce, or any of the family, I went as much as possible through back streets and by-ways. What a disgrace to a city calling itself free, that inhabitants, guiltless of offence, and seeking to perform their duties conscientiously, should be condemned to live in such incessant fear, and have nowhere to turn for protection! This state of things, of course, gave rise to many impromptu vigilance committees. Every colored person, and every friend of their persecuted race, kept their eyes wide open. Every evening I examined the newspapers carefully, to see what Southerners had put up at the hotels. I did this for my own sake, thinking my young mistress and her husband might be among the list; I wished also to give information to others, if necessary; for if many were “running to and fro,” I resolved that “knowledge should be increased.”

When my brother William spent his last evening with me before heading to California, we talked almost the whole time about the suffering caused to our oppressed people by the passage of this unjust law. I had never seen him show such bitterness and strong hostility toward our oppressors. He was not affected by the law since he didn’t escape from any slaveholding state; he was brought into the free states by his master. But I was subject to it, just like hundreds of intelligent and hardworking people around us. I rarely went out onto the streets, and when I had to run an errand for Mrs. Bruce or anyone in the family, I tried to use the back streets and alleys as much as possible. It was a shame for a city that claimed to be free that innocent residents, just trying to fulfill their responsibilities, had to live in constant fear and had nowhere to turn for safety! This situation naturally led to the formation of many spontaneous vigilance committees. Every person of color and every ally of their persecuted community stayed alert. Each evening, I carefully scanned the newspapers to see which Southerners were registered at the hotels. I did this for my own peace of mind, hoping my young mistress and her husband wouldn’t be on the list; I also wanted to share information with others if necessary because if many were “running to and fro,” I was determined that “knowledge should be increased.”

This brings up one of my Southern reminiscences, which I will here briefly relate. I was somewhat acquainted with a slave named Luke, who belonged to a wealthy man in our vicinity. His master died, leaving a son and daughter heirs to his large fortune. In the division of the slaves, Luke was included in the son’s portion. This young man became a prey to the vices growing out of the “patriarchal institution,” and when he went to the north, to complete his education, he carried his vices with him. He was brought home, deprived of the use of his limbs, by excessive dissipation. Luke was appointed to wait upon his bed-ridden master, whose despotic habits were greatly increased by exasperation at his own helplessness. He kept a cowhide beside him, and, for the most trivial occurrence, he would order his attendant to bare his back, and kneel beside the couch, while he whipped him till his strength was exhausted. Some days he was not allowed to wear any thing but his shirt, in order to be in readiness to be flogged. A day seldom passed without his receiving more or less blows. If the slightest resistance was offered, the town constable was sent for to execute the punishment, and Luke learned from experience how much more the constable’s strong arm was to be dreaded than the comparatively feeble one of his master. The arm of his tyrant grew weaker, and was finally palsied; and then the constable’s services were in constant requisition. The fact that he was entirely dependent on Luke’s care, and was obliged to be tended like an infant, instead of inspiring any gratitude or compassion towards his poor slave, seemed only to increase his irritability and cruelty. As he lay there on his bed, a mere degraded wreck of manhood, he took into his head the strangest freaks of despotism; and if Luke hesitated to submit to his orders, the constable was immediately sent for. Some of these freaks were of a nature too filthy to be repeated. When I fled from the house of bondage, I left poor Luke still chained to the bedside of this cruel and disgusting wretch.

This brings to mind one of my Southern memories that I’ll briefly share. I was somewhat familiar with a slave named Luke, who belonged to a wealthy man nearby. When his master died, he left behind a son and daughter who were heirs to his vast fortune. In the division of the slaves, Luke was included in the son’s share. This young man fell victim to the vices associated with the “patriarchal institution,” and when he went north to complete his education, he brought those vices with him. He was brought back home, unable to move his limbs, due to excessive indulgence. Luke was assigned to care for his bedridden master, whose cruel habits worsened due to his own frustration at being helpless. He kept a cowhide next to him, and for the smallest offenses, he'd order Luke to strip off his shirt and kneel by the bed while he whipped him until he was exhausted. Some days, he could only wear his shirt to be ready for beating. Hardly a day went by without Luke receiving some punishment. If Luke resisted in the slightest, the town constable would be called in to carry out the punishment, and Luke learned from experience that the constable’s strong arm was far more to be feared than his master’s weaker one. As his master’s strength dwindled and eventually became paralyzed, the constable's services were frequently needed. Instead of feeling gratitude or compassion for his poor slave, the fact that he was entirely dependent on Luke’s care and needed to be treated like a baby only increased his irritability and cruelty. Lying there in bed, reduced to a pitiful state, he came up with bizarre demands; if Luke hesitated to follow his orders, the constable would be called for immediately. Some of these demands were too disgusting to recount. When I escaped from the house of bondage, I left poor Luke still chained to the bedside of this cruel and repulsive wretch.

One day, when I had been requested to do an errand for Mrs. Bruce, I was hurrying through back streets, as usual, when I saw a young man approaching, whose face was familiar to me. As he came nearer, I recognized Luke. I always rejoiced to see or hear of any one who had escaped from the black pit; but, remembering this poor fellow’s extreme hardships, I was peculiarly glad to see him on Northern soil, though I no longer called it free soil. I well remembered what a desolate feeling it was to be alone among strangers, and I went up to him and greeted him cordially. At first, he did not know me; but when I mentioned my name, he remembered all about me. I told him of the Fugitive Slave Law, and asked him if he did not know that New York was a city of kidnappers.

One day, after Mrs. Bruce asked me to run an errand, I was rushing through the back streets, as usual, when I noticed a young man approaching whose face looked familiar. As he got closer, I recognized Luke. I always felt happy to see or hear about anyone who had escaped from that terrible place; but remembering this poor guy’s extreme hardships, I was especially glad to see him on Northern soil, even though I didn’t consider it truly free soil anymore. I clearly remembered how lonely it felt to be among strangers, so I walked up to him and greeted him warmly. At first, he didn’t recognize me, but when I told him my name, he remembered everything. I informed him about the Fugitive Slave Law and asked if he was aware that New York was a city of kidnappers.

He replied, “De risk ain’t so bad for me, as ’tis fur you. ’Cause I runned away from de speculator, and you runned away from de massa. Dem speculators vont spen dar money to come here fur a runaway, if dey ain’t sartin sure to put dar hans right on him. An I tell you I’s tuk good car ’bout dat. I had too hard times down dar, to let ’em ketch dis nigger.”

He replied, “The risk isn’t as bad for me as it is for you. Because I ran away from the speculator, and you ran away from the master. Those speculators will spend their money to come here for a runaway, but only if they’re absolutely sure they can get their hands on him. And I tell you, I've taken good care to prevent that. I had too many tough times down there to let them catch this black man.”

He then told me of the advice he had received, and the plans he had laid. I asked if he had money enough to take him to Canada. “’Pend upon it, I hab,” he replied. “I tuk car fur dat. I’d bin workin all my days fur dem cussed whites, an got no pay but kicks and cuffs. So I tought dis nigger had a right to money nuff to bring him to de Free States. Massa Henry he lib till ebery body vish him dead; an ven he did die, I knowed de debbil would hab him, an vouldn’t vant him to bring his money ’long too. So I tuk some of his bills, and put ’em in de pocket of his ole trousers. An ven he was buried, dis nigger ask fur dem ole trousers, an dey gub ’em to me.” With a low, chuckling laugh, he added, “You see I didn’t steal it; dey gub it to me. I tell you, I had mighty hard time to keep de speculator from findin it; but he didn’t git it.”

He then told me about the advice he had received and the plans he had made. I asked if he had enough money to take him to Canada. “You can count on it, I do,” he replied. “I took care of that. I’d been working my whole life for those damn whites and never got anything but kicks and punches. So I figured this black man had a right to enough money to get him to the Free States. Master Henry lived until everyone wished him dead; and when he finally did die, I knew the devil would take him and wouldn’t want him to bring his money along either. So I took some of his bills and put them in the pocket of his old trousers. And when he was buried, this black man asked for those old trousers, and they gave them to me.” With a low, chuckling laugh, he added, “You see, I didn’t steal it; they gave it to me. I tell you, I had a really hard time keeping the speculator from finding it, but he didn’t get it.”

This is a fair specimen of how the moral sense is educated by slavery. When a man has his wages stolen from him, year after year, and the laws sanction and enforce the theft, how can he be expected to have more regard to honesty than has the man who robs him? I have become somewhat enlightened, but I confess that I agree with poor, ignorant, much-abused Luke, in thinking he had a right to that money, as a portion of his unpaid wages. He went to Canada forthwith, and I have not since heard from him.

This is a clear example of how slavery shapes the moral sense. When a person has their wages taken from them, year after year, and the laws support and enforce this theft, how can they be expected to value honesty any more than the person stealing from them? I've learned a bit over time, but I admit I agree with poor, ignorant, mistreated Luke, who believed he had a right to that money as part of his unpaid wages. He went to Canada right away, and I haven't heard from him since.

All that winter I lived in a state of anxiety. When I took the children out to breathe the air, I closely observed the countenances of all I met. I dreaded the approach of summer, when snakes and slaveholders make their appearance. I was, in fact, a slave in New York, as subject to slave laws as I had been in a Slave State. Strange incongruity in a State called free!

All that winter, I was really anxious. When I took the kids outside to get some fresh air, I watched the faces of everyone I encountered closely. I feared the coming of summer, when snakes and slaveholders would show up. I was, in reality, a slave in New York, just as much under slave laws as I had been in a Slave State. It's a strange contradiction in a place that's supposed to be free!

Spring returned, and I received warning from the south that Dr. Flint knew of my return to my old place, and was making preparations to have me caught. I learned afterwards that my dress, and that of Mrs. Bruce’s children, had been described to him by some of the Northern tools, which slaveholders employ for their base purposes, and then indulge in sneers at their cupidity and mean servility.

Spring came back, and I got word from the south that Dr. Flint was aware of my return to my old home and was getting ready to have me captured. I later found out that my dress, along with the one worn by Mrs. Bruce’s children, had been described to him by some of the Northern agents that slaveholders use for their selfish purposes, only to mock their greed and lowly servitude.

I immediately informed Mrs. Bruce of my danger, and she took prompt measures for my safety. My place as nurse could not be supplied immediately, and this generous, sympathizing lady proposed that I should carry her baby away. It was a comfort to me to have the child with me; for the heart is reluctant to be torn away from every object it loves. But how few mothers would have consented to have one of their own babes become a fugitive, for the sake of a poor, hunted nurse, on whom the legislators of the country had let loose the bloodhounds! When I spoke of the sacrifice she was making, in depriving herself of her dear baby, she replied, “It is better for you to have baby with you, Linda; for if they get on your track, they will be obliged to bring the child to me; and then, if there is a possibility of saving you, you shall be saved.”

I immediately let Mrs. Bruce know about my situation, and she quickly took action to keep me safe. My role as a nurse couldn't be filled right away, and this kind, understanding woman suggested that I take her baby with me. It was a relief to have the child with me because it’s hard to be separated from something you love. But how many mothers would agree to let their own baby become a refugee for the sake of a struggling nurse who was being hunted by the law? When I mentioned the sacrifice she was making by letting go of her baby, she answered, “It's better for you to have the baby with you, Linda; if they find you, they'll have to bring the child back to me; and then, if there's a chance to save you, we will find a way.”

This lady had a very wealthy relative, a benevolent gentleman in many respects, but aristocratic and pro-slavery. He remonstrated with her for harboring a fugitive slave; told her she was violating the laws of her country; and asked her if she was aware of the penalty. She replied, “I am very well aware of it. It is imprisonment and one thousand dollars fine. Shame on my country that it is so! I am ready to incur the penalty. I will go to the state’s prison, rather than have any poor victim torn from my house, to be carried back to slavery.”

This woman had a wealthy relative, a kind man in many ways, but also aristocratic and in favor of slavery. He confronted her for sheltering a runaway slave, told her she was breaking the laws of her country, and asked if she knew what the consequences were. She replied, “I know very well. The punishment is imprisonment and a fine of one thousand dollars. Shame on my country for allowing this! I’m willing to take that risk. I would rather go to prison than let any innocent person be taken from my home and sent back into slavery.”

The noble heart! The brave heart! The tears are in my eyes while I write of her. May the God of the helpless reward her for her sympathy with my persecuted people!

The noble heart! The brave heart! Tears fill my eyes as I write about her. May the God of the helpless reward her for her compassion towards my oppressed people!

I was sent into New England, where I was sheltered by the wife of a senator, whom I shall always hold in grateful remembrance. This honorable gentleman would not have voted for the Fugitive Slave Law, as did the senator in “Uncle Tom’s Cabin;” on the contrary, he was strongly opposed to it; but he was enough under its influence to be afraid of having me remain in his house many hours. So I was sent into the country, where I remained a month with the baby. When it was supposed that Dr. Flint’s emissaries had lost track of me, and given up the pursuit for the present, I returned to New York.

I was sent to New England, where I found shelter with a senator's wife, who I will always remember with gratitude. This honorable man would not have voted for the Fugitive Slave Law, unlike the senator in “Uncle Tom’s Cabin;” in fact, he was very much against it. However, he felt pressured enough by it to be worried about having me stay in his house for too long. So, I was sent out to the countryside, where I spent a month with the baby. When it was thought that Dr. Flint's agents had lost track of me and given up the search for the time being, I went back to New York.










XLI. Free At Last.

Mrs. Bruce, and every member of her family, were exceedingly kind to me. I was thankful for the blessings of my lot, yet I could not always wear a cheerful countenance. I was doing harm to no one; on the contrary, I was doing all the good I could in my small way; yet I could never go out to breathe God’s free air without trepidation at my heart. This seemed hard; and I could not think it was a right state of things in any civilized country.

Mrs. Bruce and her entire family were very kind to me. I was grateful for the blessings in my life, but I couldn't always put on a happy face. I was harming no one; in fact, I was trying to do as much good as I could in my small way, yet I could never go outside to enjoy the fresh air without feeling anxiety in my heart. This felt unfair, and I couldn't believe it was a healthy situation in any civilized society.

From time to time I received news from my good old grandmother. She could not write; but she employed others to write for her. The following is an extract from one of her last letters:—

From time to time, I heard from my good old grandmother. She couldn’t write, but she had others do it for her. Here’s a part of one of her last letters:—

“Dear Daughter: I cannot hope to see you again on earth; but I pray to God to unite us above, where pain will no more rack this feeble body of mine; where sorrow and parting from my children will be no more. God has promised these things if we are faithful unto the end. My age and feeble health deprive me of going to church now; but God is with me here at home. Thank your brother for his kindness. Give much love to him, and tell him to remember the Creator in the days of his youth, and strive to meet me in the Father’s kingdom. Love to Ellen and Benjamin. Don’t neglect him. Tell him for me, to be a good boy. Strive, my child, to train them for God’s children. May he protect and provide for you, is the prayer of your loving old mother.”

These letters both cheered and saddened me. I was always glad to have tidings from the kind, faithful old friend of my unhappy youth; but her messages of love made my heart yearn to see her before she died, and I mourned over the fact that it was impossible. Some months after I returned from my flight to New England, I received a letter from her, in which she wrote, “Dr. Flint is dead. He has left a distressed family. Poor old man! I hope he made his peace with God.”

These letters both lifted my spirits and made me sad. I was always happy to hear from the kind, loyal old friend of my troubled youth; but her messages of love made me long to see her before she passed away, and I grieved over the fact that it was impossible. A few months after I got back from my trip to New England, I received a letter from her, in which she wrote, “Dr. Flint is dead. He has left a family in distress. Poor old man! I hope he made peace with God.”

I remembered how he had defrauded my grandmother of the hard earnings she had loaned; how he had tried to cheat her out of the freedom her mistress had promised her, and how he had persecuted her children; and I thought to myself that she was a better Christian than I was, if she could entirely forgive him. I cannot say, with truth, that the news of my old master’s death softened my feelings towards him. There are wrongs which even the grave does not bury. The man was odious to me while he lived, and his memory is odious now.

I remembered how he had scammed my grandmother out of the hard-earned money she had lent him; how he had tried to cheat her out of the freedom her mistress had promised her, and how he had persecuted her children; and I thought to myself that she was a better Christian than I was if she could completely forgive him. I can't honestly say that the news of my old master’s death changed my feelings towards him. There are wrongs that even death can't erase. The man was detestable to me when he was alive, and his memory is still detestable now.

His departure from this world did not diminish my danger. He had threatened my grandmother that his heirs should hold me in slavery after he was gone; that I never should be free so long as a child of his survived. As for Mrs. Flint, I had seen her in deeper afflictions than I supposed the loss of her husband would be, for she had buried several children; yet I never saw any signs of softening in her heart. The doctor had died in embarrassed circumstances, and had little to will to his heirs, except such property as he was unable to grasp. I was well aware what I had to expect from the family of Flints; and my fears were confirmed by a letter from the south, warning me to be on my guard, because Mrs. Flint openly declared that her daughter could not afford to lose so valuable a slave as I was.

His passing didn’t lessen my danger. He had threatened my grandmother that his heirs would keep me in slavery after he was gone; that I would never be free as long as one of his children was alive. As for Mrs. Flint, I had seen her endure greater sorrows than I thought the loss of her husband would bring, as she had lost several children; yet, I never noticed any signs of compassion in her. The doctor had died in financial trouble and had little to leave his heirs, apart from whatever property he couldn’t hold onto. I knew exactly what to expect from the Flint family, and my fears were confirmed by a letter from the South, warning me to stay alert because Mrs. Flint openly said that her daughter couldn’t afford to lose such a valuable slave like me.

I kept close watch of the newspapers for arrivals; but one Saturday night, being much occupied, I forgot to examine the Evening Express as usual. I went down into the parlor for it, early in the morning, and found the boy about to kindle a fire with it. I took it from him and examined the list of arrivals. Reader, if you have never been a slave, you cannot imagine the acute sensation of suffering at my heart, when I read the names of Mr. and Mrs. Dodge, at a hotel in Courtland Street. It was a third-rate hotel, and that circumstance convinced me of the truth of what I had heard, that they were short of funds and had need of my value, as they valued me; and that was by dollars and cents. I hastened with the paper to Mrs. Bruce. Her heart and hand were always open to every one in distress, and she always warmly sympathized with mine. It was impossible to tell how near the enemy was. He might have passed and repassed the house while we were sleeping. He might at that moment be waiting to pounce upon me if I ventured out of doors. I had never seen the husband of my young mistress, and therefore I could not distinguish him from any other stranger. A carriage was hastily ordered; and, closely veiled, I followed Mrs. Bruce, taking the baby again with me into exile. After various turnings and crossings, and returnings, the carriage stopped at the house of one of Mrs. Bruce’s friends, where I was kindly received. Mrs. Bruce returned immediately, to instruct the domestics what to say if any one came to inquire for me.

I kept a close eye on the newspapers for arrivals, but one Saturday night, I got so caught up in things that I forgot to check the Evening Express as I usually did. The next morning, I went down to the parlor to grab it and found the boy about to start a fire with it. I took it from him and looked at the list of arrivals. Reader, if you've never been enslaved, you can't imagine the sharp pain in my heart when I saw the names of Mr. and Mrs. Dodge at a hotel on Courtland Street. It was a dive of a hotel, and that made me realize that what I had heard was true—they were low on money and needed my worth, as much as they valued me, which was measured in dollars and cents. I rushed to bring the paper to Mrs. Bruce. Her heart and home were always open to those in need, and she always empathized with my situation. It was impossible to know how close the enemy was. He might have passed by the house repeatedly while we were asleep. He could be lurking right outside, ready to catch me if I stepped out. I had never seen my young mistress's husband, so I wouldn't have been able to recognize him among other strangers. A carriage was quickly summoned, and with my face well-covered, I followed Mrs. Bruce, taking the baby with me into hiding. After a few twists and turns, the carriage stopped at the home of one of Mrs. Bruce’s friends, where I was welcomed warmly. Mrs. Bruce headed back immediately to tell the staff what to say if anyone came looking for me.

It was lucky for me that the evening paper was not burned up before I had a chance to examine the list of arrivals. It was not long after Mrs. Bruce’s return to her house, before several people came to inquire for me. One inquired for me, another asked for my daughter Ellen, and another said he had a letter from my grandmother, which he was requested to deliver in person.

It was fortunate for me that the evening paper hadn't been destroyed before I had a chance to check the list of arrivals. It wasn't long after Mrs. Bruce got back to her house that several people came by to ask for me. One asked for me, another inquired about my daughter Ellen, and someone else mentioned he had a letter from my grandmother that he was supposed to deliver in person.

They were told, “She has lived here, but she has left.”

They were told, “She lives here, but she has left.”

“How long ago?”

"How long ago was that?"

“I don’t know, sir.”

"I don't know, sir."

“Do you know where she went?”

“Do you know where she went?”

“I do not, sir.” And the door was closed.

“I don’t, sir.” And the door was shut.

This Mr. Dodge, who claimed me as his property, was originally a Yankee pedler in the south; then he became a merchant, and finally a slaveholder. He managed to get introduced into what was called the first society, and married Miss Emily Flint. A quarrel arose between him and her brother, and the brother cowhided him. This led to a family feud, and he proposed to remove to Virginia. Dr. Flint left him no property, and his own means had become circumscribed, while a wife and children depended upon him for support. Under these circumstances, it was very natural that he should make an effort to put me into his pocket.

This Mr. Dodge, who claimed me as his property, was originally a Northern peddler in the South; then he became a merchant, and eventually a slave owner. He managed to get into what was known as the upper class and married Miss Emily Flint. A fight broke out between him and her brother, and the brother beat him up. This sparked a family feud, and he decided to move to Virginia. Dr. Flint left him no assets, and his own finances had become tight, while a wife and kids relied on him for support. Given these circumstances, it was only natural that he would try to bring me under his control.

I had a colored friend, a man from my native place, in whom I had the most implicit confidence. I sent for him, and told him that Mr. and Mrs. Dodge had arrived in New York. I proposed that he should call upon them to make inquiries about his friends at the south, with whom Dr. Flint’s family were well acquainted. He thought there was no impropriety in his doing so, and he consented. He went to the hotel, and knocked at the door of Mr. Dodge’s room, which was opened by the gentleman himself, who gruffly inquired, “What brought you here? How came you to know I was in the city?”

I had a friend of color, a man from my hometown, in whom I completely trusted. I called him over and told him that Mr. and Mrs. Dodge had arrived in New York. I suggested that he visit them to ask about his friends down south, who were well-known to Dr. Flint's family. He didn't think there was anything wrong with that, so he agreed. He went to the hotel and knocked on Mr. Dodge's room door, which was answered by the gentleman himself, who gruffly asked, “What brought you here? How did you know I was in the city?”

“Your arrival was published in the evening papers, sir; and I called to ask Mrs. Dodge about my friends at home. I didn’t suppose it would give any offence.”

“Your arrival was mentioned in the evening newspapers, sir; and I came to ask Mrs. Dodge about my friends back home. I didn’t think it would cause any offense.”

“Where’s that negro girl, that belongs to my wife?”

“Where’s that Black girl who belongs to my wife?”

“What girl, sir?”

“Which girl, sir?”

“You know well enough. I mean Linda, that ran away from Dr. Flint’s plantation, some years ago. I dare say you’ve seen her, and know where she is.”

“You know very well. I mean Linda, who escaped from Dr. Flint’s plantation a few years ago. I bet you’ve seen her and know where she is.”

“Yes, sir, I’ve seen her, and know where she is. She is out of your reach, sir.”

“Yes, sir, I’ve seen her and I know where she is. She's out of your reach, sir.”

“Tell me where she is, or bring her to me, and I will give her a chance to buy her freedom.”

“Tell me where she is, or bring her to me, and I’ll give her a chance to buy her freedom.”

“I don’t think it would be of any use, sir. I have heard her say she would go to the ends of the earth, rather than pay any man or woman for her freedom, because she thinks she has a right to it. Besides, she couldn’t do it, if she would, for she has spent her earnings to educate her children.”

“I don’t think that would help, sir. I’ve heard her say she’d go to the ends of the earth rather than pay anyone for her freedom because she believes she has a right to it. Plus, she couldn’t do it even if she wanted to, as she has used her earnings to educate her children.”

This made Mr. Dodge very angry, and some high words passed between them. My friend was afraid to come where I was; but in the course of the day I received a note from him. I supposed they had not come from the south, in the winter, for a pleasure excursion; and now the nature of their business was very plain.

This made Mr. Dodge really angry, and they exchanged some harsh words. My friend was scared to come near me, but later in the day, I got a note from him. I figured they hadn’t come from the south during the winter just for a fun trip; now it was clear what their business was.

Mrs. Bruce came to me and entreated me to leave the city the next morning. She said her house was watched, and it was possible that some clew to me might be obtained. I refused to take her advice. She pleaded with an earnest tenderness, that ought to have moved me; but I was in a bitter, disheartened mood. I was weary of flying from pillar to post. I had been chased during half my life, and it seemed as if the chase was never to end. There I sat, in that great city, guiltless of crime, yet not daring to worship God in any of the churches. I heard the bells ringing for afternoon service, and, with contemptuous sarcasm, I said, “Will the preachers take for their text, ‘Proclaim liberty to the captive, and the opening of prison doors to them that are bound’? or will they preach from the text, ‘Do unto others as ye would they should do unto you’?” Oppressed Poles and Hungarians could find a safe refuge in that city; John Mitchell was free to proclaim in the City Hall his desire for “a plantation well stocked with slaves;” but there I sat, an oppressed American, not daring to show my face. God forgive the black and bitter thoughts I indulged on that Sabbath day! The Scripture says, “Oppression makes even a wise man mad;” and I was not wise.

Mrs. Bruce came to me and urged me to leave the city the next morning. She said her house was being watched, and it was possible that someone could find a clue about me. I refused to take her advice. She pleaded with a heartfelt tenderness that should have moved me, but I was in a bitter, disheartened mood. I was tired of running around aimlessly. I had been chased for half my life, and it felt like the chase would never end. There I sat, in that big city, innocent of any crime, yet not daring to worship God in any of the churches. I heard the bells ringing for afternoon service, and with scornful sarcasm, I said, “Will the preachers choose for their sermon, ‘Proclaim liberty to the captive, and the opening of prison doors to those who are bound’? Or will they preach from the text, ‘Do unto others as you would have them do unto you’?” Oppressed Poles and Hungarians could find a safe refuge in that city; John Mitchell was free to express in the City Hall his desire for “a plantation well stocked with slaves;” but there I sat, an oppressed American, not daring to show my face. God forgive the dark and bitter thoughts I entertained on that Sabbath day! The Scripture says, “Oppression makes even a wise man mad;” and I was not wise.

I had been told that Mr. Dodge said his wife had never signed away her right to my children, and if he could not get me, he would take them. This it was, more than any thing else, that roused such a tempest in my soul. Benjamin was with his uncle William in California, but my innocent young daughter had come to spend a vacation with me. I thought of what I had suffered in slavery at her age, and my heart was like a tiger’s when a hunter tries to seize her young.

I had been told that Mr. Dodge said his wife had never given up her right to my children, and if he couldn’t have me, he would take them. This, more than anything else, stirred a storm in my heart. Benjamin was with his uncle William in California, but my innocent young daughter had come to spend a vacation with me. I thought about what I had gone through in slavery at her age, and my heart was like a tiger’s when a hunter tries to grab her cubs.

Dear Mrs. Bruce! I seem to see the expression of her face, as she turned away discouraged by my obstinate mood. Finding her expostulations unavailing, she sent Ellen to entreat me. When ten o’clock in the evening arrived and Ellen had not returned, this watchful and unwearied friend became anxious. She came to us in a carriage, bringing a well-filled trunk for my journey—trusting that by this time I would listen to reason. I yielded to her, as I ought to have done before.

Dear Mrs. Bruce! I can still picture the look on her face as she turned away, feeling discouraged by my stubbornness. Since her attempts to persuade me didn't work, she sent Ellen to plead with me. When ten o'clock at night came and Ellen hadn’t come back, this attentive and tireless friend started to worry. She came to us in a carriage, bringing a packed trunk for my trip, hoping that by now I would be open to reason. I gave in to her, as I should have done earlier.

The next day, baby and I set out in a heavy snow storm, bound for New England again. I received letters from the City of Iniquity, addressed to me under an assumed name. In a few days one came from Mrs. Bruce, informing me that my new master was still searching for me, and that she intended to put an end to this persecution by buying my freedom. I felt grateful for the kindness that prompted this offer, but the idea was not so pleasant to me as might have been expected. The more my mind had become enlightened, the more difficult it was for me to consider myself an article of property; and to pay money to those who had so grievously oppressed me seemed like taking from my sufferings the glory of triumph. I wrote to Mrs. Bruce, thanking her, but saying that being sold from one owner to another seemed too much like slavery; that such a great obligation could not be easily cancelled; and that I preferred to go to my brother in California.

The next day, the baby and I headed out into a heavy snowstorm, making our way back to New England. I received letters from the City of Iniquity, sent to me under a fake name. A few days later, I got one from Mrs. Bruce, letting me know that my new master was still looking for me, and that she planned to end this harassment by purchasing my freedom. I felt thankful for the kindness behind this offer, but the idea didn’t sit well with me as one might expect. The more I educated myself, the harder it became for me to view myself as someone’s property; paying money to those who had treated me so cruelly felt like robbing my suffering of its triumph. I wrote back to Mrs. Bruce, expressing my gratitude but explaining that being sold from one owner to another felt too much like slavery; that kind of obligation couldn't be easily erased; and that I preferred to go to my brother in California.

Without my knowledge, Mrs. Bruce employed a gentleman in New York to enter into negotiations with Mr. Dodge. He proposed to pay three hundred dollars down, if Mr. Dodge would sell me, and enter into obligations to relinquish all claim to me or my children forever after. He who called himself my master said he scorned so small an offer for such a valuable servant. The gentleman replied, “You can do as you choose, sir. If you reject this offer you will never get any thing; for the woman has friends who will convey her and her children out of the country.”

Without my knowledge, Mrs. Bruce hired a guy in New York to negotiate with Mr. Dodge. He offered to pay three hundred dollars up front if Mr. Dodge would sell me and agree to give up all claims on me or my kids forever. The man who called himself my master said he looked down on such a low offer for such a valuable servant. The gentleman replied, “You can do what you want, sir. If you turn down this offer, you won’t get anything, because the woman has friends who will help her and her children escape the country.”

Mr. Dodge concluded that “half a loaf was better than no bread,” and he agreed to the proffered terms. By the next mail I received this brief letter from Mrs. Bruce: “I am rejoiced to tell you that the money for your freedom has been paid to Mr. Dodge. Come home to-morrow. I long to see you and my sweet babe.”

Mr. Dodge decided that “half a loaf is better than no bread,” and he accepted the offered terms. By the next mail, I got this short letter from Mrs. Bruce: “I’m thrilled to tell you that the money for your freedom has been paid to Mr. Dodge. Come home tomorrow. I can’t wait to see you and my sweet baby.”

My brain reeled as I read these lines. A gentleman near me said, “It’s true; I have seen the bill of sale.” “The bill of sale!” Those words struck me like a blow. So I was sold at last! A human being sold in the free city of New York! The bill of sale is on record, and future generations will learn from it that women were articles of traffic in New York, late in the nineteenth century of the Christian religion. It may hereafter prove a useful document to antiquaries, who are seeking to measure the progress of civilization in the United States. I well know the value of that bit of paper; but much as I love freedom, I do not like to look upon it. I am deeply grateful to the generous friend who procured it, but I despise the miscreant who demanded payment for what never rightfully belonged to him or his.

My mind spun as I read these lines. A guy next to me said, “It’s true; I’ve seen the bill of sale.” “The bill of sale!” Those words hit me hard. So I was sold after all! A human being sold in the free city of New York! The bill of sale is officially recorded, and future generations will discover that women were treated as commodities in New York during the late nineteenth century of the Christian era. It might eventually be a useful document for historians trying to understand the progress of civilization in the United States. I know how valuable that piece of paper is; but as much as I cherish freedom, I don’t want to look at it. I’m deeply thankful to the kind friend who got it for me, but I loathe the scoundrel who charged for what never rightfully belonged to him or anyone else.

I had objected to having my freedom bought, yet I must confess that when it was done I felt as if a heavy load had been lifted from my weary shoulders. When I rode home in the cars I was no longer afraid to unveil my face and look at people as they passed. I should have been glad to have met Daniel Dodge himself; to have had him seen me and known me, that he might have mourned over the untoward circumstances which compelled him to sell me for three hundred dollars.

I had opposed the idea of having my freedom purchased, but I have to admit that once it happened, I felt like a huge weight had been lifted off my tired shoulders. As I rode home on the train, I was no longer scared to reveal my face and look at the people passing by. I would have been happy to meet Daniel Dodge himself; for him to see me and know me, so he could mourn the unfortunate circumstances that forced him to sell me for three hundred dollars.

When I reached home, the arms of my benefactress were thrown round me, and our tears mingled. As soon as she could speak, she said, “O Linda, I’m so glad it’s all over! You wrote to me as if you thought you were going to be transferred from one owner to another. But I did not buy you for your services. I should have done just the same, if you had been going to sail for California to-morrow. I should, at least, have the satisfaction of knowing that you left me a free woman.”

When I got home, my benefactor wrapped her arms around me, and we cried together. Once she could speak, she said, “Oh Linda, I’m so glad it’s all over! You wrote to me as if you thought you were going to be sold to someone else. But I didn’t buy you for your work. I would have done the same if you were leaving for California tomorrow. At least I would have the comfort of knowing you left me as a free woman.”

My heart was exceedingly full. I remembered how my poor father had tried to buy me, when I was a small child, and how he had been disappointed. I hoped his spirit was rejoicing over me now. I remembered how my good old grandmother had laid up her earnings to purchase me in later years, and how often her plans had been frustrated. How that faithful, loving old heart would leap for joy, if she could look on me and my children now that we were free! My relatives had been foiled in all their efforts, but God had raised me up a friend among strangers, who had bestowed on me the precious, long-desired boon. Friend! It is a common word, often lightly used. Like other good and beautiful things, it may be tarnished by careless handling; but when I speak of Mrs. Bruce as my friend, the word is sacred.

My heart was overflowing. I remembered how my poor father had tried to buy me when I was a little kid and how disappointed he was. I hoped his spirit was celebrating me now. I thought about how my dear old grandmother had saved her earnings to buy me in later years, and how often her plans had been stopped. How that faithful, loving old heart would jump for joy if she could see me and my children now that we were free! My relatives had failed in all their efforts, but God had given me a friend among strangers, who had granted me the precious, long-desired gift. Friend! It’s a common word, often used lightly. Like other good and beautiful things, it can be spoiled by careless use; but when I refer to Mrs. Bruce as my friend, that word is sacred.

My grandmother lived to rejoice in my freedom; but not long after, a letter came with a black seal. She had gone “where the wicked cease from troubling, and the weary are at rest.”

My grandmother lived to celebrate my freedom; but soon after, a letter arrived with a black seal. She had gone "where the wicked stop bothering, and the tired find peace.”

Time passed on, and a paper came to me from the south, containing an obituary notice of my uncle Phillip. It was the only case I ever knew of such an honor conferred upon a colored person. It was written by one of his friends, and contained these words: “Now that death has laid him low, they call him a good man and a useful citizen; but what are eulogies to the black man, when the world has faded from his vision? It does not require man’s praise to obtain rest in God’s kingdom.” So they called a colored man a citizen! Strange words to be uttered in that region!

Time went by, and I received a newspaper from the south that had an obituary for my uncle Phillip. It was the only time I ever saw such an honor given to a Black person. It was written by one of his friends and included these words: “Now that death has brought him down, they call him a good man and a valuable citizen; but what are eulogies to a Black man when the world has disappeared from his sight? It doesn’t take man’s praise to find peace in God’s kingdom.” So they referred to a Black man as a citizen! Strange words to hear in that place!

Reader, my story ends with freedom; not in the usual way, with marriage. I and my children are now free! We are as free from the power of slaveholders as are the white people of the north; and though that, according to my ideas, is not saying a great deal, it is a vast improvement in my condition. The dream of my life is not yet realized. I do not sit with my children in a home of my own. I still long for a hearthstone of my own, however humble. I wish it for my children’s sake far more than for my own. But God so orders circumstances as to keep me with my friend Mrs. Bruce. Love, duty, gratitude, also bind me to her side. It is a privilege to serve her who pities my oppressed people, and who has bestowed the inestimable boon of freedom on me and my children.

Reader, my story ends with freedom, but not in the typical way—through marriage. My children and I are now free! We are as free from the control of slaveholders as the white people in the North are; and while that may not seem like much, it’s a huge improvement in my situation. The dream of my life isn't fulfilled yet. I don't sit with my children in a home of my own. I still yearn for a hearth of my own, no matter how modest. I desire it for my children's sake much more than my own. But God arranges things so that I stay with my friend Mrs. Bruce. Love, duty, and gratitude also tie me to her. It’s an honor to serve someone who cares about my oppressed people and has given the priceless gift of freedom to me and my children.

It has been painful to me, in many ways, to recall the dreary years I passed in bondage. I would gladly forget them if I could. Yet the retrospection is not altogether without solace; for with those gloomy recollections come tender memories of my good old grandmother, like light, fleecy clouds floating over a dark and troubled sea.

It's been painful for me, in many ways, to remember the miserable years I spent in bondage. I would gladly forget them if I could. Yet looking back isn't completely without comfort; because alongside those gloomy memories are sweet thoughts of my wonderful grandmother, like light, fluffy clouds drifting over a dark and troubled sea.










APPENDIX.

The following statement is from Amy Post, a member of the Society of Friends in the State of New York, well known and highly respected by friends of the poor and the oppressed. As has been already stated, in the preceding pages, the author of this volume spent some time under her hospitable roof.

The following statement is from Amy Post, a member of the Society of Friends in New York State, who is well-known and highly respected by those who support the poor and oppressed. As mentioned earlier in the previous pages, the author of this book spent some time at her welcoming home.

L.M.C.

“The author of this book is my highly-esteemed friend. If its readers knew her as I know her, they could not fail to be deeply interested in her story. She was a beloved inmate of our family nearly the whole of the year 1849. She was introduced to us by her affectionate and conscientious brother, who had previously related to us some of the almost incredible events in his sister’s life. I immediately became much interested in Linda; for her appearance was prepossessing, and her deportment indicated remarkable delicacy of feeling and purity of thought.

“The author of this book is my dear friend. If the readers knew her as well as I do, they would definitely be captivated by her story. She was a cherished member of our family for almost all of 1849. Her caring and dedicated brother had introduced her to us, having shared some of the incredible events from her life. I quickly became very interested in Linda; her appearance was appealing, and her demeanor showed exceptional sensitivity and pure thoughts.”

“As we became acquainted, she related to me, from time to time some of the incidents in her bitter experiences as a slave-woman. Though impelled by a natural craving for human sympathy, she passed through a baptism of suffering, even in recounting her trials to me, in private confidential conversations. The burden of these memories lay heavily upon her spirit—naturally virtuous and refined. I repeatedly urged her to consent to the publication of her narrative; for I felt that it would arouse people to a more earnest work for the disinthralment of millions still remaining in that soul-crushing condition, which was so unendurable to her. But her sensitive spirit shrank from publicity. She said, “You know a woman can whisper her cruel wrongs in the ear of a dear friend much easier than she can record them for the world to read.” Even in talking with me, she wept so much, and seemed to suffer such mental agony, that I felt her story was too sacred to be drawn from her by inquisitive questions, and I left her free to tell as much, or as little, as she chose. Still, I urged upon her the duty of publishing her experience, for the sake of the good it might do; and, at last, she undertook the task.

“As we got to know each other, she occasionally shared with me some of the painful experiences she had as a slave woman. Driven by a natural desire for human connection, she endured a lot of suffering, even while recounting her trials during our private conversations. The weight of these memories hung heavily on her spirit—she was naturally good-hearted and refined. I often encouraged her to agree to publish her story, believing it would inspire people to take more serious action for the freedom of millions still trapped in that unbearable situation, which had been so intolerable for her. But her sensitive nature recoiled from the idea of publicity. She said, “You know, a woman can share her painful wrongs with a close friend much more easily than she can write them down for the whole world to see.” Even when talking to me, she cried a lot and seemed to experience such deep emotional pain that I felt her story was too sacred to be drawn out of her with probing questions, so I allowed her the freedom to share as much or as little as she wanted. Still, I pressed upon her the importance of publishing her experiences for the good it could bring, and eventually, she decided to take on the task.

“Having been a slave so large a portion of her life, she is unlearned; she is obliged to earn her living by her own labor, and she has worked untiringly to procure education for her children; several times she has been obliged to leave her employments, in order to fly from the man-hunters and woman-hunters of our land; but she pressed through all these obstacles and overcame them. After the labors of the day were over, she traced secretly and wearily, by the midnight lamp, a truthful record of her eventful life.

“Having been a slave for such a large part of her life, she is uneducated; she has to earn a living through her own hard work, and she has tirelessly worked to secure an education for her children. Several times, she has had to leave her jobs to escape the bounty hunters in our country, but she pushed through all these challenges and overcame them. After a long day of work, she secretly and wearily documented the true story of her extraordinary life by the light of a midnight lamp.”

“This Empire State is a shabby place of refuge for the oppressed; but here, through anxiety, turmoil, and despair, the freedom of Linda and her children was finally secured, by the exertions of a generous friend. She was grateful for the boon; but the idea of having been bought was always galling to a spirit that could never acknowledge itself to be a chattel. She wrote to us thus, soon after the event: ‘I thank you for your kind expressions in regard to my freedom; but the freedom I had before the money was paid was dearer to me. God gave me that freedom; but man put God’s image in the scales with the paltry sum of three hundred dollars. I served for my liberty as faithfully as Jacob served for Rachel. At the end, he had large possessions; but I was robbed of my victory; I was obliged to resign my crown, to rid myself of a tyrant.’

“This Empire State is a rundown place of refuge for the oppressed; but here, through anxiety, turmoil, and despair, Linda and her children's freedom was finally secured, thanks to the efforts of a generous friend. She was grateful for the gift; but the thought of having been bought always irritated a spirit that could never accept being treated as property. She wrote to us soon after the event: ‘I thank you for your kind words about my freedom; but the freedom I had before the money was paid meant more to me. God gave me that freedom; but man weighed God's image against the meager amount of three hundred dollars. I worked for my liberty as faithfully as Jacob worked for Rachel. In the end, he gained great wealth; but I was robbed of my victory; I had to give up my crown to free myself from a tyrant.’”

“Her story, as written by herself, cannot fail to interest the reader. It is a sad illustration of the condition of this country, which boasts of its civilization, while it sanctions laws and customs which make the experiences of the present more strange than any fictions of the past.

“Her story, as told by her, is sure to captivate the reader. It sadly highlights the state of this country, which prides itself on its civilization, while allowing laws and customs that make the realities of today more bizarre than any tales from the past.”

Amy Post.

“Rochester, N.Y., Oct. 30th, 1859.”

“Rochester, NY, Oct. 30, 1859.”

The following testimonial is from a man who is now a highly respectable colored citizen of Boston.

The following testimonial is from a man who is now a highly respected Black citizen of Boston.

L.M.C.
“This narrative contains some incidents so extraordinary, that, doubtless, many persons, under whose eyes it may chance to fall, will be ready to believe that it is colored highly, to serve a special purpose. But, however it may be regarded by the incredulous, I know that it is full of living truths. I have been well acquainted with the author from my boyhood. The circumstances recounted in her history are perfectly familiar to me. I knew of her treatment from her master; of the imprisonment of her children; of their sale and redemption; of her seven years’ concealment; and of her subsequent escape to the North. I am now a resident of Boston, and am a living witness to the truth of this interesting narrative.
George W. Lowther.”

Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!